In the middle of a white void, floated a person.
There was nothing surrounding them as they continued to move through the blankness untethered.
A calmness had filled their heart as they moved, not a single thought in their mind to weigh them down. This person could not remember how they entered the void, they could not even remember where they came from, their name, or what they looked like.
All they knew was that the void was safe, in the void they no longer had to deal with the cruelty of the world, the judgment of things they could not control, the insecurities, the self-hatred, or the crippling loneliness that threatened to consume them at every moment of their existence.
The void was a comfort, its brilliant light burning away the darkness from within them, covering them in its loving embrace.
They could stay here forever in the void of love.
"Natsuki! Natsuki!" A strange voice yelled, shaking the void and the person within it.
What''s a Natsuki? They thought, hoping the voice would find it and leave them alone.
"NATSUKI!" Suddenly part of the void had shattered, as a large golden dragon burst through the hole they created and flew towards the person.
"Natsuki! We must leave this retched place, the longer you stay here the more of you the void consumes!" The dragon yelled.
The person turned over, facing away from the dragon, and finally speaking. "I do not know who this ''Natsuki'' is, but it is not me. Now leave me, you are hurting my savior."
The dragon did not take this well as it released a powerful roar once again shaking the world around them, causing the person to cover their ears.
"Damn it Natsuki! I thought you were stronger than this. You promised me that you would fight and not let yourself be consumed. I was wrong to make you my partner."
The person did not know why, but the dragon''s words had angered her. "I am strong! And I never go back on my word!" They screamed.
"Really? From where I am looking that does not seem to be the case. What has happened to you, my champion?"
It was then that the person felt a sharp pain emanating in her head, hundreds of thousands of images flashed through their mind. The sensation lasted only a few seconds, but felt as if it had been decades.
Once the images had stopped the person had looked up at the dragon. "Lux?"
The she dragon grinned, "You have come back to me, Natsuki." Lux then gently placed her enormous head against the girl''s.
"Yeah, I''m back. I''m sorry that I left you alone." She could not believe that she had forgotten herself. She was not some random person that belonged to the void, she was Sukehiro Natsuki, Devil servant of Rias Gremory and partner of the great Golden Dragon, Lux.
"It matters not. Let us just leave this terrible place." Lux lowered her head allowing her partner to climb onto her neck. Once the Devil was settled, the dragon raised her wings and flew out of the void, hopefully never to return.
Rias was feeling a lot of things at the moment as she currently stood in one of the many halls of Gremory Manor.
Asia had left her side an hour ago to check on the rest of the Peerage and give the healers working on them assistance with her Sacred Gear.
Rias stood alone as her thoughts consumed her. Natsuki had done it, she defeated Riser and thanks to her she had won the Rating Game. But she had barely paid any attention to Grayfia announcing her victory once she saw her Pawn''s body hit the floor.
She had been satisfied with the strategy she and Natsuki created for the game, that satisfaction soon grew into confidence once she saw how her Peerage was decimating Riser''s.
But the last few minutes had caused her to lose all that confidence, all that pride, all that smugness, feeling nothing but despair.
Despite giving her Phenex Tears, Akeno had fallen in her fight with Yubelluna, which had destroyed her plan of having a Promoted Issei and Natsuki fight alongside her Queen against Riser. She had been worried, but figured they could adjust even with the loss.
But then Kiba fell and Koneko as well shortly after.
And then Issei...
"Congratulations, Rias-sama. Your engagement is now forfeit and no longer binding as per the rules of the game." Rias looked to the side and saw that Grayfia had appeared in front of her. Rias had been so distracted that she didn''t notice the older Devil''s presence until she spoke.
"Thank you...Onee-sama." Rias'' smile was strained as she looked down at the ground, her hair failing over her eyes and hiding the tears that were coming to the surface. "But I do not feel that I deserve it. If it were not for Natsuki, I would not have won."
"That may be true, but she is your Pawn, after all. Are her victories not yours as well?" Grayfia said, not contradicting the girl''s statement.
Rias gave the maid a watery chuckle, "But I am the King. I''m the one who is supposed to protect my Peerage and I didn''t! I just stood there uselessly crying like a child as my family were being cut down fighting for me! Issei and Natsuki nearly killed themselves pushing their bodies beyond their limits just to beat Riser. Is that the kind of victory I should be proud of?!"
Grayfia pulled her sister-in-law into her arms and held her as she sobbed. She said nothing, letting the young Devil release the emotions she had been bottling up since the Rating Game started.
After a few moments Rias lifted her head out of Grayfia''s neck and wiped her eyes. "Even now, I am proving just how worthless of a King I am."
Grayfia lifted Rias'' head in her hands, forcing the girl to make eye contact. "Rias..." She said, not using the term of respect as she wanted to be personal. "I know you are feeling ashamed and useless after what happened today, but this is part of the journey of becoming a good King. You may have gotten your first servant years ago, but you are finally seeing what being a true master entails. Your servants rely on your leadership, they put their lives in your hands because they trust you to do right by them. I fear that you will soon find yourself in more dangerous situations as you grow, your Peerage having to fight more challenging enemies than Riser Phenex, so use this Rating Game as a learning experience to better yourself, not just for your servants but for you. Use this to never feel as you do, ever again."
Rias sniffled, "I will Onee-sama, I promise I will."
Grayfia smiled at the young heir before reaching into one of her pockets, pulling out a few papers with magic seals on them. "I must return to Lucifer-sama, but these are for you and your Peerage. They will teleport you straight to the party."
"Party?" The heiress asked.
"Yes, party. Lord Gremory and Lord Phenex decided they would host a party to celebrate the results of the Rating Game... whatever the results had been."
Rias understood what she meant, had she lost, this party would have been to celebrate her engagement and later marriage to Riser.
But since she won, it was now to toast her first Rating Game win. She had a bitter taste at the thought that almost all the guests expected to be attending an engagement party.
Including her own father...
"Thank you, Grayfia. When is the party?"
"Tomorrow evening, it is being hosted at Lucifer-sama''s private residence."
"I''ll be there. Well, I''ll try to be if my servants are able."
Grayfia nodded her head and handed Rias the teleportation seals. "Good night, Rias. And once again, congratulation." She then teleported away.
Rias released a sigh once the older Devil was gone. While the speech she gave did help, she could not stop thinking about how she failed her Peerage. And with is thought Rias had left to go check up on her family.
Rias had walked towards the sitting room after looking in her servants'' rooms and seeing that all of them were empty except for Natsuki''s.
The Pawn was still unconscious, but she also saw that Akeno was sleeping next to her. This led Rias to believe that her Queen must have awoken during her talk with Grayfia, making her way into the taller girl''s bed.
She also took that time to take off her clothes, since Akeno laid completely naked on Natsuki''s chest. Honestly, part of Rias wanted to wait there until Natsuki woke up just to see her reaction, but needed to make sure the rest of the group were doing okay.
Once Rias reached the end of the hall, she saw Issei, Koneko, Asia, and Kiba sitting on the couches, talking to each other.
She stood there staring at her servants for a moment before Kiba had noticed her, drawing everybody''s attention to her. "Rias-Buchou!"
"Hey everybody. Are you all doing, okay?" The King asked as she made her way into the room.
"Yeah, we''re doing great! Asia and those healers really know their stuff!" Issei exclaimed.
"We-well the he-alers had it covered I-I barely di-did anything!" Asia stammered, her face bright red from Issei''s compliment and the attention it brought her.
Rias smiled, "Well I''m happy that you''re all feeling okay. You each gave the Rating Game your all, and I am proud of you. And-and thank you... for fighting for someone like me."
"Of course, we gave it our all, we were fighting for our great leader." Kiba said, smiling brightly at his King.
"You are worth fighting for, Buchou." Koneko added, giving a small smile of her own.
"You don''t have to thank us Buchou-san, we were happy to do so." Asia said.
"I am always going to fight for you Rias-Buchou. I will do whatever it takes to make you happy!" Issei finished, clenching his fist in front of him to seal his promise.
Rias smiled as tears filled her eyes. "You guys..."
Rias then wiped her eyes to compose herself. "What I originally came here to do besides check in on you all was to tell you about the party we will all be attending tomorrow."
"Party?" Issei and Asia asked in unison.
Rias went on to explain what Grayfia told her earlier, including the part where the party had been planned regardless of the Rating Game''s outcome.
"Buchou..." Kiba began, knowing the true meaning of what she was saying. He could not imagine how Rias was feeling knowing just how much everyone truly expected her to lose.
Rias waved her Knight off, "It is fine Kiba, I''ve made my peace with it. Besides thanks to you all I managed to prove them all wrong by winning."
"You mean thanks to Natsuki, you won." Issei corrected. He was happy that Rias no longer had to marry Riser, but once again he was completely useless in the end.
Asia had told him, Koneko, and Kiba what happened towards the end of the battle. How Natsuki managed to unlock her Balance Breaker by having the dragon within her Sacred Gear control her body, using both to beat the asshole into submission. He thought that their two weeks of training had finally changed things, but just like all the other times they fought, Issei got his ass kicked and Natsuki had to bail him out.
Even his desire to save Rias was not enough to overcome his weakness...
And he hated it.
"Issei..." Rias started.
"Speaking of, where is Natsuki-san? And Akeno-senpai too?" Asia asked, oblivious to Issei''s inner turmoil and not noticing the self-hatred in his tone.
Rias blinked before answering the questions. "Oh, last I checked, Natsuki was still unconscious, but Akeno was with her. I am sure they are awake by now, so let us go check on them."
And with that, the Devils left to go check on the remaining members of their Peerage.
Natsuki''s eyes blinked open and she found herself lying on her back and staring up at an unfamiliar ceiling. Despite the unknown surroundings the girl was just grateful that she was awake no longer trapped in her own head.
Fuck my body hurts¡
Yes, despite the nun using her [Twilight Healing] on you, the strain of me using your body was so great that even though they are no longer there you still feel the pain of the injuries. Not to mention the injury that still lies on your chest. Lux said.
I''d rather be in pain and injured than be a human vegetable, Lux.
I feel the same as well, Natsuki.
Now that the Rating Game is over, I can just lay back and relax unbothered.
Ha, I do not believe that you will be relaxing just yet. Unless you are referring to more than just laying down and doing nothing. Despite not being able to see her, Natsuki knew that the dragon was smirking at her based on her words and how she said them.
Huh? What are you-
"Umm..."
Once Natsuki had heard the moan she quickly looked down and saw Himejima Akeno laying on her chest.
How did I not notice her?!
Natsuki''s movement had woken the Devil up as her eyes blinked open. Light violet had met burgundy red when the older girl raised her head.
The sleepiness had left the Queen''s face as a brilliant smile took shape. "Hello, Natsuki-chan." Her voice taking on a raspier tone than usual due to the lack of use. It sent shivers down Natsuki''s spine and caused Akeno to smirk when she noticed.
"Akeno? What are you doing here?" Natsuki asked.
Akeno giggled, "I was sleeping, silly."
The girl beneath her rolled her eyes, "I saw that. I meant why were you sleeping in my bed? On top of me?"
But instead of answering the girl''s question, Akeno leaned forward and laid a kiss on Natsuki''s lips. The kiss itself only lasted a few seconds before Akeno pulled away, smiling at the girl''s dumbfounded expression.
"What the hell was that?!" Natsuki yelled, her cheeks burning as the kiss replayed in her mind. That was- that was my first kiss!
"I wanted to thank you for what you did for me."
"Th-thank me?"
"I heard what happened after I was eliminated. How you defended me when everyone else thought that I lost, you still believed in me. No one has ever done that for me." Akeno said as she cupped Natsuki''s face in her hands.
"Besides after almost killing yourself to save Rias, to save all of us, you deserved the gift." After this Akeno sat up, straddling Natsuki. This movement caused the blanket covering them to slip down her shoulders, revealing her naked form.
Normally Natsuki would not have given much thought to Akeno''s state of undress, it was not as if she had not seen the older girl naked before. But Natsuki had never been so close to Akeno when she had and for some reason, she could feel her heart trying to beat its way out of her chest. She felt her fingers twitch, forcing her to grip the sheets beneath her.
It must be the kiss. I''m just thrown off because it was surprising. Fuck, I can still taste her...
"Akeno, why are you naked?" Natsuki asked, her voice and face were calm, not showing the nervousness, embarrassment, and shame she felt inside.
"Fufu, skin to skin contact is one of the ways people get closer to each other. Don''t you want to get closer Natsuki-chan?" Akeno said, her lips in a small pout because she did not get the reaction she wanted from showing off her body like she did from the kiss earlier.
"I''m pretty sure we''re close enough."
"Are you sure? I think there''s still more we can learn about each other." Akeno said as she leaned down, pushing her chest against Natsuki''s.
Natsuki gave Akeno a blank look, "I''m sure. Now get the fuck off me."
Before Akeno could reply to her, the door had swung open revealing the rest of the Peerage on the other side.
"Oh, are we interrupting?" Rias asked with an amused smile as she and the others saw the position the two Devils were in.
"Yes."
"No."
Reading on Amazon or a pirate site? This novel is from Royal Road. Support the author by reading it there.
Akeno and Natsuki said respectively before starting at the other. Akeno grinned while Natsuki gave her an annoyed glare.
Issei pushed his way into the room, blood pouring out of his nose as he stared at Akeno''s naked form. "No way! Akeno-senpai''s massive boobies! I''ve got to burn them into my mind!" He said despite only being able to see the sides of Akeno''s breasts due to them being pushed against Natsuki.
Natsuki rolled her eyes at Issei''s behavior. She then gently pushed Akeno to the other side of the bed, using her body to shield her from view, before grabbing the discarded blanket and wrapping it around the older Devil.
Issei quickly snapped his head towards Natsuki once he realized that he could no longer see a naked Akeno. "Dammit Natsuki! What the hell are you doing?! Don''t cover them up! Oh, I see what you''re doing, you''re trying to keep Akeno-senpai''s boobs to yourself! Not cool! Don''t you know that real friends share with each other?!"
Natsuki glared at him, "That''s not what I''m doing at all."
Akeno giggled, "Do you really want to see my chest that badly, Issei-kun?" She teasingly moved part of the blanket down, showing the tops of her breasts.
Both Natsuki and Rias glared at the Queen, "No, he doesn''t." They said before looking at Issei, both Devils staring him down as they waited for his response.
Akeno silently laughed as she rests her head on Natsuki''s shoulder from behind. Her smile widened when after a few moments Natsuki showed no signs of pushing her away.
"Uh, yeah I don''t want to see them." Even though it hurt him to say that, Issei did not want to find out what Rias and Natsuki would do to him if he said yes.
Asia pouted at the display of perversion that Issei was showing Akeno, causing her to latch onto the Pawn''s arm. "I can show you my chest, Issei!"
Issei blushed at the statement and was about to respond before Koneko spoke.
"Issei-senpai, you better not. You already made a fool of yourself just now. We don''t need you adding to Natsuki and Akeno-senpai''s perversion." Kiba had to cover his mouth to keep from laughing at the younger Devil''s statement.
"Hey, don''t compare me to these freaks!" Natsuki yelled, offended that the girl thought she was like Issei and Akeno. Which led to everyone speaking over each other.
Rias shook her head at her servant''s before clearing her throat and explained to Natsuki and Akeno what she had told the others.
"So, we are going to this party? Do you really want to celebrate with people who still think you should be Riser''s breeding mare?" Natsuki asked.
"Yeah, Natsuki''s right! Why should we go to this party? It''s going to be filled with nothing but classist jerks!" Issei added.
Rias sighed, "You two are right about the kinds of Devils that will be there. Many of them believe in the purity of our race more than anything else. But that''s exactly why I want us to go, to show them what a group of reincarnated Devils are capable of and that their archaic values belong in the past."
Natsuki let out a groan, "Fine I''ll go. But I''m not going to try and win these people over. They don''t deserve it."
The others soon agreed to go as well, with varying degrees of excitement.
"Great! Now some tailors will be coming over to take your measurements."
"Measurements?" Issei asked. Why do we need to get measured?
"So, they can make the clothes we are going to wear tomorrow. You don''t think we''ll go to a party filled with nobility dressed in our school uniforms, did you?"
Nighttime : The Next Day
The Peerage had spent most of the morning being surrounded by a group of tailors, poking, and prodding them as they took their measurements.
Now they were getting prepared to travel to Sirzechs'' private residence for the party.
Rias was the first to finish, standing in the parlor in a dark red sleeveless tube dress and red high heels. The dress had an exceedingly high split, showing off the King''s long legs.
She only had to wait about a minute before Koneko, Kiba, and Akeno appeared.
Koneko looked adorable in her black sleeveless dress with the plunging V-line in the back and shoulder length black gloves. Kiba was wearing a black suit with a white dress shirt and a black bow tie.
Akeno was wearing a navy-blue spaghetti strap dress that hugged her form like a second skin, leaving little to the imagination. She was also wearing white gloves that went below her shoulders and black heels.
Rias smiled at her servants, "Wow. You all look great."
"Thank you, Buchou. You look beautiful tonight. "Kiba replied. Koneko nodded her head in agreement.
"Fufu, he is right you do look beautiful Rias. Are you trying to impress someone tonight?" Akeno said suggestively.
A small blushed formed on Rias'' face, dissipating when she rolled her eyes at her Queen. "Why are you teasing me as if you''re not doing the same thing?"
Akeno just giggled; Rias was not wrong when she said that she too was looking to gain someone''s attention. She was still thinking about what happened yesterday.
I''m going to get Natsuki''s attention, no matter what.
As if she heard her thoughts, Natsuki soon entered the room. Her outfit for the evening gaining everyone''s attention.
The Pawn was wearing a black, off-the-shoulder, dress that ended halfway down her tights, showing off her long and muscled legs, with an asymmetrical hemline, small wedged heels, and a chiffon train that flowed behind her as she walked.
Her black hair was no longer in its pulled back low ponytail. Her hair was now in a braided bun that rested on the top of her head and with two curled strands shaping the sides of her face.
"Wow¡" Kiba whispered, voicing what the others were thinking.
"Hey guys." Natsuki finally spoke once she stood in front of the group.
"Whoa! Natsuki, you actually look like a girl!" Everyone turned towards the entrance, seeing Issei and Asia walk in.
Asia was wearing a pure white dress with lengthy sleeves that went down to her wrists, with a small window that showed the base of her collarbone and a hint of her breasts.
Issei like Kiba was wearing a suit, except it was red instead of black. He wore a black dress shirt and a green tie. Natsuki thought that he looked like his Sacred Gear in that outfit.
"Issei!" Asia exclaimed at Issei''s statement; she could not believe that he would say something like that to Natsuki.
Issei flinched and saw the way that the others were looking at him as well. "No, I didn''t mean it like that, it''s just I''ve never seen you look so pretty, not that you''re not attractive! I mean-"
Natsuki just waved him off, "Don''t give yourself an aneurism, Issei. I get what you meant; this isn''t how I normally look."
Issei let out a sigh of relief, "Thanks Natsuki."
"Don''t worry about it. Nice suit, by the way."
"Hehe, thanks. I wanted to look just like my [Boosted Gear]!" Issei stated, proving Natsuki''s previous thought right.
He then turned towards the others and looked at their outfits, mainly Rias and Akeno.
Natsuki rolled her eyes when she saw him drooling over the two girls, but she could understand as both looked striking in their dresses.
Rias let out a chuckle at the expression Issei was making. "Don''t you look handsome, Issei? You know that they call me the Crimson-Haired Ruin Princess and you are the Red Dragon Emperor. It appears that we''re matching even more." She said, pointing to her red dress and his red suit.
"Ye-ah we- we are Buchou! I mean you look beautiful!" Issei exclaimed, his eyes continuing to take her in, completely oblivious to Asia''s growing jealousy.
Rias clapped her hands, "Okay, you guys. It is time for us to get going." Rias waved her hand, causing the magic seal slips to appear in her grasp. Everyone took one, as magic circle forming under their feet as they did.
"Is everyone ready?" The King asked, once she got her conformation she exclaimed, "To the Lucifer Residence!" causing the group to disappear in a large flash of light.
Once the light dissipated, the ORC found themselves inside of a large entryway. All throughout the hall were grand tapestries, busts, and banners displaying a gold emblem over a field of purple.
A young male servant stepped forward, giving everyone a respectful bow. "Gremory-sama, I welcome you to Lucifer-sama''s ballroom hall."
Rias stood tall as she spoke, "Thank you, Mercer. Are we late?"
Mercer shook his head, "No, not at all, my lady." He then turned to open the large double doors in front of them.
Once opened, Mercer announced Rias'' arrival with her Peerage to everyone inside. When they stepped through the entrance, it revealed a large and expansive ballroom with black marble floors, walls decorated with expensive paintings, ornately crafted windows, and a high ceiling that was arched and rose high over their heads.
Filling the room were hundreds of people all dressed in finely made clothes, a mark of the obviously rich and snobbish nobles around them.
To Natsuki, a few people stood out amongst them, one of them being a mountain of a man with black hair and violet eyes. Even without sensing his magic, Natsuki could tell that he was exceptionally powerful, feeling as if she was staring at the sun as she looked him over.
The large man met her eye, the two staring at each other for several seconds. A large grin formed across his face before he broke eye contact with her and continued his conversation with the woman next to him.
The Peerage made their way across the long red carpet, once reaching the end, Rias turned and addressed them all. "Everyone, please enjoy yourselves, but I ask that you do not embarrass yourselves as you represent the Gremory name."
She looked around, "It seems only friends of the family were invited." Taking note that Riser and his Peerage were missing from the affair. She then smiled at Issei, "And you... will be escorting me tonight."
Issei gave her a large smile before sticking his arm out for her, as she took it, he jumped when he felt his other arm being grabbed. When Issei looked down, he saw Asia standing there, "Asia?"
"Will you escort me as well Issei-san?" Asia asked, not wanting to lose to Rias in this endeavor.
Issei blushed, "Ye-eah, of course!"
Issei, Rias, and Asia soon disappeared into the crowd, leaving the rest of the Peerage at the entrance.
Koneko''s eyes lit up when she saw a waiter walk by with a food tray and quickly followed him. Kiba nodded at his remaining friends before walking off on his own, immediately becoming surrounded by a group of girls that had been eyeing him since they walked in.
Natsuki sighed, wondering what she was going to do to pass the time. She had never been to a party before, let alone one as fancy as this, she was about to follow Koneko to the food tables when she felt a hand wrap around her right bicep.
Natsuki looked to the right and saw that it was Akeno who was holding her. "Don''t you know that it''s not very chivalrous to leave a lady by herself at a ball?" Akeno teased.
Natsuki raised an eyebrow but made no move to release herself from Akeno''s hold. "I never claimed to be a knight, last I checked that was Kiba''s calling."
"Well, Kiba is not the one I want to spend the night with." Akeno retorted.
The Pawn was thrown by both the words and the sincerity in which she spoke them. Why would Akeno want to spend the night with me? She could have anyone here, so why settle?
"You don''t have to force yourself to stay, Akeno. I understand if you would rather be doing anything else." Natsuki said, giving the older girl an out. She did not want Akeno to stay because she felt bad for her. Akeno should enjoy the night without worrying about me.
Natsuki flinched when she felt Akeno''s other hand gently caress her face, causing the two to stare into each other''s eyes. "I want to spend the night with you, Natsuki. So, are you going to be my escort?"
Natsuki opened her mouth but quickly closed it, amusing Akeno. After a few seconds, Natsuki finally spoke, "Of course, Akeno."
The pair soon walked through the ballroom together. Akeno noticed that all eyes were on them, especially Natsuki. The girl in question paid the stares and whispers of the no mind as they walked around. A part of Akeno wanted to snap back at the judgmental nobles around them but held herself back due to how it would reflect back on her King and their family.
After a few minutes, the two found themselves in front of two other Devils. They were both tall, the man was handsome with blond hair and blue eyes, while the woman next to him was well-endowed with golden blonde hair and light blue eyes. Natsuki knew instantly that they had to be the Lord and Lady of House Phenex.
"Lord Reiner-sama, Lady Raelyn-sama." Akeno stated before giving a respectful curtsy, Natsuki awkwardly followed suit. She assumed that she did not look all that graceful as she could see the mirth in Lady Phenex''s eyes.
"I am happy to finally meet you, Natsuki-san." Lord Phenex spoke.
"You know of me, Phenex-sama?" Natsuki asked.
"Well, you are a part of Rias Gremory-san''s Peerage. It was interesting to see you fight, you as well, Akeno-san."
"Thank you, Reiner-sama." Akeno replied.
"So, you saw the Rating Game?" Natsuki wondered what was going through their minds then. Even though she barely remembered it, she knew that Lux had beaten Riser badly during the fight, she knew that she was them that she would not be happy to watch her child experience that.
"Yes, we did." Lady Raelyn spoke this time, "And we wish to congratulate you on your victory."
"Congratulate me?" Both Natsuki and Akeno were surprised by the notion.
Reiner laughed at their expressions, "Yes, we want to congratulate you. Riser had been growing arrogant due to his Rating Game wins and our family''s immortality. This loss will push him further in the future."
"Where is Riser?" Natsuki asked.
"Oh him? He was holed up in his room, whispering about dragons when we saw him earlier, but do not worry he will get over it soon." Reiner waved off.
I doubt he will, I have made sure of it. Lux''s voice rang out in Natsuki''s mind for the first time since they came to the party.
Just how badly did you fuck him up? Natsuki asked.
Well, enough. Natsuki could hear the smugness in her partner''s voice
"So, this where you have been old friend!" A strong voice ended the internal conversation between dragon and Devil.
The group turned and saw five Devils approaching them, Natsuki already recognized Issei, Rias, and Asia but did not know the other two that were with them.
The one who spoke was a tall, handsome man with long striking red hair, bright blue eyes, and a short red beard, he was also wearing a white suit with gold accents. The woman next to him had short, flaxen hair with violet purple eyes. She was exceptionally beautiful, looking at lot like Rias, but her figure far surpassed the redhead''s, wearing a forming fitting white dress that showed it off.
"Hey guys. I see you found yourselves in Lord and Lady Phenex''s company." Rias spoke once her group stopped.
"Mother, father, I want you to meet my second Pawn, Sukehiro Natsuki. Natsuki, these are my parents, Zeoticus and Venelana Gremory." Natsuki was shocked that the two were Rias'' parents and not her siblings but remembered that Devils not only had incredibly long-life spans but also magic that could be used to change their appearance.
"It''s an honor to meet you, Zeoticus-sama, Venelana-sama." Natsuki said while bowing her head. Koneko and Kiba also appeared during this and gave their own greetings.
Zeoticus let out a bark of laughter, "It seems my daughter found herself two dragons, Reiner!"
Reiner playfully rolled his eyes, "Yes, yes. Your daughter is quite impressive."
Venelana quickly stepped forward, keeping the two men from continuing their friendly squabbling. "I had been wanting to meet you for a while, Natsuki-chan. I wanted to thank you for what you did."
"You don''t have to-" Natsuki spoke but was cut off by her King''s mother.
"I do. Because of you my daughter no longer has to go forward¡ with an agreement that was made while she still in my womb." She finished while giving Zeoticus and Reiner a fierce glare. Both men tensed and began sweating at the look the Brunette Ruin Princess was sending their way while Raelyn giggled at their plight.
Yep, she is definitely Rias'' mother. Natsuki thought.
Natsuki tuned out of the proceeding conversation. She felt a sharp tingling sensation race across her spine, she was being watched by someone.
Whoever they were, she knew they were extremely powerful. It was like nothing she ever felt before, the magic was stronger than that of all the other Devils in the room.
Lux, do you feel that? She asked in her mind.
Yes, Natsuki. I feel it. This magic is one I have encountered before. Lux answered, her voice tense and weary.
You have?
Yes, this magic belongs to the Devil now known as Lucifer, your master''s older brother.
Just as Lux responded, a servant announced to the room the presence of Sirzechs and Grayfia to the party.
Sirzechs Lucifer looked just like his father and sister, being tall, with long shoulder length crimson hair, blue-green eyes, a handsome face, and a lean muscular build.
The King and Queen glided across the ballroom, making their way towards his family and the Phenex''s.
"I must apologize for my tardiness. I found myself busier than usual these last few days." Sirzechs spoke, his voice smooth and deep.
As the Maou continued to talk, Natsuki was unable to tear her eyes away from him and his wife. The same feeling, she got when she first met Grayfia returned when looking at Sirzechs, that she had met them before.
But why do I keep feeling this? I''ve never seen their faces before, but I can''t stop the feeling that the three of us have met already. What is this fucking feeling?
"-suki. Natsuki!" The Pawn was pulled from her thoughts when she heard her King calling out to her, when she focused again, she saw that Lord and Lady Phenex had left and that everyone else was staring at her.
"Have the three of us met before?" She finally asked the question that had been in the back of her mind since Rias and Riser agreed to the Rating Game.
A quick second passed before Sirzech chuckled, "No, Natsuki-chan. I believe this is the first time we have had the pleasure of meeting. Although I know you and my wife met before the Rating Game."
He is lying to you, Natsuki. The Pawn heard Lux tell her internally, the dragon''s voice coming out as an angry growl.
Even without her partner telling her, Natsuki knew that Sirzech was lying to her. The feeling throughout her body was too profound for it to be a coincidence.
"Pffft! Haha! C''mon Natsuki! Why would you have met a Maou before?! I mean we were human not too long ago, why would a Devil waste time with a human?!" Issei found the very idea of it hilarious, forgetting the fact that they knew the rest of the Peerage and the Student Council before they ever became Devils or Asia who knew Devils and Fallen Angels long before getting turned.
"Regardless, I was telling Rias how impressed I was with your performance during the Rating Game, and I wanted to thank you for what you did, but it seems my family has already done so." Sirzech said, gaining everyone''s attention once again.
"It was nothing." Natsuki replied.
"It was not nothing, allowing the Golden Dragon to take control of your body is unheard of! I don''t think any other Sacred Gear has ever done such a thing, but you somehow were able to. I find myself impressed."
"According to Lux doing that was incredibly stupid and almost killed me. I don''t think she''ll be letting me do that ever again, regardless of the reason."
I most certainly will not, Natsuki! Even though it worked out this time you are still suffering from the effects of even after the Nun healed you. Lux exclaimed.
The She-Dragon was not wrong, after she first woke up, Natsuki noticed that she now had a scar on the center of her chest. The circular shaped mark looked like it had been branded onto her skin, Lux had explained that [Ethereal Domination] had begun to overheat while she had been in control.
She had talked to Asia about the scar and the former Nun had told her that despite her efforts, she was unable to heal it with her [Twilight Healing].
Rias had theorized that for some reason Natsuki''s Sacred Gear was affecting the scar and keeping Asia''s Sacred Gear from healing her. But even Lux herself did not know why the scar could not be healed.
Sirzech''s eyes widened a bit, and a spark could be seen before returning to normal, "You have already been in contact with the Golden Dragon? Can I speak with the great dragon?"
Natsuki raised an eyebrow, but went ahead with the request, "I guess. Hey Lux, Lucifer-sama wishes to speak with you."
Natsuki did not get a response, but she knew the Golden Dragon was listening to the conversation, she asked Lux inside her head why she wasn''t speaking but once again was met with silence.
"I apologize, Lucifer-sama. I don''t know why she isn''t responding; she was spoken out before."
"It is okay, Natsuki-chan. Maybe I will have the chance to speak to her another day." Sirzech replied kindly.
"Yeah. Maybe."
Natsuki immediately kicked off her heels the second the transportation circle disappeared and fell backwards onto her bed, letting out a sigh as she could finally relax.
The Pawn was exhausted, after speaking with Lucifer, Akeno asked (demanded) Natsuki to dance with her. Which somehow led to her dancing with the other female members of the Peerage, the most awkward of which was her dance with Rias. Not because of anything the two of them did, but because of the glare that Issei was giving her, her fellow Pawn hovering nearby. Rias enjoyed the attention, laughing every time they would spin and she would catch Issei''s eye while Natsuki rolled hers.
Unlike Issei, no other Devil tried to speak with her, Lux told her she could feel fear and anxiousness every time she got too close to one of them. The savage beating Lux had given Riser had made most of the guests afraid they would meet the same fate.
It seemed that even in the supernatural world, people were deathly afraid of her.
During the night she could feel the eyes of the Phenex''s, Rias'' parents, Sirzech, Grayfia, and the black-haired man, along with a few others. None of them made the move to interact with her, but she got the feeling that the time would come soon.
After a couple of hours, the party finally ended once Issei and Rias flew off on a giant griffin that Grayfia had summoned.
Kiba soon teleported away, taking Asia with him as he offered to drop her off at the Hyoudou residence, Koneko disappeared not too long after that once again leaving the Pawn and Queen alone.
"Do you want me to take you home?" Natsuki asked after a moment of silence, the two Devils ignoring the other guests leaving and talking with each other.
"You''re offering to walk me to my door, Natsuki-chan?" Akeno asked, her teasing evident in her smile and her voice.
Natsuki rolled her eyes, she felt like she had been doing it a lot more since becoming a Devil. "Take it however you want."
Akeno smiled, "As much as I would love for you to take me home, I can get home by myself." Her heart skipped a beat over the fact that Natsuki wanted to make sure she got home safely, even though teleportation negated that fact, but she did not want Natsuki to see her shrine just yet.
"Okay th-" Akeno cut the younger girl off by placing a kiss on her cheek. The Queen giggled when she saw that Natsuki was now completely quiet, the skin under her cheeks darkening slightly.
I think I will start kissing her more often if it keeps giving me more delicious reactions. The sadistic part of her cried out.
Akeno winked at Natsuki as she disappeared in a bright light.
Natsuki shook head to clear it when she started to think about the kisses she had gotten from the older Devil. She has to stop kissing me, this is getting fucking ridiculous! And why do they keep making me speechless?
"Hey Lux, why did you ignore me when I was talking to Sirzech?" Natsuki asked.
*SIGH* "I did not want to speak with that fake Lucifer because I greatly dislike the man." Lux spoke out.
Natsuki was shocked by that, "You hate Sirzech?"
"I do not hate him I dislike him..." Natsuki could inwardly feel that Lux hated the Maou through their bond, but kindly did not bring it up.
"...Remember when I told you that I had met him before? It was not in my original form but through some of my previous partners."
"Previous partners?"
"You are not the first Devil, reincarnated or half-breed that have I have found myself entwined with. Some of my partners had met their ends at the hands of the four Maous."
"I''m sorry, Lux. Do you think that''s what Sirzech wanted to talk to you about?"
"It is all right, Natsuki. I do not know why exactly Sirzech wanted to speak with me, but I do not plan any fulfilling his desire."
"Do you want us to get revenge?" Natsuki could feel the rage and sadness from Lux when speaking about her previous partners. She wanted to get rid of her pain, a part of her screamed that it was her duty as Lux''s partner to destroy all that would harm her.
"Ha. I thank you for the sentiment but that is unnecessary. I know that doing so would be treasonous due to your relationship with Rias, not to mention the many people that would come after us if we tried."
"I know, I just don''t want you to be upset anymore."
"I know. We should focus on getting stronger; you drew all the attention from the Rating Game. It will not just be Devils and Fallen Angels you will be dealing with going forward."
"Let''s just hope the next big problem waits a few weeks, I''m fucking exhausted."
"Ha. Let us hope."
In the master bedroom of the Lucifer Residence, Sirzech Lucifer could be seen standing on his balcony, a glass of whiskey in hand.
"It seems I underestimated my sister''s dragons, especially Natsuki." He spoke aloud when he felt his wife appear behind him.
"Yes, Lucifer-sama. Despite not having unlocked her Sacred Gear at the time, Sukehiro-chan could feel our magical energy and has subconsciously held onto the fact even after all this time." Grayfia answered, taking the time to stand next to her husband.
"Haha. Yes, she did. I wonder how Natsuki and Issei will improve next time we see them?"
"Hopefully, further than they are now, Lucifer-sama."
"Yes. Hopefully."
Holy Swords, Part 1
Natsuki let out a yawn, stuffing her hands into her pockets as she walked down the street. The ORC was meeting at Issei''s house as the clubhouse was being cleaned and because now Rias was living there.
She did not know why Rias wanted to live with him, his family, and Asia, but she shrugged it off.
Despite going to school that morning, Natsuki was taking her time heading to Issei''s place.
Hopefully, this won''t take too long, and I can go back home and take a nap. Hmm, Lux might be right about me becoming a delinquent¡
After another five minutes of walking, Natsuki finally found herself on the Hyoudou''s front porch. Just before she could knock, the door swung open revealing a man and a woman. Natsuki could tell these were Issei''s parents with the resemblance they had to him, especially Issei''s father.
"Good afternoon, my name is Sukehiro Natsuki, and I am a part of The Occult Research Club along with your son. We are supposed to have a meeting here." Natsuki said while giving the pair a respectful bow.
"Oh! So, you''re Natsuki-san!" Hyoudou Miki exclaimed, a large smile overtaking her face.
"Yes, that is me, Hyoudou-san." Natsuki responded.
"Haha, it''s great to finally meet you! Issei has said a lot of wonderful things about you." Gorou responded.
Natsuki raised an eyebrow, "Issei talks about me?"
"Oh yes, all the time. He told us about how you first met last school year and how you helped him stay out of trouble. It''s so nice to know my son doesn''t only have perverts for friends!" Gorou answered as he and his wife placed their hands on Natsuki''s shoulders, leading her inside. The pair waited until the teenager took off her shoes before taking her further into the house.
Miki wiped tears from her eyes, "You don''t know how much it means to us that Issei finally has a good influence in his life!"
Natsuki awkwardly scratched the back of her head, "I think you are both giving me too much credit, Issei''s a good person. I didn''t really do anything."
She was shocked that Issei spoke to his parents about her, especially as according to them, he had been doing so since their first year. Not to mention the low opinion they seemed to have of their son.
The bar must be in hell if I''m a good influence. Although I guess it makes sense if they are comparing me to Matsuda and Motohama. The Pawn thought.
Natsuki continued to make small talk with Miki and Gorou as they led her to Issei''s room, Natsuki realized that despite the comments about his perversion, the two deeply loved Issei and accepted that part of him.
The Pawn could not deny that she was a little jealous of this, of the fact that Issei had two loving parents who accepted him as he was while never trying to change him or even thinking about getting rid of him.
She had a loving and supportive parent in Kushina, but the orphan within could not help but think about her biological parents. It had been a couple of years since she thought about them, whether they cared about her, if they were alive, or if they abandoned her for her best interests or because she was a freak they did not want.
Natsuki shook her head, I shouldn''t be thinking like that. I have a parent, that''s more than a lot of people in my place can say. I shouldn''t be acting greedy over this.
"Issei! Your friend Natsuki is here!" Miki exclaimed as she opened her son''s bedroom door. When it opened, Natsuki saw that the rest of the ORC was already present, sitting on the floor around a table in the center of the room while Rias sat on Issei''s bed.
"So, you finally decided to grace us with your presence, Natsuki?" Rias sarcastically asked, a smile graced her lips as she stared at her second Pawn.
"Yeah, I found myself lost on the path of life, but I figured it would be a tragedy to deny you my greatness, Rias-Buchou. So here I am." Natsuki responded equally sarcastic as she took a seat in between Rias and Akeno.
Rias fondly rolled her eyes, "Do we need to have a talk about your tardiness?"
"Don''t try to change me, Rias-Buchou. You''ll just find yourself deeply disappointed." Natsuki shot back.
Rias smirked, "Oh, I think I would be able to mold you quite easily, Natsuki. I''d have you melting in my hands if I really put in the effort."
"Would you like something to drink, Natsuki-san?" Miki asked, ending the banter between master and servant.
"I would like a glass of water. Thank you, Hyoudou-san" Natsuki said, returning the smile the older woman gave her before leaving the room.
"Damn, I''ve never seen my parents act so happy to meet someone. What did you do when you got here for them to act like that?" Issei asked.
Natsuki shrugged, "I didn''t do anything. They started acting like that when I introduced myself, apparently you told them about me."
"Oh yeah! I guess I speak about you lot when they ask me how school was." Issei realized.
When they first met last year during the fifth day of school Natsuki had found him, Matsuda, and Motohama beaten and bloody behind the school. They had been left there after being caught peaking on the girls'' softball team, despite not knowing them, but knowing what they did, Natsuki still took the three boys to the infirmary. She even lied when the nurse asked her how they got their injuries, as the trio would have surely been punished.
He was shocked, even though it was the beginning of the year, Natsuki had already started gaining a reputation for being a violent delinquent from the poor and crime ridden town of Nitosh¨. He did not think that the ''Black Princess'' as the other students started calling her, would do something so kind for the newly formed ''Perverted Trio.''
Issei remembered telling his parents what happened (not all the details, but Miki and Gorou were able to figure out the truth) and they told him that there was no way that someone who did that for Issei and his friends could be a bad person like everyone at school had been accusing her of being.
The next day Issei greeted the girl when she walked into class. The room became quiet when this happened, many expected Natsuki to beat the boy into the ground for daring to speak to her, but to everyone''s surprise, she returned the greeting and sat at her desk, pulling out a book and ignoring the class.
During lunch, Issei convinced Matsuda and Motohama to sit at Natsuki''s empty table at lunch. She gave the boys a quick look before returning to her food, once again surprising everyone who was watching the interaction. Issei smiled before engaging the girl in conversation, once they saw that Natsuki would not attack them and was conversing with Issei, Matsuda and Motohama joined in.
From that day forward, Natsuki became a person that Issei considered a friend and someone that Miki and Gorou constantly heard about from their son.
"Matsuda and Motohama must have really rubbed them the wrong way if your parents actually like me." Natsuki said.
"You are a good person Natsuki-san! And you''re Ise''s best friend, which gives them even more of a reason to like you!" Asia exclaimed from Issei''s right side, she felt that she needed to reassure Natsuki that she was a kind and caring person.
Natsuki''s face scrunched up in response to the last thing Asia said, "I''m not Issei''s best friend." She could accept being his friend, but being called his best friend was pushing it.
"Yeah, you are. You''re always going out of your way to save him." Kiba jumped in.
"You guys spend a lot of time together, even without the rest of us being there." Akeno said.
"You hang out with him even though he''s a pervert." Koneko dryly stated.
"They''re right, Natsuki. You and Issei deeply care about each other, and Issei was the only person you truly talk to before becoming a Devil. Then there is the fact that you both clearly trust each other a great deal." Rias finished.
After a few moments of contemplation, Natsuki released a shocked gasp. "Oh my God..." Natsuki said, ignoring the pain that formed in her head from saying the word God. "Hyoudou Issei is my best friend."
"HEY! Don''t say it like that! Like it''s the most disgusting and disturbing thing you''ve ever heard in your life!" Issei yelled, angered by her tone and her expression.
"Why would you all tell me this? Why couldn''t you just let me live in ignorance of this terrible truth?!" Natsuki dramatically cried out, ignoring Issei.
The rest of the Peerage laughed when Issei, finally having enough of Natsuki''s wailing, threw a pillow at the girl''s face.
The laughter died down and the group began discussing the contracts they filled for the month. Akeno had eleven, Koneko ten, Kiba eight, Asia three, Natsuki two, and Issei could not fulfill even one.
"You know, if you don''t work hard and fulfill contracts, you''ll never become a high-ranking Devil." Rias told her first Pawn.
"Next month, I''m going to do what it takes to get first place!" Issei exclaimed, pumping his fist into the air.
"Sorry to interrupt, kids." Miki said as she made her way back to the room, in her hands was a tray holding a large plate of cookies and the glass of water Natsuki asked for. "Now this little gathering is for the Insult Research Club, right?"
Issei sighed, "She''s always so close, but so wrong." He mumbled under his breath.
"Well, I brought something might inspire everybody!" Showing off the photo albums that she had been holding under the tray.
"MOM!" Issei cried out when Miki sat next to Rias and placed the now open photo albums on the table.
Issei blushed when the girls of the club expect for Natsuki immediately swarmed Miki, seating around the woman as she explained each photo of Issei.
"Oh no it''s a tiny, itty, witty, bitty Issei!" Rias said with a smile.
"I totally agree with Rias-buchou. Tiny, itty, bitty, and cute!" Asia said.
"Awesome. Wow. Way to freaking break my balls, mom." Issei mumbled.
"Why are you naked in all these photos?" Natsuki asked as she leaned over the table and saw another picture of Issei''s bare bottom.
"Shut up, Natsuki! I doubt you look good in all of your baby pictures!" Issei screeched, his face turning even more red.
"You''re right, but at least I managed to keep my pants in all of them." Although she made a mental note to never let Issei meet Kushina, knowing her guardian, the older woman probably did have naked pictures from when she was a baby that even she did not know about, hidden somewhere at the orphanage.
And knowing Kushina-sama, she is saving them for the day I would finally make friends so she can embarrass me the same way Miki-san is doing to Issei. Natsuki thought.
"She seems like a great mother to me." Kiba chimed in.
"Like you would know!" Issei''s embarrassment was reaching its peak.
"Yeah, it must be nice to have a family." The smile on Kiba''s face was not the one he usually wore, this one was more somber, and his eyes pained.
Issei was about to ask him about not having a family when Kiba cut him off with a question of his own. "Hey, Issei. What is this picture?"
When Issei and Natsuki leaned over to look at the album, they saw a picture of a young Issei sitting beside another child. The child had messy chestnut hair that was pulled back in a ponytail and violet eyes. In the picture both Issei and the child were holding Gameboys and were sitting next to a fireplace with a large sword in a white scabbard directly behind them.
"Oh, that kid lived down the street from me, we used to play together all the time, but they had to move once one of his parents got a job overseas. Hmmm, I can''t remember that kid''s name, but it has been a while." Issei answered.
"One more thing. Do you remember this sword?" Kiba asked.
"Nah, you know, I was five."
Find this and other great novels on the author''s preferred platform. Support original creators!
Kiba let out a rueful chuckle, "I guess anything''s possible, huh? This is a Holy Sword."
Natsuki raised an eyebrow, "Why would Issei''s old neighbor have a Holy Sword?" It did not make sense to the girl, not unless the parents of Issei''s childhood friend had a secret connection to the church.
"I don''t know. It''s funny, I never expected to see it in a picture with you, Issei. Imagine that..." Kiba trailed off.
"What?" Issei asked, he was confused by Kiba''s sudden change in attitude. The blond still had his signature smile, but it looked more fake than it ever had before.
Kiba snapped the album closed and handed it to Issei, "Its nothing. Thanks for letting me see the pictures, really appreciate it."
Issei and Natsuki shared a look with each other, neither finding the Knight''s act very convincing. But since Kiba did not want to talk about whatever was bothering him, they let it go.
In the middle of a dark room, one of many in the large apartment complex, a large red magic circle formed and Natsuki and Issei appeared from within.
"Thanks for helping me teleport, Natsuki. It would''ve been lame if I had to ride my bike all the way here, like always." Issei told Natsuki.
"It''s fine. Besides, this is a joint summoning, so it wouldn''t have made sense for me to teleport while you rode your bike." Natsuki said, she was a little confused as she did not know why she and Issei were specifically chosen for this job. Akeno had explained to them weeks ago that a person who summons more than one Devil usually has an important request that requires a lot of magical power to complete.
And yet two low ranking Devils were picked. This must be a mistake, but until we meet the contractor, we won''t know for sure. Natsuki thought.
The lights suddenly turned on revealing a man standing near the front door. The man was a little over six feet tall as he stood a few inches taller than Natsuki, he had black hair with golden bangs and a black goatee.
"Well, hello there, so you must be the Devils I summoned." The man smirked.
"Uh-yeah! I''m Hyoudou Issei and this is Sukehiro Natsuki, and we are Devil servants of House Gremory." Issei said.
"Well, you two can go have a seat." The man waved to the couches on the other side of the room before leaving.
"Well, that guy seems strange. This place is amazing, but he clearly isn''t from around here. What do you think of him, Natsuki?" Issei said as the two Devils sat on one of the couches.
"You don''t feel it?" Natsuki asked, her eyes never leaving the hallway that their client walked into.
"Feel what?" Issei asked.
Natsuki looked at Issei, "The weird energy that was coming of that guy. He''s not normal."
She was sure that their client was not human. The energy coming off him felt familiar, as if she had encountered something like it before, but she could not place from where.
Issei tilted his head, "Are you sure you''re not just imagining it?"
"Something to drink, perhaps." The client returned holding a tray with alcohol and drinking glasses, ending the Pawns'' conversation.
"Oh, no thanks; I''d love to, but I''m still a minor." Issei answered.
"Same here." Natsuki added.
"Really? Bummer. I was hoping to have a partner or two to drink with." The man said as he sat down on the opposite couch.
Issei leaned forward, "So you wanted two Devils to have drinks with?"
"What, is that bad?"
"No, it''s fine. The contract will be formed when we fulfill your request and receive a fitting compensation in return."
"Unfortunately, all I have is sake. You okay with tap water?"
Issei and Natsuki looked at each other, "Yeah, sure."
An Hour Later
"Hahahah! So, your magic is so weak you have to ride a bike to see the people who''ve summoned you?!" The man cried out.
"Well, kind of." Issei said in exasperation.
"That''s hilarious!" The man laughed.
Issei''s head fell between his shoulders. Being laughed at like this will never not piss me off, but I don''t have much of a choice if I want that contract.
"That was fun." The client said once he stopped laughing. "So, what would you like as compensation."
"What already?"
"You''re Devils right? I guess this means you want my soul?"
"No, we don''t want your soul. All we did was have a drink with you. So that wouldn''t fit the contract at all."
"Oh, that''s unexpected."
Natsuki narrowed her eyes at the man, the same feeling she got whenever she was being lied to was rushing through her. She had stayed quiet for most of the conversation trying to figure the man out but couldn''t.
"Would this do?" he pointed at the painting above his head. "It''s not a reproduction."
"Isn''t that kind of expensive?" Issei asked.
"I don''t have anything else to pay you with at the moment. If it won''t work, I have my soul." He shrugged.
"It''s cool; the picture''s fine." Issei said.
The Pawns worked together to carry the painting, walking to the center of the room so Natsuki could cast the teleportation spell.
As the magic circle formed under their feet Natsuki looked back at their client. "You didn''t tell us your name."
The man smirked, "Maybe I''ll give it you the next time we meet."
"So, you''re planning on summoning us again?" Natsuki asked.
"Of course, I need my new drinking buddies."
"Are you human?" Natsuki asked the question that had been in her mind since meeting the man standing before them.
"Natsuki!" Issei cried out, hoping that the man would not be offended by Natsuki''s question. If he does, then he might take back the painting and I''ll be back to zero contracts!
"I''m just as much human as anyone can be." The client said, once again smirking at the girl.
Natsuki scoffed at that, she was about to respond when both her and Issei''s phones went off. Issei placed the part of the painting he was holding down and pulled out his phone.
"It''s a text message from Buchou! She wants us to head out because there''s a stray Devil, she wants the group to take care of." He explained.
Natsuki sighed, "Okay, let''s go."
Natsuki changed the destination of the spell and the two disappeared in a flash of light.
The man let out a laugh once the two Pawns were gone.
"What an odd pair of dragons I''ve met. I wonder how Vali will feel once he meets them himself?"
Once the pair had placed the painting their client had rewarded them with down in the clubroom, Natsuki and Issei had teleported to the Peerage''s location.
Once the teleportation circle disappeared, the Pawns found themselves standing outside an abandoned building, the rest of the Peerage was also outside, waiting for them.
"I''m sorry I had to make you guys come out here." Rias told her Pawns once they arrived.
"Nah, it''s fine. There''s something going on in there, huh?" Issei replied.
"No one can miss the smell of a stray Devil." Koneko said.
"No kidding." Akeno said, "We''ve been ordered to take it down before the night is over."
"Whatever it is must be extremely dangerous. We shouldn''t try to fight it inside. Asia, you wait at the rear, Akeno and I will be ready and waiting outside. So, Koneko, Kiba, Natsuki, and Issei draw the enemy out where we can take care of it." Rias ordered.
"Makes sense to me." Akeno answered.
"Right." Koneko said.
"Of course." Natsuki replied as she summoned her Sacred Gear.
"I''m on it." Issei followed Natsuki''s example, summoning his [Boosted Gear].
Kiba had remained silent, staring at the ground and was unaware of the conversation going on until Rias called out to him.
"Yeah, right. Got it, Buchou." Kiba said.
Before Rias could question her Knight, Issei had called the others to go as he took off into the building. Natsuki, Koneko, and Kiba quickly followed behind him.
"I wonder what it will be, another weird ass monster, right?" Issei said as the four Devils reached the building''s iron door, a smile gracing his lips as Issei pumped himself up.
Koneko ignored his prompting and walked forward, using her strength to blow the door open with a single punch.
"Nice. Why can''t you warn me when you do that?" Issei asked.
"Let''s go." Koneko said, ignoring Issei''s question once more.
The four Devils walked into the building and for a few moments saw nothing until Koneko called out that she had spotted the stray. She appeared to look like a normal young woman with blonde hair and dark eyes. This illusion did not last long when she suddenly transformed into a spider-like creature with grey skin, purple eyes, six limbs, large razor-sharp teeth, pointy ears, and a large horn protruding from her forehead.
"Holy shit!" Issei exclaimed as they watched the stray jump up and begin to crawl across the ceiling. Issei''s Sacred Gear began to power up, and the word [Boost] could be heard coming from the gauntlet every couple of seconds.
"Kiba, focus. What are you doing? Hey! Kiba!" Koneko yelled when she saw Kiba standing there staring at the wall, ignoring the situation they were in.
Kiba''s head jerked upwards, "Oh, sorry."
At that moment, the Stray Devil shot out a clear liquid from its rear, hitting Koneko''s shoulder. The Rook was knocked to the ground and the top of her uniform began to disintegrate, leaving a burn mark where she was hit.
"Bastard!" Issei yelled, the gem on the center of his [Boosted Gear] glowing a bright green as it finished charging up and crying out, ''Explosion.''
Natsuki jumped in front of Koneko, picking the younger Devil in her arms, and throwing the two off them to the side, just barely avoiding another acid spray.
"Dragon Shot!" Issei screamed, releasing a red beam of energy at the stray, the attack had no effect as the Devil kept charging at them.
"What are you zoning out for princess?!" Issei yelled when he saw that Kiba was once again lost in his own thoughts and ignoring the world around him.
Kiba used his sword to cut the stray in half and was about to attack again when he tripped on a pipe, falling to his knees which allowed the stray to regenerate and land on top off him. The stray was about to eat Kiba when Koneko grabbed the stray''s back legs and threw her through the skylight above them.
"Akeno." Rias said with a smirk on her face.
"I''m all over it, Rias!" Akeno replied from her place in the sky, the Devil now in her priestess uniform and her hand already raised.
A yellow magic circle formed above the stray, firing a bolt of lightning into the stray, sending her heralding into the ground leaving the stray severely burnt before Rias'' feet.
"Wanton Devil, you who ran wild away from your master to fulfill your own desires. For such a crime, you deserve to die a thousand times over. And now in the name of the Duke of Gremory, you shall pay with your life. Time to die!" Rias exclaimed as she used her Power of Destruction to completely eviscerate the stray.
"Hell yeah!" Issei shouted as he and Koneko ran out of the building to witness their master''s judgment. Natsuki walked out, focusing entirely on Kiba as the young Devil once again became lost in his thoughts.
"Koneko! Do you need help?" Asia said as she ran to where the others were standing.
"Yes, please." Koneko answered.
Natsuki took off her uniform jacket and handed it to the Rook once Asia finished healing, Koneko nodded her head in thanks as she threw the jacket around her shoulders.
SLAP!
The others turned around and realized Rias had slapped Kiba across the face.
"Think you''ve got it together now? With a mistake like that, you put everyone here in serious danger." Rias stated.
"I apologize." Kiba responded.
Rias moved forward and placed her hands on Kiba''s shoulders, "What''s the matter, Kiba? This isn''t like you."
"I''m fine; just having an off day. Now if you will excuse me, Buchou." Kiba said as he walked away, ignoring Rias calling.
But before he could leave, Issei ran up and grabbed him by the shoulder. "What the hell Kiba? Why would you be so rude to Buchou?"
"It''s got nothing to do with you." Kiba growled.
"That doesn''t mean I can''t be worried." Issei argued.
Kiba smiled, "Worried? Why would you be worried? Devils are by nature selfish beings."
"I''ve got no idea what you''re point is here." Issei said.
"Well, for the record I do think I was wrong." Kiba tried to walk away again but Issei stopped him.
"Wait a minute! If you''re that upset, then you can talk to me about it. I mean we are friends, aren''t we?"
Kiba scoffed at Issei''s words before turning around to face him. "Friends? Issei, I appreciate your passion. However, something''s recently been brought to my attention."
"Something like what?" Issei asked.
"A purpose. See, I remembered my reason for living; the reason I fight."
"I thought you were fighting for Rias." Issei responded; he did not know that there could be any other reason for the Peerage to become Devils and fight in Rias'' name.
"You thought wrong. All I want is revenge. It won''t be much longer now; I''m going to destroy Excalibur. That alone is my purpose." The smile Kiba carried quickly left his face the longer he spoke and once he finished, he walked away again, Issei not stopping him this time.
"Holy Swords are the worst weapons against Devils. Simply touching one burns a Devil''s body. More importantly, to be cut by a Holy Sword could mean instant death. The truth is a Holy Sword can annihilate a Devil." Rias told her three newest servants, the four had returned to Issei''s house after Kiba left. Rias had felt the need to explain what Excalibur was in their world and how dangerous weapons like it could be.
"Wow, okay, that''s kind of intense." Issei said.
"It is. The fact that those who can wield them are extraordinarily rare is the sword''s biggest weakness. The church did what they could, they tried to raise people artificially, perhaps they could wield Excalibur then they could annihilate Devils everywhere. It''s known as the Holy Sword Project." Rias explained.
"Was Kiba apart of the Holy Sword Project before becoming a Devil?" Natsuki asked, in her mind it was the only thing that would make sense.
Kiba started acting weird earlier today when he saw that picture of Issei and the Holy Sword his childhood friend had in his house. I guess seeing the sword triggered him and reminded him of his past. Natsuki thought.
Rias let out a rueful chuckle, "Once again, you have shown an eye for details, Natsuki. You''re right Kiba was in this project, but it had failed and each of the subjects were killed by the Church in a coverup with Kiba barely surviving it."
"Poor Kiba." Asia said when Rias finished.
"I think Issei and I know what triggered him." Natsuki said.
"Oh, right!" Issei reached into his desk drawer and pulled out the picture of himself, his old friend, and the Holy Sword behind them.
"It''s not nearly as powerful as Excalibur, but there''s no mistaking it. Kiba was right, that is a Holy Sword." Rias said.
"I knew it, Kiba only started getting weird after seeing this picture." Natsuki said.
Rias mumbled something under her breath, but when Issei asked her to repeat it, she waved him off and took off her clothes, stating that it was time for bed.
Natsuki placed her hand on her forehead and shook her head as Issei and Asia looked on in shock.
"Wait, why are you changing in here?!" Issei asked.
"You know I can''t sleep unless I''m completely naked." Rias answered.
"No, I-I mean why-why are you getting naked in my room?" Issei reiterated.
"Well obviously because I''m going to be sleeping with you, silly." Rias said, the Devil now down to her matching black lace bra and underwear that left little to the imagination.
"And that''s my cue to leave. See you all tomorrow, try not to die of a nosebleed or an erection lasting more than four hours, Issei." Natsuki said as she formed a teleportation circle under her feet.
"Huh?! What are you-" Issei was unable to finish as Natsuki left the middle of his sentence.
When he turned back around, he saw that both Rias and Asia were now naked. The two females began fighting over who would get to sleep in Issei''s bed that night, pulling by each arm as they argued. Issei had a perverse grin as he was pulled back and forth.
Dying and becoming a Devil was the best thing to ever happen to me!
Kiba Yuuto was walking through the streets of Kouh, no destination in mind as the heavy rain continued to pour down on him.
I have never forgotten my revenge against the Holy Sword, Excalibur. I let myself get caught up in my school life. My friends, my lifestyle, even my name... It''s all been granted to me by Rias Gremory. I have no right to strive for anything more than this... for any more happiness. I''m sorry Issei, but I have no right to have any friends especially since I have yet to fulfill my comrades will... to avenge their deaths...
Kiba let out a sigh and lifted his head to the sky, the Knight opened his eyes when he heard a small splash near him.
Just when he felt the unknown person move closer, Kiba summoned a demonic sword from his left hand and pointed it towards the unknown threat.
Kiba saw that it was a priest in front of him. The anger swirling inside Kiba swelled as he stared at the man, one of the many that use the name of their God to justify their terrible actions, to erase all blame and guilt from themselves while declaring others to be evil sinners.
Kiba hoped the man was an exorcist so he could kill him right there although he was so angry that it was doubtful that the man not being an exorcist would stop him.
Before Kiba could do anything, the priest coughed out some blood and fell to the ground in a lifeless heap. It was then that Kiba noticed the a hole in the priest''s stomach as blood began to pool onto the floor around him.
The Knight suddenly left a wave a killing intent rushing towards him and quickly used his sword to block and incoming strike coming from behind, Kiba was pushed backwards from the force of the strike, skidding across the wet pavement. When he looked up, he saw that his attacker was the crazed rouge priest, Freed Sellzen.
"Yahoo! Long time no see, pretty boy!" Freed cheered.
"Freed Sellzen. Looks like you''re still in town, what''s your business here?" Kiba growled.
"Whoa, what crawled up your ass? And here I am, weeping tears of joy at the thought of our reunion!" Freed smirked.
Kiba was about to retort when he finally noticed the weapon in Freed''s hands.
"That sword... it can''t be possible, its-"
Freed gave the Devil a lustful smirk before he licked the side of the blade, "How about you and I see which is better, your Devil swords or my Excalibur?"
Holy Swords, Part 2
Natsuki did not expect to see Akeno on her knees, wearing an almost see-through robe with nothing underneath, sucking on Issei''s fingers when she walked into the clubroom that morning.
Both Devils turned and saw Natsuki standing behind them, both having different reactions to seeing the girl. Issei had a grin on his face while using the hand that Akeno was not holding to give his fellow Pawn a thumbs-up. Akeno smirked when she and Natsuki made eye contact and proceeded to make an even more provocative showing of licking Issei''s nearest finger.
"What''s going on in here?" Natsuki finally asked after a few moments, her face blank and her voice eerily calm.
"The best thing ever!" Issei exclaimed.
Akeno smiled before going on to explain the process of removing the Dragon''s Essence from Issei''s arm so that the illusion spell that was placed on it to disguise the arm he had given up to Ddraig would hold.
"And there are no other ways of extracting the Dragon''s Essence?" Natsuki asked once Akeno finished her explanation.
Akeno pressed her finger to her chin and pretended to ponder for a moment before answering, "Well, there is another way, but it involves a lot more contact."
Akeno then turned back to Issei, "Do you want me to touch you more, Issei?" Issei sat up and was about to answer when a dangerous chill raced down his spine.
"AKENO. What is the meaning of this?" Rias answered, standing directly behind Natsuki, but keeping her gaze directly on Issei and Akeno.
Natsuki looked between the three before moving to the side and letting Rias into the room, not wanting to be on the receiving end of her King''s anger like the other two were going to be.
Akeno just gave her friend a closed eye smile, "Ufufu. We were just dispelling the dragon''s power."
Rias'' body began to shake as she struggled to control her rage and jealousy. "Do you really expect me to believe that is all this is?!"
As this was going on Issei quickly put on his clothes and tried to sneak out of the room unnoticed. His attempt was thwarted by Rias pinching one of his cheeks and roughly pulling on the skin.
"Ouch!" Issei cried out.
"Looks like you were having quite the bit of fun, hmm?" Rias coldly asked.
Issei tried to reassure the Devil King that he was not, but all his words came out incoherently and mumbled due to her still pinching his cheek.
Rias huffed, dramatically turning away from the other occupants in the room as she pouted. "Fine! Do as you please!" She yelled before leaving the room and slamming the door shut in her fury.
Akeno placed a hand on her mouth, "Jealousy is so cute on her. I didn''t think she would get so jealous over our friendship, Issei-kun."
"Why was she so mad?" Issei asked while rubbing his sore cheek.
"You cannot be serious?" Natsuki mumbled, shaking her head at her friend''s obliviousness. She did not understand how Issei could not see that Rias was jealous, especially since she had been throwing herself at him since the Rating Game and with how much she and Asia fight over him.
Some people just can''t see what''s right in front of them. Natsuki thought.
"Rias has always been hot tempered, Issei-kun, no need to worry about it. The Dragon Essence has been removed from your arm, so we''ll meet back here for your next session." Akeno said once she stopped smiling to herself.
"Oh, okay. Thanks for your help, Akeno-senpai!" Issei said while buttoning up his shirt. He then left the room with a dazed look on his face, still thinking of Rias'' reaction.
"Did you need something, Natsuki-chan?" Akeno asked once they were alone.
"Hmm?" Natsuki turned her head from the door to face her senpai.
Akeno smiled, "You must have come to the clubroom for a reason especially since we don''t have an ORC meeting today."
"Oh, right. I came for... I came to..." Natsuki realized that she could not remember what reason she had from coming to the clubroom. Catching Issei and Akeno in the position they were in, followed by Rias storming in had caused all previous thoughts to leave her mind.
Eh, if it''s really important it will come back to me. Natsuki thought to herself.
"So, you and Issei have gotten closer." Natsuki said, not looking Akeno in the eyes and staring at the adjacent wall.
Akeno blinked, not expecting the response. "We have. Issei''s a great person, it''s hard not to like him."
"Yeah, he is. It''s not hard to understand why you like him so much." Natsuki said.
"What?" Akeno mumbled. "Do you think I like Issei?"
Natsuki was confused by how quietly Akeno had asked her questions but continued. "I mean it''s obvious, pretty much every girl in the Peerage is gearing up to join Issei''s harem. I mean why else would Rias start fighting with you earlier?"
"Do you want me to having feeling for Issei?" Akeno calmly asked.
Natsuki''s eyebrows raised, "Why would it matter what I want?"
Akeno opens her mouth to respond, but quickly closes it. She did not know what to say, she liked Issei, but knew she did not love him. Not the way Rias and Asia clearly did.
I like Natsuki as well, but I don''t love her, I don''t think I do. She caught my interest ever since I first saw her, but now... Now I''m not entirely sure what it is I''m feeling for her. Akeno sighed as she stared into Natsuki''s eyes, her thoughts swirling as she put on a fake smile.
"You''re right, it doesn''t matter. Excuse me Natsuki-chan." Akeno said before leaving the clubroom.
Natsuki tried to stop her, but Akeno had already vanished before she could. She knew that what she said had upset Akeno, but she could not understand why.
I was just trying to be supportive. I mean Akeno must like Issei, why else would she suck his fingers so enthusiastically? Or enjoy watching Rias get jealous over her and Issei''s closeness?
But Natsuki felt a pang in her chest as she thought about Issei and Akeno''s physical closeness, it was not the first time she had felt it, that being after the Rating Game and Akeno had asked if Issei wanted to see her breasts.
Why do I care so much? Why the hell is this bothering me?
Natsuki let out a groan as she could not figure out what she was feeling, all she knew was that she felt like an asshole for unintentionally upsetting Akeno. The Pawn soon went on her way, hoping that she would feel less annoyed after a good night''s rest.
Natsuki''s feelings of annoyance failed to leave her as she stood in the ORC clubhouse with the rest of the Peerage in the presence of two members of the Church.
Rias had told others about the two girls'' visit to Issei''s house the previous night and how one of them was Issei''s childhood friend from the picture with the Holy Sword.
And now they showed up at ORC clubhouse to personally meet with Rias.
The first of the two girls looked just like the picture with herself and Issei, only older. Her chestnut hair was now longer and placed in twin tails. The second girl was just a bit taller than her partner with chin-length blue hair with dyed green fringe on her right-side bangs and brown eyes.
Both wore slightly different white cloaks that covered their bodies, and the second girl had a large sword wrapped in bandages placed on the floor next to them.
They had introduced themselves as Shidou Irina and Xenovia Quarta, respectively.
Rias, Akeno, Xenovia, and Irina sat across from each other on the couches while the rest of the Gremory Devils stood off to the side, in front of the doors.
It was the first time in days that the Peerage had been together as no one had seen or heard from Kiba since their fight with the Stray Devil.
Everyone could feel the anger rolling off the Knight as he directed his venomous glare at the two humans, but neither paid him any mind as they focused on the King and Queen in front of them.
"Three of the Excalibur Swords that were being held by the Church in the Vatican Headquarters were recently stolen." Irina finally said after a tense beat.
Issei''s face scrunched up in confusion, "Wait, you mean the legendary sword Excalibur is actually multiple swords?"
Irina turned to Issei, "Yes, Issei-kun. The true Excalibur was broken a long time ago."
"Now it looks like this." Xenovia said while picking up and unwrapping the sword that she placed next to her. "The broken fragments of Excalibur were gathered and reforged into seven new blades and this is one of them... Excalibur Destruction."
Once the wrappings fell away the weapon was revealed, it was a large rust colored two-handed sword with an axe-like guard, its pummel was long enough that it could be held with three hands, with its huge blade ending at three points.
It was clear that this was one of the ultimate weapons used to kill Devils, the second it was revealed every Devil in the room felt a terrible chill race through their bodies. Fear, awe, and hatred were evident in all of them as they looked upon the sword.
"And mine is called Excalibur Mimic!" Irina exclaimed, showing off the white string tied to her arm, the sword taking on this appearance as it was not in use.
"Okay, we get your point. Now if you don''t mind?" Rias said, wanting to be as far away from the sword as possible.
Xenovia picked up the bandages off the floor and rewrapped her Excalibur Destruction.
Rias sighed "Well, what is it you would like us to do for you today?"
Xenovia began to speak, "As we said earlier, three of the Excalibur Swords in our possession were recently stolen and we believe the thief to be hiding out in this area."
Rias arched an eyebrow, "So these thieves have decided to make my territory their base for their criminal activities. Fine, who do you suspect to be the thief?"
"An executive of the Fallen Angel organization, The Grigori. Kokabiel." Xenovia finished.
Rias had a smirk of disbelief on her face, "Kokabiel, the Kokabiel? One of the Fallen Angel leaders who survived the previous wars... I did not expect to hear the name of one that appears in the Bible."
Irina sighed, "The other day we sent a group of priests and exorcists to this town, but they were completely wiped out."
Natsuki was shocked when she heard this, the fact that not only a group of holy men from the Church but one of the most powerful Fallen Angels to ever exist, were in Kuoh and were fighting each other and none of them noticed was alarming.
How did none of us notice? I mean even if Rias didn''t, surely Sona-senpai and her Peerage would have to have noticed it? For both groups to be caught off guard is worrying. I guess the only reason they''ve come to Rias now is because they''re probably desperate after losing so many of their own. Natsuki thought to herself.
"The reason we have come to you now is-" Irina tried to say but was cut off by Xenovia.
"We demand that you Devils not intervene in this battle between us and the Grigori over the Excalibur Swords." Xenovia said, her eyes narrowing as she stared at the Gremory Peerage.
Rias returned the look in kind, "Did no one teach how to speak with the proper respect? Honestly, what you are saying sounds like an accusation. Do you think myself and the rest of Devils in my territory would side with the Fallen to keep you from obtaining the Holy Swords?"
Xenovia''s expression did not change, "The higher-ups have considered this possibility. I mean, you Devils do find Holy Swords quite detestable. Wouldn''t it make more sense for you to support the Fallen Angels?"
Everyone could feel the magical power within Rias spike, sparks of destruction energy dancing across the Gremory heir''s eyes as she glared at the Holy Sword user.
"And if you do interfere, we will have no choice but to eliminate you. Even if you are the sister of a Maou." Xenovia finished without caring about Rias'' glare or the strength of her magic.
Rias smirked, "You eliminate me? What a fucking joke. Honestly, humans are getting quite arrogant, believing that their little toys and false God are enough to protect them."
Xenovia was about to retort but stopped when Irina grabbed her arm, silently telling her to stand down. Xenovia gritted her teeth but obeyed her partner.
"If you know that I am the sister of a Maou, then it must mean that you have a lot of connections with the Church higher-ups, so let me say this; There is no way I would ever even think of joining the Fallen Angels. I would never do anything to besmirch the name of the House of Gremory or my dear brother." Rias declared.
Xenovia smirked, "Fu. Hearing that is good enough for me. I was only relaying the thoughts of headquarters; I honestly didn''t think the little sister of Lucifer would really be that stupid."
Rias sighed, "Good to know. Then you also know that I will not provide aid to your side either."
"Of course. I trust that we will prevail if you promise not to intervene in anything we may do in this town." Xenovia said.
Rias took on a look of shock, "So, it really is just the two of you? Are you going to try and retrieve the Excalibur Swords from one of the leaders of the Fallen Angels with just the two of you? Are you trying to die?"
"But of course, we don''t intend to die. We will retrieve the Holy Swords." Xenovia said fearlessly to Rias'' questions.
After that the conversation stopped and the two Holy Sword wielders looked at each other and stood up.
"If that is all we will be taking our leave. Let''s go, Irina." Xenovia said.
As the two girls began walking to the exit, they suddenly stopped in front of Issei and Asia.
"I had my suspicions when we met at Hyoudou Issei''s house, but..." Xenovia began speaking, "You''re the ''witch'' Asia Argento, aren''t you?"
Asia''s entire body shook as she was called a witch by the girl in front of her, her skin grew paler, and her eyes filled with unshed tears.
Irina noticed this as she stepped towards the former nun, "So you''re the saint, the former Holy-Maiden? I''ve heard rumors about you, you are said to have the power to heal Devils and Fallen Angels, right? They say that you were excommunicated and that you wound up being sent far away, I never thought that you''d become a Devil though."
Asia continued to tremble, "Well, I um- I guess-I-"
Irina''s expression soon became a somber one, "Don''t worry. We won''t tell anyone that we found you here. I''m sure it would shock those who knew you as a Holy Maiden to find out that you ended up here."
Asia did not know how to react to Irina''s words, standing with a perplexed and uncomfortable expression.
Xenovia looked down at Asia with disgust and contempt. "But to become a Devil, one who was once called a Holy Maiden. You have fallen to the lowest place you could. Tell me, do you still believe in our God?"
Irina looked at her partner incredulously, "Xenovia, how could a Devil possibly maintain her belief in the Lord?"
Xenovia looked at Asia with pity, "That said, there are those who have betrayed the Lord and chosen to live in sin but have not completely forgotten their faith... I feel that you may be one such individual."
Asia''s gaze fell to the floor, "...I could never abandon my faith. I''ve believed in it my whole life and it brought me this far..."
Xenovia closed her eyes for a moment, "Is that so? Then it''s only fitting that we should end your life."
In an instant, Xenovia brandished Excalibur Destruction. "Show me your conviction in the name of the Lord. Sinful though you may be, the Lord will reach out and save your soul."
But before Xenovia could carry out this cleansing of Asia''s soul, Issei jumped forward standing in between the two and glaring at Xenovia.
"Issei, no!"
"Stop! Don''t do it!"
"Everything is alright, please stop Issei!"
Rias, Akeno, and Asia yelled simultaneously.
Issei ignored them as he glared at Xenovia, "Screw you! What right do you have to call Asia a witch?!"
Xenovia smiled, "Believe me; that''s one of the nicest descriptions I have for someone who has done what she has."
"I don''t want to hear it!" Issei screamed. "You pricks are the ones who decided she was a Saint, not Asia! That wasn''t her choice! When Asia needed help, not one of you came to save her! If you cannot see what a kind heart Asia has than you''re just a stupid and worthless as the heads of your so-called Church!"
Find this and other great novels on the author''s preferred platform. Support original creators!
Xenovia scoffed at this, "A genuine Saint can survive on the love of God alone. If Asia makes sacrifices for the love of anyone besides God, then she was never a true saint."
"Asia is more genuine than all your true saints combined. She is especially better than the so-called warriors of God standing in this room." Natsuki spoke up, having had enough of listening to Xenovia insult her friend.
"What did you just say?" Xenovia hissed, turning her glare at Natsuki.
"You heard me. Your whole religion is just a front for the corrupt and evil assholes at the very top to abuse everyone beneath them for their own power and selfish desires and yet you have the nerve to act like you''re better than us. You say that God will ''save Asia'' but it''s nothing but fake shit that you''re using to make her feel bad for something that is not her fault. Those higher-ups and your pathetic God can fuck themselves, they''re all useless anyway." Natsuki replied.
Before Xenovia could rage against Natsuki''s statement, Irina calmly stepped forward. "God''s love is true and just. If her faith had been strong enough, she would have been fine. Or maybe her faith was a lie from the start."
"And who are you to Asia anyway?" Xenovia gritted her teeth not understanding why the Devils before her were fighting for Asia.
Before Natsuki could speak, Issei interrupted. "We''re her friends! Her family! That''s why we help Asia. And that''s why I will protect her and if you even think about laying a hand on her, I will spend the rest of my life making you regret it."
Xenovia scoffed, "You would dare challenge the Church? For such a little Devils you both have such big mouths."
"This is perfect. I''ll take both of you on." Everyone turned to Kiba. The Knight had stepped forward, his gaze never leaving Xenovia and Irina.
Xenovia raised an eyebrow, "And who would you be to suggest such a thing?"
Kiba gave the two girls a cold and hate filled look, "Your superior. Though apparently, I was a failure." After this was said, countless demonic swords appeared in the clubroom, all pointed at Xenovia and Irina.
Irina smiled as she looked at the swords, unfazed by the intimidation tactic. "If it''s a fight you want, then we''ll be more than happy to provide one. Right, Xenovia?"
Xenovia nodded, "Of course. We can''t let a Devil get away with insulting us." Then she turned her head towards Natsuki and Issei. "Especially these two."
Natsuki moved so that she and Xenovia were standing face to face. "If you want to get your ass kicked so badly than I''ll-"
"Your fight is with me." Issei said, cutting Natsuki off.
Okay, he has to stop fucking doing that. Natsuki thought in annoyance as she looked over at the other Pawn. "What are you talking about, Issei?"
"They insulted Asia. I can''t let that stand. Anyone who messes with her, messes with me." Issei said to her, knowing that he had to be the one to fight. The day that Asia became a Devil, Issei swore to always protect her, to always fight for her, so this battle had to his and his alone.
Issei felt that it was truly time he stood up and showed everyone that he was strong, he could not keep relying on Natsuki to fight his battles for him because he was too weak.
Natsuki saw the resolve on Issei''s face and backed away. Even though she wanted to fight and show the humans in front of them what happens when to mess with someone she cares about, she knew that Issei''s mind would not be changed, she also knew that Kiba was itching for the confrontation himself. "Fine, but you better not lose, Issei. Especially not to people like them."
Issei nodded his head and soon followed the humans and Kiba out the door. Asia and Koneko quickly followed, leaving Natsuki and her senpais in the clubroom.
Rias sighed, "So much for deescalating the situation."
"You saw the look on Kiba''s face, Buchou. This was going to happen regardless of what niceties could have been said." Akeno told her friend.
Rias groaned, "I know, you''re right, Akeno." Rias then turned to her Pawn, staring at the younger girl with a tried expression.
Natsuki shrugged, "They should not have come in here preaching about the love of God and how Asia was a sinner who had fallen so low that she did not deserve to live any longer. Self-righteous and delusional idiots like that are the worst breed of garbage."
Natsuki, even before becoming a Devil, had an incredibly low opinion of organized religion. In her eyes, all organized religions were just cults that used their doctrines as ways to subjugate the masses. The few at the top used their ''faith'' as shields to commit the most depraved of actions in the shadows while calling those that did not bend to their will or fit outside the norm, sinners and abominations.
Rias shook her head at the Pawn''s response before leaving the room. Akeno sighed and was going to follow Rias but stopped when she felt Natsuki grab her arm.
"I-I didn''t mean to make you upset the other day. I''m sorry, Akeno-senpai." Natsuki whispered, feeling nervous as the words left her mouth. Since she had walked in on Akeno and Issei, the Pawn and Queen had not had a direct conversation with each other. Normally if someone did not speak or acknowledge her, Natsuki would continue with her life, not caring about that person nor their individual opinions of her.
But for the last few days it felt like a rock had been sitting in her stomach whenever Akeno and herself would be in the same vicinity, but Akeno would ignore her.
Akeno was surprised, knowing that Natsuki was not an apologetic person, usually standing her ground on the things she said. She was also surprised because she did not believe that Natsuki needed to apologize to her, it was her own overthinking and subsequent embarrassment over the situation that led to this.
Akeno rested her hand on top of Natsuki''s, "Its fine, Natsuki-chan. You don''t have to apologize to me, I was the one who overreacted."
Natsuki shook her head, "No, I do. I shouldn''t have assumed what your feelings were and said that you were going to be in Issei''s harem. That was rude and inappropriate, I should have known better."
Akeno smiled, "Thank you for caring, Natsuki-chan." Akeno felt her heartbeat faster and her stomach flutter as she stared into Natsuki''s burgundy red eyes.
Natsuki''s cheeks burned as Akeno smiled at her, it was one of the Queen''s real smiles, not the fake smile she constantly showed the rest of the world. I want to see more of it. "Of course, I care. You''re important to me."
Akeno forced herself to look away from Natsuki to hide her embarrassment. "You''re important to me too, Natsuki."
The two teenagers stood silently as neither knew how to continue the conversation, both were simulations happy and embarrassed about what the other had said.
Eventually Akeno cleared her throat, "We should go outside. The others are probably waiting for us so they can start the fight.
"Oh. Yeah, let''s go." Natsuki said, walking to the door and holding it open, waiting for Akeno to walk past.
The fuck is wrong with me? Every time I''m around Akeno, she makes me turn into an idiot. It''s impossible for me to act normally. Natsuki thought as she and Akeno walked out to the field where the Holy Sword wielders and the rest of their Peerage were waiting.
"Before we begin, allow me to confirm something..." Xenovia started as she and Irina stood next to each other directly across from Issei and Kiba with the girls of the ORC a few feet behind them. Xenovia looked between the two servants and met Rias'' eyes.
"...This is a private matter that needn''t concern the Church at large. We won''t make anything more of it, and neither will you? Is that correct?"
Rias used her magic to form a large barrier around the surrounding area. "Yes, that is correct." Besides, Yuuto will not rest until this is over, after all...
Xenovia raised her sword high, "The power of Rias Gremory''s Peerage and that of one of our alleged ''seniors''. I shall test them both then."
Kiba then began to chuckle, his entire body shaking as his laughter filled the air. Xenovia glared at the Knight, "Why are you laughing?"
A cruel smirk formed on Kiba''s face, "Because the one thing I''ve always wanted to destroy more than anything has appeared willingly before my very eyes. I couldn''t be happier." A field of swords sprouted around Kiba, showing his resolve to destroy the Holy Swords before him.
"[Sword Birth]?" Xenovia asked, "Now I remember. During the Holy Sword Project, there was one subject facing disposal that managed to escape. So that was you?"
The smirk left Kiba''s face as his eyes became colder, branding Xenovia under his thirst for revenge. More swords sprouted around Kiba as the Knight became angrier from the reminder of his traumatic past.
"Issei-Kun!" Irina shouted drawing said Pawn''s attention away from Xenovia and Kiba and onto herself. "We finally see each other again after so long and it turns out you''ve become a Devil! God must be testing my will to overcome this traumatic heartbreak! If I can prove I''m strong enough, I will be that much closer to Him!"
Issei sweat dropped at the proclamation, "Yeah, I''m pretty sure none of this has anything to do with me. But whatever."
"I''m sorry Issei. This hurts me much more than it hurts you, but for your sins you shall now face the wrath of my Excalibur!" Irina yelled, charging at Issei with her sword drawn.
"Fine. You want to go there?" Issei said as his [Boosted Gear] appeared. "[Boosted Gear]!"
[Boost!]
"Amen!" Irina shouted as she closed the distance between them and drew her sword downward. Issei just barely dodged the attack, having part of his shirt slashed in the process.
"What the hell?! That was so dangerous! I thought this was a friendly fight?!" Issei shouted while inspecting his damaged shirt.
Irina paid this no mind as a small blush formed on her cheeks and she rocked her body back and forth. "Oh! To return to my hometown only to be forced to kill one of my oldest friends? Alas, fate can be so cruel!"
"Issei, try to avoid her direct attack!" Rias shouted from the sidelines.
"Yeah, that was the plan. Thanks." Issei replied while calling out another [Boost!].
"... The Red Dragon Emperor''s Hand? That with Asia Argento''s [Twilight Healing], the other Pawn''s [Ethereal Domination] and your [Sword Birth], you Devils certainly have a fair amount of the sacred pagan treasures." Xenovia said she and Kiba prepared to battle.
"I have another power." Kiba began as he pulled one of his swords out of the ground, "One that comes from my fallen comrades. With this power, I will destroy all the Excaliburs and I will annihilate their wielders!"
Kiba rushed at Xenovia, using this to push her backwards. Xenovia landed on her feet, holding her sword up just in time to block an oncoming strike from him.
"Just being touched by a Holy Sword can injure a Devil. They''re at a huge disadvantage." Akeno said as the girls continued to watch the fights.
"Kiba can manage with his speed, but Issei..." Rias trailed off as they all turned their attention to Issei and Irina''s fight.
Just then Irina slashed at Issei''s left arm, but there was no damage, ands no physical reaction by Issei to the strike.
"Huh, that doesn''t seem to be bothering him all that much." Rias said with pleasant surprise.
"Or at all. But that left arm is the Dragon itself after all." Akeno added.
Issei''s [Boosted Gear] continued to charge itself up, increasing Issei''s power and speed, allowing him to slowly close the gap between them.
I''ll just keep dodging and bide my time until I can find an opening. Then I can use my Dress Break! Issei thought as his face became increasingly lecherous.
"Why the hell is he making that disgusting face?" Irina whispered to herself.
"...Please be careful. Issei-senpai has a move that allows him to tear the clothes of the body of any girl he touches." Koneko said to Irina, warning the older girl of Issei''s intentions.
"What? Their clothes?!" Irina said in shock.
"Koneko-chan! Why are you revealing my secret move to the enemy?!" Issei yelled.
Koneko looked at Issei with nothing but contempt and disgust. "Because you are the enemy of all women. Nothing but a disgusting parasite."
Issei''s head feel in despair, "Sometimes the things you say really hurt."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "Seriously Issei? Why can''t you come up with an actual attack instead of this bullshit?"
"I can hardly believe how you ended up, Issei. It''s bad enough that you have become a Devil, but to fall to this level of depravity? Oh Lord! Please forgive this sinful pervert!" Irina cried out as her view of Issei instantly changed.
"Hey! Don''t look at me with those pitying eyes!" Issei yelled indignantly.
"...The absolute worst." Koneko said afterwards.
"Ise-san! If you were craving for a woman''s body, then you could have said it to me¡! I wouldn''t mind sacrificing my body for Ise-san." Asia exclaimed, jealous that Issei was once again focusing on the body of another woman and not her own.
"Self-sacrifice! Just to be expected from a former Christian, Asia-san! WAIT! Don''t say something bold like that out of the blue!" Issei screamed.
This caused the fight between Xenovia and Kiba to temporarily stop as both took in the Pawn''s actions and desires.
"I see. So, he truly is the personification of lust. From the start, he did strike me as a very lewd and greedy Devil." Xenovia said as she stared scornfully at Rias'' first Pawn.
"I''m sorry about him." Kiba said as he bowed to both Irina and Xenovia.
"Don''t apologize for me!" Issei screamed at Kiba, growing angrier over everyone''s scathing comments and opinions about him. Damnit! Why I''m I the only one being treated like this?!
The fight soon continued when Kiba sheathed his sword back in the dirt and pulled out two others. The first was his Fire Sword and the second was his Ice Sword.
"It''s time for you to burn and then freeze!" Kiba rushed at Xenovia, waving both swords and creating streams of fire and ice as he moved.
"How na?ve." Xenovia said as she destroyed both swords with a single strike from her Excalibur, turning them to dust. Her feat of strength was not yet done, as Xenovia''s strike went onto destroy the ground around her, forcing Kiba to jump back and leaving a crater at the base of her feet.
Kiba was speechless as he watched both of his demonic swords were destroyed with a single swing. What destructive power!
"My Excalibur Destruction is the embodiment of ruin. There is nothing it can''t destroy." Xenovia smirked.
"So strong, despite not even being the True Excalibur. Destroying all seven will not be an easy task..." Kiba said disparagingly, his facing becoming bitter.
"How the hell did she do that?" Issei asked, thinking that Kiba''s goal of destroying the even Excaliburs was becoming more impossible as he saw the damage that just one was capable of.
"Don''t forget about me Issei! Our fight is just about over!" Irina yelled, running faster than she had before and instantly closing the distance between her and Issei.
Issei''s eyes widened as Excalibur Mimic was now centimeters away from his face. Issei quickly lifted his Sacred Gear in front of him, hoping to grab the blade. He underestimated Irina''s strength as the force of the strike sent Issei flying backwards like a bullet.
Issei hit the ground hard, rolling a few times before coming to a stop and lying on the ground in a heap. The Pawn did not have time to think about the pain he was feeling, having to roll out of the way to avoid Irina''s second attempt on his life.
Issei jumped to his feet, "That''s it! Let''s go [Boosted Gear]!"
[Explosion!] Ddraig shouted from within the Sacred Gear.
Issei could feel the power surging throughout his body. A twisted look appeared on Issei''s face as he was now strong enough to use his Dress Break effectively.
"Sorry for stripping you." Issei said, using his new speed to rush behind Irina without her even noticing.
Irina backflipped over Issei just as he was going to touch her, "How obscene!"
Irina increased her speed to avoid Issei''s lecherous fingers, but the Holy Sword wielder noticed that Issei was continuing to get faster.
"Oh my. Issei-kun''s movements are looking sharper than usual." Akeno said trying to not sound judgment as she spoke.
Koneko had no such feelings, "...Senpai''s pervy instincts are enhancing his physical abilities. He is so much of a pervert that the increase is very noticeable."
Natsuki slapped her hand against her forehead, "I should have just fought Irina myself."
"At least he is trying to win." Rias tried to find the bright side of the ''fight'' they were witnessing, but her tone lacked its normal confidence.
Natsuki gave Rias a deadpanned stare, "Only so he can see Irina''s breasts."
Before the two could continue their conversation, Issei lunged at Irina again. The human ducked when she saw the Devil, causing Issei to go flying over her.
Issei was heading towards Asia and Koneko and his hands touched their shoulders. The girls'' uniforms exploded in a flurry of cloth, leaving them both completely naked.
Asia and Koneko used their arms to try and cover their bodies as the others stared at them, shocked by Issei''s accidental use of Dress Break.
The only sounds that could be heard were the clash of Kiba and Xenovia''s swords and the blood dripping from Issei''s nose.
"Ko¡Koneko-chan! You have it wrong! This is a mistake! Well, it did work! But I still think that even small boobies are important! Huh? What am I saying? That''s not it! It''s because Shidou Irina dodged it! I wasn''t aiming for you and Asia! B¡But thank you very much! I will just thank you just in case¡" Issei stuttered as he saw Koneko''s body begin to shake as she glared at him.
"...You super pervert!" Koneko yelled, giving Issei a devastating punch to the gut, sending the pervert flying into the air.
Issei violently hit the ground, creating a small crater from the impact. The Pawn coughed up blood from the critical hit.
Natsuki sighed as she quickly went back into the clubhouse. When she returned, Natsuki was holding a duffel bag, pulling out two large sweatshirts and tow pairs of gym shorts.
"Here." Natsuki said as she handed them to Asia and Koneko. Both girls thanked Natsuki as they quickly took the clothes and put them on.
"Why do you have a duffel bag filled with clothes?" Rias asked.
"After what happened in the Familiar Forest, I figured it would be best to have extra clothes. Especially with Issei''s Dress Break now in the mix." Natsuki explained.
Irina walked over to Issei''s crumpled form and repeatedly poked him. "Issei-kun, are you alive? I believe this is divine retribution for creating such an indecent attack. Should you live to fight again, would you please stop using that move?"
Issei slowly pushed himself to his knees, trying his best to stand. "...N-no way. That''s my special technique. I put all my talent, all my magic into it... I''m going to keep blo-blowing away girls clothes no matter what... The real question is whether I should continue with this move or make another that makes clothes invisible."
Issei suddenly lurched forward, shakingly standing on his feet. "I''ll continue fighting until I can blow away girls'' clothes just by looking at them!"
Irina''s face lost its color as she took in Issei''s determination. What is wrong with him? Is his perversion really this strong?!
"My libido is my power, my strength!" Issei aimed a punch at Irina''s head but the human ducked and jumped back.
Issei then lowered himself to the ground, trying to deliver a sweeping kick to Irina''s legs. Irina noticed this and once again jumped back.
As this happened, Issei kicked off the ground to uppercut her...
SWING
Issei''s uppercut had missed Irina''s chin and with sharpen eyes, Irina swung her sword to the side, just barely grazing the Devil''s stomach.
At first, Issei thought he was fine as the cut was about two centimeters long, but the Pawn fell to his knees, feeling all of his energy leaving him. The pain was immense as smoke began emanating from the small wound.
"This is the damage caused by a Holy Sword. Devils and Fallen Angels get their power and existence erased by receiving damage from the Holy Sword to their body. If it were a bit deeper, then it would have been critical." Irina explained once she saw the painful confusion on Issei''s face.
It was just a graze! Is such a small cut enough to get me on my knees!? The Pawn thought.
[Reset!] Issei''s Sacred Gear exclaimed. Issei looked at his arm in shock, the time for the Boosted Gear activation was finished, causing Issei to lose the boosted power within his body.
"If you had another boost, then you could have evaded that attack, and we could have had a proper match. You lost because you used your Sacred Gear while not knowing the power difference between yourself and your opponent. This ''fight'' is over." Irina said as her Excalibur returned to its rope form and she wrapped it around her arm.
Issei fell forward, lying flat on the ground. Damn it. It was no use, I can''t at all... I lost? Did I make a fool of myself in front of Buchou and Asia? Fucking hell!
Rias let out a sigh, "You are right. Yes, Shidou Irina, I officially acknowledge your win."
Issei and Irina''s fight was not the only one that had reached its end as Kiba and Xenovia continued to square off.
"Let''s see which is the strongest! The power of destruction of your Holy Sword or my Devil swords?!" Kiba yelled, summoning a giant sword with a powerful aura around it. The blade had a jagged shape and stood more than two meters tall.
Kiba then swung the sword with such force that a wave of magic flew at the human. However, Xenovia was unimpressed, letting out a disappointed sigh.
"What a shame... you made the wrong decision."
GACHIN!
Kiba''s sword instantly broke apart, sending large fragments in every direction. Xenovia''s Excalibur easily destroyed Kiba''s demonic sword.
"Your greatest strength is the variety of swords you can create and your speed. You would need a lot of strength to swing a gigantic sword like that, causing you to lose the speed you are so proud of. Are you seeking a destructive power? From your fighting style, it''s something unnecessary. Don''t you even know that?" Xenovia said as she stared the Knight down.
Before Kiba could respond, Xenovia rammed the pommel of her sword hilt deep into Kiba''s stomach. The force of the hit created a shockwave behind Kiba, showing that even the pommel of the Holy Sword still contained its devastating power.
"Gahh!" Kiba fell to his knees and vomited.
"Even if it''s not a strike with the blade, that hit just now will be enough to stop you from standing for a while." Xenovia glared at Kiba and turned around.
"...Wa...wait!" Kiba reached his hands towards her, but everyone here knew that the match was over. Akeno unsealed the barrier and the red aura that covered the area disappeared.
"Senpai, I suggest you don''t allow your emotions to overtake you the next time we fight." Xenovia then looked at Rias. "Rias Gremory, I trust that you will not interfere as we discussed earlier. Also, you should train your servants a bit more, their battle styles need some work."
Kiba glared at Xenovia with a strong hatred in response.
Xenovia then looked at Issei, "I will tell you one more thing; The Vanishing One has already awoken. You will meet him eventually, but in your current state you''ll never win."
"Will you face off against the Vanishing One as well, Sukehiro Natsuki?" Xenovia asked as she walked past said Pawn.
"The White Dragon is Issei''s to fight, not mine." Natsuki responded, "But if they want a fight, I''ll give them one. And I''ll beat their ass into the dirt."
Xenovia huffed at the reply, annoyed by Natsuki''s arrogance. She picked up her discarded cloak, rewrapped her Holy Sword, and walked away.
"Wait for me, Xenovia!" Irina shouted as she rushed to grab her own things.
She then turned to Issei. "Then I guess it''s like that, Issei-kin. Tell me when you next want to get judged. Amen." Irina winked at the boy and ran after her partner.
The ORC watched the two humans as they left the school grounds, neither looking back as they faded into the distance.
"Are you okay?" Asia asked as she raised a hand to Issei''s stomach to heal the wound Irina gave him, the warm green colored light made from her Sacred Gear surrounded him and healed his wound.
"I''m sorry, I showed you a pathetic side of me earlier." Issei said as he thought about how easily Irina was able to beat him.
Asia shook her head, "I''m just glad your wound was small after getting cut by a Holy Sword. I was really worried, thinking Ise-kun could have vanished."
"I''m also sorry that I blew your clothes off." Issei apologized again as he saw the spare clothes that Natsuki had given the girl on her body.
"Don''t apologize or encourage him, Asia-senpai. He''s still a pervert." Koneko said from her place on the couch, still angry over Issei''s actions.
Issei''s head fell in despair, "I said I was sorry! It was really dumb of me!"
Natsuki snorted, "You should be sorry. Irina was right; if you hadn''t wasted your boosts trying to strip her and actually fought, you could have won."
"Wait, Yuuto! Where do you think you''re going?" Rias yelled, interrupting the discussion between her servants.
"You do realize that I never gave you permission to leave me. Remember you are a Knight of the House of Gremory." Rias stated, trying to stop Kiba from leaving.
"I know, Buchou. And I am sorry." Kiba replied as he walked to the door.
"Yuuto!" Rias yelled again, but Kiba ignored her and opened the door, shutting it loudly behind him.
"Oh no! He left." Asia said sadly.
Rias'' face fell to the floor as her eyes dimmed. "Oh, Kiba. Why now?"
"Damn. He''s defiantly going after those girls from the Church and Kokabiel." Natsuki muttered to herself.
"We can''t just let him do that. As much as I hate to admit it, that pretty boy is our friend." Issei whispered, hearing Natsuki''s statement.
Natsuki turned to the other Pawn, "And what do you expect us to do about it?"
Issei said nothing, simply leaning back in his seat and smirking at the girl.
Well, that look is not comforting at all, it means we''re about to do something dumb and reckless. But Issei''s right, we can''t let Kiba get hurt on his quest for revenge, no matter how much he pushes us all away. Natsuki thought, dreading what Issei''s plan was to stop Kiba.
An Alliance Between Enemies
The Next Day
Natsuki did not know what to expect when she went to Issei''s house the next day when he said he had a plan to help Kiba.
"You want us to ask Xenovia and Irina if they''ll let us destroy the Holy Swords?" Natsuki asked.
This however, was not it.
"Yeah! I mean, destroying the swords would benefit everyone! Kiba can get his revenge and Xenovia and Irina can compete their mission." Issei stated.
Natsuki did not like the idea of working with those girls, but was willing to put that aside because of the greater threat. Although, there was a problem with Issei''s plan, "What about Rias-Buchou?"
Issei blinked, "Buchou?"
"Yeah, Rias made it clear that she was not going to involve herself and the Peerage in the fight between the Fallen and the Church. There''s no way she would agree to this." Natsuki explained.
"Then we just won''t tell her!" Issei responded.
Natsuki groaned, "Issei, how are we going to be able to do this by ourselves? We are not only going against weapons that can kill us, but Kokabiel, one of the most powerful Fallen Angels to ever exist."
Issei thought about what Natsuki said, she was right the odds would be against them if they went by themselves.
But we have to do this, we''re Sacred Gear holders and dragons, our strength should be enough to help Kiba, it has to be. He thought.
Issei then jumped off his bed as an idea came to him, "We can ask Saji!"
Natsuki looked at him confused, "The smug Pawn from Sona-Kaichou''s Peerage?"
"Yeah! Not only is he a Pawn just like us, but he has a Sacred Gear too! I remember him bragging about it before." Issei yelled, "And he''s apart of another group, so we don''t have to worry about him telling Buchou. It''s perfect!"
Natsuki was not convinced, she doubted that Saji was as strong as Issei thought, remembering when they first met, how she sensed his low magical energy. But then she remembered that her own magical energy was average, and Issei''s was terrible, and despite this they were both strong, so she did not have room to judge.
Natsuki sighed, "Fine, let''s ask Saji for help. But you know that even if we do win, Rias will still punish us for disobeying her."
"Huh? But she didn''t punish us when we went to go save Asia?" Issei asked, he did not think this would be any different as in a way they were trying to save Kiba.
"She didn''t, but that was different; Rias was basically telling us to go without saying it aloud, that way it wouldn''t look like she was picking a fight with the Fallen. This is far more serious than what happened before, this could actually lead to war." Natsuki stressed, trying to make Issei see what the problem was.
"There will already be a war if the Church and the Fallen start fighting each other. This fight will be unavoidable, Buchou can''t avoid a war in Kuoh by trying to stay neutral." Issei countered.
Natsuki leaned back in the desk chair she was sitting in, "That still doesn''t change the fact that Rias wanted to stay out of it, and she''ll have no choice but to fight if we''re caught in the middle of it."
Before Issei could reply, a small glowing green aura appeared around his left hand and Ddraig stared speaking. "Just go ahead and do it! Who cares if you get in trouble later, helping your friend now is what''s important!"
"Huh? Ddraig? You''re speaking to me again?" Issei asked.
Natsuki stared at Issei''s hand in shock, "Ddraig? The Red Dragon Emperor?"
"Nice to meet ya! It''s been a while since I''ve met one of Lux''s partners." Ddraig greeted.
Suddenly a small white aura appeared over Natsuki''s chest. "Ddraig, it has been some time since we have last spoke. About forty years if I remember correctly." Lux''s calm voice rang out.
"Haha! It''s good to see ya too, big sis! How''s your Devil been treating ya? Mine wants to become the Harem King or something." Ddraig laughed.
"Unlike your partner, my golden champion has better goals than that. I will make Natsuki the strongest to ever live." Lux answered, her pride in Natsuki evident as she spoke.
Despite not see his face, it was clear that Ddraig was excited. "Ah, I see. So, you finally want to join me and that white bastard and fight it out? Finally, a three-way battle between dragons!"
Lux scoffed, "No, I do not want to join you and Albion''s petty squabbling. I would lose my mind taking part in such a never ending and pointless endeavor."
Ddraig sighed, "Well you can''t make Natsuki the strongest without fighting me first! You''re going to have to knock me off my throne first!"
"Why are you encouraging me to beat you? And even if I did, you are not the strongest so beating you would still be pointless." Lux drawled.
"Okay hold up! This is so fucking weird!" Issei stopped the dragons'' conversation with one another. "Ddraig, you''ve been ignoring me for the last few days and now you finally come out just to talk to your friend?!"
"Eh, what can I say, you were boring me these past few days." Ddraig quipped.
Issei threw his head back in annoyance, "Whatever, you lazy lizard. C''mon Natsuki, let''s get Saji."
Ddraig huffed, "That''s what I was saying before. You should go fight those Fallen Angels and destroy the Holy Swords. At least this might make you a bit stronger, push us closer to fighting that bastard."
"Wait, I''ve been meaning to ask, who is this ''white bastard'' you''ve been talking about? I even remember Xenovia telling me about the ''White One'' and how I wouldn''t be able to beat them." Issei asked, remembering the instances when this figure was mentioned to him.
"Issei, the ''white one'' is Albion, The White Dragon Emperor. You know, the other half of The Two Heavenly Dragons? How do you not know this?" Natsuki asked, confused by her friend''s lack of knowledge about something that was very important to him specifically.
"Huh, what? I have never heard of them? How do you know?" Issei asked.
Natsuki looked at him strangely, "I read about both Ddraig and Albion when we were at Rias'' villa. And Lux told me about him when she told me that she had two brothers."
"Honestly Ddraig, why am I not surprised that you did not give your wielder any crucial information about his destiny as your host. You are just setting him up for failure." Lux added, disappointed in her fellow dragon''s lack of foresight.
Issei immediately looked at his left arm, "If this is something I should know, why haven''t you told me?
There was a pause before the dragon answered, "I didn''t tell you about the Vanishing Dragon because I didn''t want you to freak out."
"So then tell me. I''m ready to hear the truth." Issei fiercely said.
Ddraig sighed, telling the beginning of his story. "You know of the Great War that took place between Angels, Fallen Angels, and Devils, right?"
"Yeah, I do." Issei replied.
"The war was not just between the big three powers of the Christian faith; all sorts of beings lent their strength to each side. Fairies, ghosts, western monsters, eastern spirits, even humans. Only the dragons refused to ally themselves with any side."
"Why?" Issei asked.
This time, Lux spoke, "By nature dragons are extraordinarily powerful embodiments of free will, Issei, we are inherently selfish creatures. There were a few who joined the war simply to amuse themselves and satiate their bloodlust, but most dragons saw the war as none of their concern."
Issei looked disinterested, "So the dragons basically thought that all other races were beneath them and those who joined only did so to crush everyone else under their feet."
"Don''t lose focus, Issei. There''s still an important part of the story that was caused by this superiority." Ddraig told his partner, "During the conflict, two dragons appeared and began to fight their own war with each other. They were dragons of the highest class, comparable to even God and the Devil Kings. They were completely indifferent to the war going on around them, their violent battles resulting in casualties on all sides, there was no greater nuisance to the three factions."
"What was the fight about anyway? Lux told me that she didn''t know, but it had to be something major, right?" Natsuki asked the red dragon.
"A stupid trivial matter that those idiots blew out of proportion." Lux answered.
"Hey, it wasn''t stupid!" Ddraig yelled.
"Do you even remember what the fight was about?" Lux asked.
Ddraig said nothing, knowing that Lux was right, he could not remember what had started the fight between himself and Albion. It had been so long that all he could recall was that one of them said something to the other, Lux tried to calm them down, this failed, and they ended up fighting.
"That is what I thought." Lux snarked.
Ddraig growled before continuing the story, "Whatever. In their fury, the three factions decided to join forces for the first time to take down the two dragons. Enraged at having their battle interrupted, the two dragons lashed out against God, the Devil Kings, and the Govenor General of the Fallen, as that would not stand. In the end the two dragons'' bodies were cut to pieces and scattered to the wind, their souls locked away inside the bodies of humans, as Sacred Gears."
"So, the three warring factions made an allegiance just to get rid of these fighting dragons?" Issei asked, thinking of just how bad the dragons'' fighting had to be for these three sides who famously hated one another to put aside their differences just to take them down.
"Using the humans their souls had been sealed in as intermediaries, they would clash repeatedly throughout the ages. Whenever their respective human hosts died, the dragons would temporarily cease to function. Their souls would wonder the earth until the next human vessels fit to contain their souls were born." Ddraig finished.
"So, I''m guessing you and this Vanishing Dragon were the two dragons in the story?" Issei asked, already knowing the answer.
"Indeed. I came to dwell within you, and you became a Devil. It''s been quite some time since I''ve occupied one so I''m rather looking forward to our rematch. I wonder how things will turn out this time..." Ddraig spoke, wistfully remembering his last encounter with Albion and his host.
"So do you think I can beat the White Dragon Emperor then?" Issei asked.
"Ha, nope. At your level, we would be horribly crushed." Ddraig said without hesitation.
Issei hit the floor, feeling a mixture of shock, despair, and anger. "What?! How can you have such little faith in me?! You couldn''t even try to spare my feelings and lie?!"
"Sorry, partner, but it''s the truth. It''s not your fault though, you and Natsuki both got your Scared Gears late, so you haven''t had time to come into them. That bastard and his partner have most likely been working together far longer than us." Ddraig explained.
"What do you mean by late? Natsuki and I are seventeen, how can that be late?" Issei wondered.
"Most Sacred Gear wielders unlock theirs when they''re small children, usually through either sheer force of will, an overwhelming desire, or a near death experience. You both grew up fairly protected and safe until your run in with that Fallen Angel."
Issei said nothing deeply think about Ddraig''s words. Then look lifted his left hand in front of his face. "Your right Ddraig, I am weak. You said an overwhelming desire and will is what can summon your power, but I have failed."
Issei then rose to his feet looking more determined than ever. "Raynare, Riser, and now Xenovia and Irina, they have showed me the error of my ways; I need to make my desires stronger; show everyone just how deep my love of women truly goes! I am going to become a High-Class Devil and then the Harem King!"
"A-h w-what?" Ddraig stuttered, wondering just how the Pawn could have reached this conclusion from what he had told him.
Natsuki gave a depressing sigh, "Just when I thought he was going to say something impactful and inspiring, he lets me down."
"I do not know why you were expecting anything different; I have seen plenty of men like Issei, those who have great qualities, but waste them on strange pursuits." Lux said as the two watched Issei and Ddraig take about the Devil''s dream for the largest and greatest harem.
Natsuki hummed and looked at her chest, "There was something I wanted to ask you. Is the reason why we don''t refer to you, Ddraig, and Albion as the Three Heavenly Dragons because you became a Scared Gear later than they did?"
"Not really. My brothers are called the Heavenly Dragons because of the destruction they caused during the war. After I saw that their fight was inevitable, I stopped trying to end the fighting and left, leaving them to their faiths." Lux answered.
Natsuki could understand why Lux did this, dragons are prideful creatures, if Ddraig and Albion were going to fight than nothing would have been able to stop them, especially not Lux by herself.
"If the three factions didn''t go after you like they did with Ddraig and Albion, how did you become a Sacred Gear?"
Lux did not immediately respond, Natsuki had almost thought that the dragon had retreated into her mind, but the continued glow on her chest told her otherwise. "Lux? Is something wrong? I didn''t mean to-"
"It is okay, Natsuki." Lux spoke. "I am sorry, but I am not ready to talk about this just yet. The story behind my transformation into a Sacred Gear is not one that I enjoy reliving."
"I get it. You can tell me whenever you feel ready, I''ll be here to listen." Natsuki said softly, not wanting to push Lux into talking about something that made her uncomfortable.
"Thank you, ?????? ??????." Lux said. "Now, let us end the stupid conversation between those two idiots and destroy the Excaliburs."
Natsuki smiled, walking to Issei, and smacking the back of his head. Issei glared at the girl and the two left his house, he then pulled out his phone and called Saji, asking him to meet them at the shopping district.
"And? What was the reason for calling me?" Genshirou Saji said, looking across the table at Issei, Koneko, and Natsuki.
"...He''s right. What are you two trying to do?" Koneko asked Issei and Natsuki as she held onto the collars of their shirts, refusing to let go.
Did you know this text is from a different site? Read the official version to support the creator.
The pair had coincidentally met the Rook on their way to meet Saji at a dessert shop in the middle of town. At first, Koneko thought nothing of it, but this was thrown out the window when Issei became terrified and tried to run away when she made eye contact with him.
Natsuki pinched the bridge of her nose as she watched Koneko tackle Issei to the floor, annoyed that he not only made them look incredibly suspicious, but that he thought he could outrun their kouhai.
Koneko pulled one of Issei''s arms behind his back and bent it until he cracked and told her where they were going. Koneko then grabbed them both by their collars and dragged them to the shop.
Issei removed his collar from Koneko''s grasp and faced Saji, "The reason I called you out here was to help Natsuki and I to destroy the Holy Swords that the Fallen Angels stole."
"Hell No! Are you two fucking insane?! You realize both our Kings will punish us just for being involved with Holy Swords, right? And yet you still want to destroy them? We''re going to get murdered for sure!" Saji screamed, his face frozen in terror at the thought of facing weapons that could so easily kill them.
"C''mon Saji, you''re the only other Devil we know that could help us." Issei pleaded. He did not know the other members of the Student Council well enough to ask and there would be no way he would be able to convince them to help, Issei and Natsuki also could not ask the members of their own Peerage for that same reason.
"That''s easy for you to say! You guys have Rias-Buchou, she''s strict but at least she''s reasonable. Sona-Kaichou is strict and she''s strict! She loves to punish us when we even so much as think of stepping out of line!" Saji exclaimed, shuddering at the very thought of the Sitri heir.
Before Saji could leave, Koneko grabbed the back of his shirt and pulled him to the ground.
"I had a feeling you would try and run away. It seems to be a Pawn trait." Koneko said in her usual monotone voice.
"I just want to go home!" Saji whimpered, desperately trying to escape Koneko''s grip, but was unable to move an inch.
"So, you want to collaborate with the Church?" Koneko asked Natsuki and Issei.
"It would make the most sense, those girls said they would rather destroy the swords than allow the Fallen to continue using them." Natsuki replied, "And we already know that Kiba is also trying to destroy them, so our goals align with each other for the moment."
"I''m not sure they''ll be as eager to do this as you two are, though." Koneko said.
"We should at least try! Especially if it means Kiba can keep being a Devil with the rest of us. We got to do everything we can think of!" Issei exclaimed.
Koneko sighed as she stood up, "First, we have to find those girls. I don''t like keeping secrets from Rias-Buchou and Akeno-senpai, but we must do something to help Yuuto-senpai."
"We?" Issei asked confused.
Koneko turned to look at them, "I''m not letting you guys do this alone. We destroy those swords and bring back Yuuto-senpai, together."
"Cool, so does this mean I no longer have to be here anymore since Koneko-chan is helping you?" Saji asked hopefully.
The three Gremory Devils gave him equally unimpressed stares for the question.
"What?" Saji asked.
Twenty minutes later and the four Devils had left the dessert shop and had begun their search for Irina and Xenovia.
"Damnit. Why did you guys take me along? You already have your Rook here, so I''m useless to you." Saji complained.
"We need you because the more of us are here than the stronger we are. And we need all the strength we can get." Issei replied.
Natsuki raised her arms and placed them behind her head. "Besides, we need all the eyes and ears we can get. It''s not going to be easy to find them, you know. It''s not like we''re going to run into a couple of weirdoes in white ropes on Main Street."
"Oh, wait! There they are!" Issei yelled, pointing at the girls standing at the corner of the street. They both had their hoods raised and were standing next to a sign that had ''Help the hand of Love'' written on it. Irina was carrying a bucket in her hands, moving it towards those passing by, hoping to be given some money.
"Oh, what the fucking hell?!" Natsuki angrily shouted.
"Why are you upset? We were looking for them." Koneko asked.
"Because why is it that whenever I say something won''t happen, it does, but when I personally ask something of the universe, I get nothing." Natsuki stated, thinking of all the times she wished for money or acceptance, only to be ignored.
"Life is unfair, you should get over it." Koneko said plainly, giving Natsuki a few pats on the back.
Natsuki grumbled about mean kouhais under her breath as she and the others walked over to the Holy Sword wielders.
"Oh, please give blessings on the wondering sheep before you!" Xenovia said aloud.
"We are pitiful when compared to you, O Lord! Please have mercy on us dear father!" Irina added.
"Or maybe we will." Issei said as the Devils reached the girls.
Xenovia gave them a nasty side eye, "We do not require help from the likes of you."
Natsuki scoffed, "You can stop acting like you''re better than us, you''re literally begging for money off the side of the road."
Xenovia''s glare intensified, "As I said, we don''t-"
GRRRRR!
Xenovia''s face turned bright red at the loud sound of her stomach growling, she wrapped her arms around her midsection and turned around, too embarrassed to look at anyone.
"You know, I could buy you guys something to eat?" Issei offered.
"Really?" Irina asked hopefully.
"Uh, Yeah, of course! But only if you hear what we have to say." Issei replied.
"Hear what?" Xenovia asked, looking at the Pawn with a suspicious glare.
GRRRRR!
BRRRRR!
Both girls'' stomachs growled, and they comically fell to the ground, holding their guts in agony.
"Please buy us food!" The girls rose to their knees and begged.
The four Devils looked at one another, shocked by the humans'' quick change in temperament.
"Delicious! Japanese cuisine is delicious! Don''t you agree? This is heaven!" Xenovia yelled as she devoured her omurice.
"Yes, yes! This is it! Everything I''m putting in my mouth is like food for the soul!" Irina cheered while slurping down her noodles.
Are they really assassins sent by the Church? The devils thought.
"Watching this is a little too intense for me." Saji mumbled, astonished by how much food the girls were eating.
Issei agreed, "Yeah, looks like they were really hungry."
"Here''s your hamburger steak." A waitress said as she put the food down next to the mountain of empty plates at their table.
Half an hour passed before the girls had finally had their full and stopped eating.
"What just happened?" Xenovia asked aloud, horrified by her and Irina''s actions, "Even if this will help build our faith, a Devil saving us must mean the end of days."
"We''ve practically sold our souls to the Devil! How will we ever be forgiven?!" Irina cried, tears streaming down her face, equally horrified at what had just occurred.
Issei slammed his hands against the table, "This is the thanks I get for buying you food?!"
"Get it together." Koneko said.
Issei slumped in the booth, "I''m going to be so fucking broke."
Irina clasped her hand together and closed her eyes, "Lord please have mercy on these kind Devils even if they are Devils." Irina then ended her prayer by using her fingers to draw the cross over her body.
"AAAAAHHH!" The four cried out in pain, each one receiving powerful headaches due to Irina''s prayer.
"For the love of thick thighs! Damn it; we don''t need God''s blessing, so stop it!" Issei screamed.
"Oh! Right, sorry. It''s kind of a habit." Irinia apologized.
"Well? What''s the deal? What did you want to speak with us about?" Xenovia asked, reminding the others of why they were all together in the first place.
"We want to help you destroy the Excalibur swords." Issei proclaimed.
Xenovia''s eyes grew cold, "What?"
Issei then explained to the humans why they had wanted to destroy the Excalibur swords, mentioning Kiba''s quest for revenge, their desire to help him achieve this, and wanting to get rid of the Fallen Angels in Kuoh.
"I understand the situation. I don''t mind letting you take care of one sword, if you can destroy it that is." Xenovia answered.
Irina turned to her partner in shock, "Wait a minute! Are you sure?"
Saji''s head fell in despair at the sight. Damn it! Why couldn''t she say no like I was hoping she would?!
Xenovia sighed, "You know who the other side has, Irina, Kokabiel is incredibly dangerous. Honestly, despite what I said yesterday, it''ll be almost impossible for us to recover all three swords on our own."
"Yeah, I get that, but they''re Devils!" Irina retorted.
"We have less than a twenty percent chance of returning home." Xenovia said despairingly.
Irina shook her head, "We knew the risk we were taking before we got here. This isn''t anything new, Xenovia!"
"True. We were sent by the higher ups, fully prepared to sacrifice our lives for this sacred cause. I know it may come off as weird to you, but I want to continue living and fighting for God."
"I want to as well but..." Irina trailed off, becoming conflicted between her wants and her duty.
"That''s why we won''t ask for help from the Devils, instead, we ask for help from Dragons. The high-ups didn''t tell us not to borrow the strength of two Dragons." Xenovia then looked at Issei and Natsuki, talking about their legendary Sacred Gears.
"I never thought that I would meet the Red Dragon Emperor or the Golden Dragon Empress in a distant country like this. Even if you turned into Devils, I see that the dragon power within you both is still present. If it''s like the legend says, then you can increase your power to that of a Maou and you can absorb the power of all beings amd make it your own, correct? If you gain power to that of a Maou, then you can break the Excaliburs without a sweat. It was God''s doing that we had this meeting." Xenovia said joyfully.
Irina became silent at Xenovia''s words, but her expression showed that she was okay with it for now.
Issei looked at Natsuki, giving their answer when he saw her nod her head. "Okay then, the negotiation was a success. We''ll lend you guys our Dragons'' power."
Issei was about to stand up when Natsuki raised her hand in front of him. "Wait. We still need to tell Kiba about this."
Natsuki then pulled out her phone and called the Knight. The conversation was brief as Natsuki told him that they had a plan to destroy the Holy Swords, but Kiba agreed to meet them at the park before hanging up.
"Then let us head out!" Irina cheered as she and Xenovia exited the restaurant.
Issei was about to stand when their waitress appeared and handed them the bill. Issei''s jaw dropped as he saw the price. "£¤44,000 Yen!"
"They did eat a lot of food. The only thing any of us got was that milkshake Koneko had." Natsuki explained.
"Yeah, they had to have eaten about nine platefuls of food each." Saji added.
Issei could feel his wallet hurting just by looking at the bill. He then slowly turned to Natsuki, making himself look as pitiful as he could. "Hey Natsuki, you want to share the bill with me?"
Natsuki snorted, "Fuck no. You can pay for the food your damn self."
"Oh, come on! Why not?" Issei cried out.
"You were the one who offered to buy them food, it''s not my fault you underestimated their hunger. Besides, I refuse to spend any of my hard-earned money on a bunch of snobbish hypocrites." And with that Natsuki stood up and walked away, standing with Xenovia and Irina outside the restaurant.
Issei then turned to other Pawn, "Saji?"
Saji shook his head, "Nope. Sorry man, I didn''t even want to be here, this is your problem not mine." Saji then gave him a two-finger salute and left as well.
Issei then looked at the Rook, "Koneko-chan?"
Koneko stared at Issei blankly before reaching into her pocket and handing him a bill.
Issei''s face lit up, "Thank you, Koneko-chan! You really are the best-" Issei immediately stopped celebrating when he saw that Koneko had only handed him a £¤2,000 note.
"That''s for my milkshake." Koneko replied.
"Eh?! You''re only paying for your food?!" Issei shouted.
"Yep. Natsuki-senpai is right; you said you were going to buy them dinner so you should pay for it yourself, don''t force us to chip in just because you''re too nice." Koneko said before joining the others.
Issei stood there shocked, letting the weight of what had just happened sink in. Depressed, Issei pulled at his wallet and took out all the money in to pay for the Xenovia and Irina ate.
I''m totally fucked until I get my allowance! Damn you Kiba! I''m going through all this shit for you! I''m definitely going to make him introduce me to one of his hot clients! Issei screamed in his head as he and the others walked to the park.
Kiba had been standing next to the fountain when they arrived in the park, his contempt evident as he looked down at the humans of the group as they drew closer.
"I get it, but I''m quite disappointed that someone who can wield an Excalibur would approve of their destruction." He spoke.
Xenovia refused to take this laying down and unsheathed her sword. "Speaking of disappointment, didn''t you recently abandon your place in the House of Gremory? We could execute you if you would like?"
Kiba growled, a magic circle forming on his hand, "You''re welcome to try if you''d like."
"Stop it. Both of you, we''re trying to cooperate not fight each other." Natsuki said, moving to stand between the two.
Xenovia ignored Natsuki, continuing to speak to Kiba. "You''ve got quite a way with words, for a filthy Devil."
Irina stepped up this time to try and defuse the situation, "We get that you hold a grudge due to the Holy Sword Project, against the Church and the Excaliburs. But Kiba-kun thanks to the work performed back then, research on Holy Sword users has progressed beyond leaps and bounds. It''s only because of those efforts that Xenovia and myself, among others, have managed to achieve compatibility with the swords."
Kiba looked at Irina with nothing but absolute hatred, his killing intent permeated the area, making the air suffocating. "You think that''s enough to make me forget the slaughter of all those test subjects?"
The killing of all those children was an unforgivable crime, a cruelty of the highest order, an especially inhumane act for those who follow God, making Irina unable to respond to Kiba''s question, causing the girl to drop her head down in shame.
Xenovia, however, kept her head high and her face devoid of emotion, appearing to not care about the Knight''s suffering. "It is regarded by the Church as a terrible crime. The individual responsible was punished, labeled a heretic and excommunicated. He''s now working with the Fallen Angels, his name is Valper Galilei, also known as the Archbishop of Slaughter."
"I know Valper. It was all him, he was responsible." Kiba said, his eyes glossing over as he remembered the last time he saw the man, the twisted smile on his face just before his friends were all murdered.
"We believe that the rouge priest Freed Sellzen is also working with him under Kokabiel. It''s not uncommon for there to be collusion among those who have been banned from the Church." Xenovia explained.
Kiba closed his eyes and took a breath, "Well, after hearing that there''s no reason for me not to cooperate with you."
Irina cheered as Xenovia faced the others, "We shall return the favor the food someday, Red Dragon Emperor, Hyoudou Issei." She then handed a folded piece of paper to the Pawn, "If anything comes up, please let us know." And with that the humans left the park.
"Well, I think that went pretty good!" Issei grinned.
"Not good! Not good at all! We could be responsible for another war with the Church if something goes wrong!" Saji screeched, thinking about the ways that this deal could go wrong for them.
"Why did you do this?" Kiba quietly asked the other Devils.
"We''re friends, and we belong to the same Peerage. Besides, you''ve helped me out before, so I thought I''d leaned a hand right back. We all did." Issei answered.
"And if I acted alone, I would cause trouble for Buchou, right?" Kiba asked, partially not believing that the others genuinely wanted to help him.
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "Yeah, Rias would be upset if you went on a rampage, she''d probably blame herself for it too. But we came because you''re our friend and we don''t want you to become a stray or end up dead because of this."
Kiba stared off into the distance, still not convinced that he should allow the others to help him on his quest for revenge.
"Yuuto-senpai," Koneko said as she walked up to him and grabbed the sleeve of his shirt. "If you went away, I''d be lonely without you." Koneko''s usually unemotional face, became filled with grief and anguish, "...I''ll help you, so please don''t leave us."
Kiba became troubled by this show of emotion from his kohai and put on a happy face, "Hahaha. I give up, if Koneko-chan says that to me then I can''t continue so recklessly and run off on my own."
Kiba then turned to the others, more determined than ever. "Okay, I''ll work with you. Thank to you, Issei-kun, Natsuki-chan, we know who our true enemy is, but this isn''t over until those Holy Swords are destroyed."
Issei grinned, "Oh, right! Now we''re officially the Excalibur Destruction Squad!"
"Very creative name." Natsuki said sarcastically, ignoring Issei''s demand for her to shut up.
"Um...does this mean I still have to join too?" Saji asked the four while raising his hand, "Sorry, for being out of the loop but just what do the Holy Swords have to do with Kiba?"
Kiba became somber once more, "...I guess I should tell you about my past."
"Behind the scenes, the Catholic Church once conducted an operation known as the ''Holy Sword Project.'' They experimented on scores of us kids in hopes of producing individuals capable of wielding Holy Swords. The test subjects were young men and women in possession of Sacred Gears, as well as an unusual talent for swordplay. Painful, inhuman experiments were performed on us day after day, believing that we may one day truly achieve something great, we endured the cruel training and experimentation. But in the end, we were marked as disposable. Once it became clear that the experiment failed, we were quickly killed off, simply because we couldn''t manage to synergize with the Holy Swords. After watching my comrades perish and managing to escape, I was about to draw my last breath when I-when I met Buchou." Kiba explained.
He then closed his eyes and clenched his fists, trying not to lose himself in his memories again. "That''s why I want to erase their regrets. I need to make their deaths meaningful, so that all their suffering and pain wasn''t for nothing. I am living on for all of them, because of them, so I must prove that I''m stronger than any Holy Sword."
"GAHHH! Oh Kiba!" Saji cried, tears streaming down his face, racing to hug the Knight. "I had no idea you had such a horribly tragic past! I don''t care about Sona''s punishment anymore! Hyoudou, Sukehiro, count me in! I''ll help you guys out with whatever you need!"
"Yeah? Thanks man." Issei said tentatively, surprised by the sudden change in the other Pawn as he turned to hug him next.
Natsuki put a hand up defensively, not wanting Saji to hug her like he did with Kiba and Issei. "We get it, thanks for staying to help us."
Saji still continued, "To tell the truth Kiba, I used to hate you and your pretty boy ways, but this changes everything!"
Once again, the other Devils were thrown by how different Saji was from when they first met him, the boy in front of them was a good guy and was full of passion.
"All right! This is a good time! If we''re going to be working together, you guys should know a little about me! My dream..." Saji''s face changed as he spoke, his eyes shined, and his smile grew larger. "...Is to knock up Sona-Kaichou so we can get married!"
After hearing Saji''s confession, tear drops began flowing out of Issei''s eyes. Of course. Of course, idiot! This guy! Saji! He''s the same as me! He''s the same kind as me! He has the same understanding of the world as me¡Issei thought to himself.
He then took Saji''s hand and said it straight at him, "Saji! Listen to me! My dream is to grope Buchou''s boobs¡and then suck on them!"
Saji returned the gesture, crying tears of joy as well. "Hyoudouuuu! Do you know what you are saying? Do you understand how hard that dream is, to touch a High-class Devil''s breasts¡ To touch the breasts of your master?"
"Saji, I''ve touched them, I''ve even fondled them." Issei replied more seriously than he had been for most of the day.
Saji''s eyes almost popped out of his skull from shock, "No way! Is that even possible? No, you''ve got to be pulling my leg!"
Issei showed the same intensity, "It''s no lie. Your master''s boobs may be a lofty goal, but they''re not out of reach."
"Sucking it¡!? Sucking Ka¡Kaichou''s boobs¡ You are talking about the nipple right¡? The place where you can suck is the nipple right¡?"
"Dumbass! If you are going to suck boobs, then the nipple is the only thing you can suck! Yes! I''m going to suck the nipple!"
Saji started to cry harder after hearing Issei''s words.
"Saji! We may be useless Pawns just by ourselves, but it''s different if it''s the two of us. We can truly soar if it''s the two of us! We can fight if it''s the two of us! We can do it if it''s the two of us! We can make them pregnant and marry them if it''s the two of us! Let''s have sex with our own masters!"
"Yeah. Yes!"
A new friendship was born, Issei and Saji had become kindred spirits connected by the shared perverted nature and desire to sleep with their beautiful Devil Kings.
As the two celebrated their new bond, Natsuki, Koneko, and Kiba stared at them with varying different emotions.
"...Yep, they''re the worst." Koneko deadpanned.
"Why did we need to know that about either of you? I mean, who just blurts something out like that with such pride?" Natsuki asked aloud.
She already knew about Issei''s various goals he had set for himself upon his journey to becoming the Harem King, but Natsuki did not want to know about Saji''s dream of impregnating the Student Council president.
"You know, after seeing how Saji acted towards Sona-Kaichou when our Peerages were competing to see who would get to go to the Familiar Forest first, this really shouldn''t be surprising us as much as it is." Kiba awkwardly chuckled.
Natsuki groaned, "Am I the only Pawn out there who isn''t a pervert?"
"Probably..." Koneko answered, sympathetically rubbing her senpai''s back when Natsuki let out an even louder groan.
At the end of this ''detour'' in the conversation, the Devils agreed to return to their respective homes and prepare themselves to look for the Holy Swords later in the night.
A Strong Enemy Appears
Over the next few days, the four Devils and two Church agents traveled all throughout Kuoh in search of the Excaliburs, Freed, and the group of Fallen Angels.
Days of dead ends and loose trails had followed them as they were no closer to finding the enemy that was threatening to restart the war between the three factions.
Natsuki let out a yawn and placed her chin in the palm of her hand as she leaned over her desk, tired after spending most of the night searching for the Fallen with the others.
The teenage Devil hoped they found the Excaliburs soon as Rias was starting to become suspicious at the way four of her servants were acting, staring at them curiously but unable to confront them as she had no proof that they were up to anything.
"You guys have been super serious lately, Ise, Natsuki." Motohama said aloud, breaking Natsuki out of her thoughts.
"Eh? Aaah, yeah kinda. Even I have to think about certain things sometimes." Issei replied as Natsuki remained silent.
"Is it that? Were you thinking about groping Rias-senpai''s boobs or Himejima-senpai''s?"
And with this, Natsuki once again tuned out the conversation, not in the mood to deal with the usual tendencies of her three friends.
This did not last long as Natsuki suddenly found soon found her eye line filled with nothing but the skirt of the girls'' school uniform. Natsuki looked up and saw that it was Kiryuu Aika standing in front of her desk, the bespectacled brunette was smirking at her as her gold-colored eyes trailed down her body.
Great, another one to deal with...
"Did you need something, Kiryuu-san?" Natsuki said, actively keeping herself from rolling her eyes.
"I was just telling these clowns that they don''t have a chance of ever comparing to you, not with how... impressive you are." Kiryuu answered, her final words coming out as a suggestive purr.
Natsuki let a groan, "Why did you need to say that?"
This was not the first time that Kiryuu flirted with Natsuki or tried to catch a peek at her, and she knew it would not be the last, but it was still annoying every time she did.
"Because people should know about your enormous size! It honestly makes me worry for Akeno-senpai when you two finally do it." Kiryuu exclaimed.
"Damnit! Stop sexually harassing us! And stop trying to corrupt Asia-chan to your vile ways!" Issei yelled, getting in between Natsuki and Kiryuu.
Natsuki found it ironic and hypocritical that Issei was calling out the other girl for sexual harassment while he, Matsuda, and Motohama did the same thing, and it could be argued that the boys were worse with the actions they took to try and lose their virginity.
Wait, why did she mention Akeno-senpai when she was talking about my dick? Natsuki thought to herself.
Natsuki waited until the boys and Asia started talking about the group going out for karaoke after school and were distracted before standing up and walking over to Kiryuu.
"Why did you mention Akeno-senpai when you were talking about... my thing." Natsuki''s expression was blank even as she inwardly cringed at herself for saying ''my thing.''
Kiryuu was confused at first, but smirked evilly once she realized what Natsuki was asking her, "Because you both want each other, obviously!"
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "Why did I even bother asking you?"
"You know, you shouldn''t deny your feelings, Natsuki-chan! I mean, Akeno-senpai has to be suffering knowing that she cannot get any of your big-" Natsuki covered Kiryuu''s mouth with her hand before she could finish her sentence, knowing what she was going to say and not wanting to hear it.
Kiryuu snickered under Natsuki''s palm before going back to bothering the Perverted Trio and trying to teach Asia the meaning of different innuendos.
Why did I even ask? Kiryuu doesn''t know what she''s talking about, I don''t have a crush on Akeno-senpai, and she definitely doesn''t have one on me. Fucking ridiculous...
Despite the words she thought, Natsuki realized that Akeno refused to leave her mind for the rest of the day, the older Devil a constant presence in the back of her head and she hated how a small part of her had begun to consider Kiryuuu''s words.
Hours Later
The group had once again waited until the sun set before meeting up with each other to scour the town. They met at the abandoned church, the same church where Raynare had stolen Asia''s Sacred Gear, and the former nun became a Devil.
The four Devils had dressed themselves in fake Church garments, wanting to blend in and not draw suspicion to them if they came across anyone from Kokabiel''s group.
"You think we''ll actually find something today or will it be the same as yesterday?" Saji asked aloud.
"We will; nothing will stand between me and my goal." Kiba said determinedly.
Xenovia walked to the bottom of the cross, standing in front of the group, "Tonight, you all will take the east while Irina will search the west part of town."
"Understood." Natsuki said, turning as she and the others prepared to leave.
"Remember, if anything goes wrong then call us on your cell phones!" Irina exclaimed as the Devils exited the Church.
"Anyone have an idea of where we should look first?" Natsuki asked the others.
"Definitely somewhere without people." Kiba answered, "And I think I know just the place."
The Knight then moved to the front of the group and began leading them through the streets of Kuoh.
After about twenty minutes, the group of Devils finally reached the back of an abandoned mansion.
"Hey, wait a minute; isn''t this where we defeated that Stray Devil, Viser?" Issei asked as he realized why the building looked so familiar to him.
"You guys fought a Stray Devil?" Saji asked, curious as he had yet to fight one himself.
"Yeah, she was a total monster. You couldn''t tell if she was a woman or a Devil, it was freaky!" Issei answered as they began walking up the steps of the building.
Before she could get too far, Natsuki felt a chill race down her spine. A massive wave of killing intent hit her from behind and the Pawn knew that they were not alone.
Koneko realized this as well, hearing the sounds of another''s heartbeat getting closer to them, "Kiba-senpai, hold on."
"She''s right, someone''s nearby, someone who really wants us dead." Natsuki added.
"Look up!" Saji shouted, the group looked towards the roof of the mansion just as a white-haired priest jumped off with a sword in hand, ready to strike Kiba down.
Kiba immediately used his [Sword Birth] to create a sword, using it to block Freed''s strike, sending the exorcist flying backwards.
Freed landed on his feet, standing atop the lower ring of the mansion''s roof, "You know, I forgot to thank you earlier!"
"For what?" Kiba angrily asked.
"Is that the stray priest?" Saji asked.
"You psychotic bastard!" Issei shouted at the man.
Freed looked down at them and smirked, "Oh, hi! If it isn''t the little midget and friends!"
This caused a sharp and feral gleam to shine in Koneko''s eyes, staring at the man with a burning hatred.
"Ha, ha! Whoops! I mean ''Little Lady''! Forgive me." Freed said in the most unapologetic tone. "You know, I was really looking forward to some priest hunting, but all I found are a bunch of Devils in costumes."
The Devils then took off their robes, revealing their normal school uniforms as it was clear that their disguises were now pointless.
[Boost!] Issei''s Sacred Gear cried out as he summoned it.
"Well, at least this night is no longer boring." Natsuki said as she summoned her own Sacred Gear, its golden glow radiating from her chest.
Freed smirked at the group, "Oh, my. Four of you in one night? I''m overwhelmed by my own popularity!"
"Don''t get too excited; I''m your only opponent." Kiba growled as he took his stance, the Knight then charged at the priest.
"You know it''s funny; no matter how many of you brave little Devils sling themselves at me, they are no match for this sword!" Freed exclaimed, jumping into the air and over Kiba.
When Kiba finally stopped, he looked up only to see Freed quickly descending upon him, the priest''s sword pulled back above his head, prepared to cut through him.
"Thanks for playing!"
Kiba dropped to one knee and lifted his own sword, blocking the strike, but the second the swords connected, Freed showed the Excalibur''s true ability. Despite appearing to still be pushing against Kiba''s demonic sword, Freed''s Excalibur was creating slashes so fast that various afterimages were able to be seen.
"Some have called this blade The Holy Sword of Heavenly Flashes: Excalibur Rapidly! But I call this the "Super Fast Sword"!" Freed yelled.
Freed then jumped back before charging at Kiba once more causing the Devil to throw himself sideways to avoid the strike. This led to a game of high-speed tag as the two swordsmen would dodge and then try to strike the other down.
"Damn, he wasn''t kidding! He''s moving faster than Kiba!" Issei yelled after watching the parts of the fight they were able to keep track off.
[Boost!] Issei''s [Boosted Gear] cried out once more.
"Looks like Kiba needs some help. Issei, can you transfer you power to Kiba?" Natsuki said as she looked towards the other Pawn.
Issei raised his left hand and faced his palm to the roof. He tried to move his arm along and follow Kiba''s movements, "Fuck! I can''t get a clear shot; they''re moving too fast. If I try to do it now, I might end up hitting Freed or missing all together."
"This sucks." Koneko muttered as she pulled out her phone to make a call.
"You just need to slow him down, right?" Saji asked with a smirk.
He then raised his arm up in front of him, "Stretch my line!"
A violet purple light began to glow from Saji''s left hand and when the light died down, a small black bracer in the form of a small black chameleon-like lizard with violet eyes and a deformed appeared.
"Okay, Line Go!" Saji yelled as a glowing pale blue line shot out from the mouth of the lizard, flying towards the sky, and wrapping around Freed''s ankle.
Freed let out a scream as the line pulled him down, causing him to slam into the roof of the mansion.
"What''d you think? It''s called [Absorption Line]! Or you could just call it my Sacred Gear." Saji spoke as he maintained his hold on the exorcist.
Absorption Line? "You can absorb the energy of others too?" Natsuki asked, she knew the other Pawn had a Sacred Gear, but did not know its name or abilities.
"Hell yeah! You aren''t the only one who can use someone''s abilities against them!" Saji replied, pulling his arm behind his body, attempting to yank Freed off the roof.
"Damn it! Damn it! Damn it!" Freed screeched, slamming his Excalibur Rapidly against the line, trying to cut it to no avail. "This must be another one of those dragon sorts!"
Before Issei could ask Saji why he did not tell them that his Sacred Gear was also a dragon type, he felt himself being lifted into the air. "Whoa!"
"We don''t have time to gawk." Koneko said, raising Issei above her head and throwing him in Kiba''s direction.
"Damn it, Koneko!" Issei yelled as he was sent flying.
[Boost!]
The Pawn then tucked his knees into his chest, causing him to barrel roll through the air, "Hey! Heads up!"
Issei flew over Kiba''s head, pressing his hand against Kiba''s back as he soared by, transferring the power that his [Boosted Gear] had built up.
[Transfer!]
The Pawn then landed on his feet at the other end of the roof, "The dragon''s awaken now, and so is his gift!"
"This power I''ve been given is a gift. Thank you, Issei, Saji, I will use this gratefully!" Kiba cried out, bring his sword down, "Its over! [Sword Birth]!"
A red magic circle appeared above the Knight and soon dozens of demonic swords appeared across the roof, heading in Freed''s direction.
Freed began to furiously slash at the swords that tried to reach him, but for every sword he destroyed more would appear in their place, their intentions to skewer him evident.
"Don''t forget about the rest of us." Natsuki said, raising her hand in Freed''s direction, her hand now coated with a familiar black aura. "Black Bolt!"
A beam of black energy flew from Natsuki''s hand, ripping up the ground before suddenly changing direction and flying upwards, destroying the walls and roof of the house as it got closer to Freed.
The exorcist raised his Excalibur in front of him, using his blade to shield him from the blast. The strength of the beam almost knocked the sword from his grip, but Freed held strong and after a few moments, the beam lost strength and dissipated.
Freed let out a breath before smirking at the girl, "You''re going to have to try harder than that!"
His mockery did not last long as he was back to cutting down Kiba''s demonic swords, the previous attack returning with a vengeance.
"Shit." Natsuki muttered, clicking her teeth in distaste.
"Black Bolt?" Koneko asked aloud, looking at Natsuki confused.
Natsuki shrugged her shoulders, "Everyone else gives their attacks and spells cool names so I thought I''d try it. What, does it suck?"
Before Koneko could respond a voice rang out through the battlefield.
"[Sword Birth], huh?"
Kiba''s turned his head towards the voice, "Who''s there?"
"A Sacred Gear that can exhibit invincible power based on the user''s ability." A short, bespectacled elderly man with gray hair, a moustache, and black eyes, wearing a priest outfit emerged from inside the mansion, calmly walking to the part of the roof where Freed was currently pinned to.
"Looks like your use of Holy Swords could still use some brushing up, couldn''t it?" The man said to Freed as he stood in front of him.
"Valper!" Freed cheered.
"Valper?" Kiba said, his eyes widening at the sight of the man.
"So, he''s the mastermind behind the Holy Sword Project." Koneko said as she glared at the man who caused her friend so much pain.
"Valper Galilei!" Kiba roared, glaring at the man with furious anger and contempt.
"Humph. The one and only." Valper said as he smirked at Kiba, he then turned back to Freed, "Freed, what are you doing?"
"What do you think I''m doing, old man?! I can''t run away because of this Devil''s weird freaky lizard tongue!" Freed exclaimed.
"Gather all the holy element that is running throughout your body to the blade of the Holy Sword. With that, you should be able to cut it." Valper explained, using the knowledge he had gathered from his research.
"Oh, is that all it takes?" Freed said doing just as researcher told him to do, and a bright yellow aura began to flow across the Excalibur''s blade.
The exorcist then slashed through the line holding his ankle, and unlike before was easily able to sever it. Due to the holy energy of both the sword and Freed, the cutting the line caused Saji to fall backwards, feeling his strength leave him as his back hit the ground.
"What the hell?" Saji asked as he tried to push himself off the ground.
"It''s all making sense now." Freed said as he stared at the Excalibur with a wild glint in his eyes. "If I figure out the perfect way to use the holy elements, I''ll continue to gain more power."
Kiba''s eyes widened as he saw the glee in which Freed was now looking at him with, "I have an idea; why don''t you all just stand there and become food for my sword?!"
Kiba pulled his sword out of the roof, dispelling all the swords that were imbedded in the roof as he raised the blade in his hands to block the strike coming from Freed.
Just as he did, another sword suddenly appeared in his line of sight and blocked Excalibur Rapidly. Standing next to Kiba was Xenovia, and the human was using her Excalibur Destruction to protect Kiba.
"Xenovia?" Issei exclaimed, surprised to see the girl.
"Yoo-hoo!" Irina yelled as she ran through the trees, stopping as she reached Natsuki, Koneko, and Saji.
"Irina? What are you doing here?" Saji asked.
"Koneko called us and said you needed help." Irina answered as she pulled off her robe, revealing her battle attire.
"Oh, when you pulled out your phone earlier." Natsuki said aloud, realizing what the Rook had done.
Unauthorized usage: this narrative is on Amazon without the author''s consent. Report any sightings.
"Good to know one of you is paying attention." Koneko said as she gave Saji the side eye.
"You are both traitors! Hear me, Freed Sellzen, and Valper Galilei. I will cut you both down in the name of our God!" Xenovia yelled, fully prepared to follow through with her promise.
Freed''s smile fell and angrily snarled, "You little bitch! Don''t you ever utter that disgusting name in my presence again!"
"Aaaaaah!" Kiba jumped towards the pair, his sword raised above his head. Xenovia and Freed lowered their swords and broke away from each other a few seconds before Kiba could land a hit on the exorcist.
Freed landed right next to Valper, the man was thinking of what his next move would be when the researcher began speaking.
"You''re done, Freed."
"Huh?" Freed looked at the man confused. He wanted me to get rid of them, what does he mean I''m done?
"You were supposed to get rid of those vermin from the Church who snuck into town. But there they are with Holy Swords, and you''re now outnumbered due to the Devils they partnered with." Valper explained, looking at each of the enemies, but his gaze remained on Kiba the longest.
"Oh, man." Freed pouted before pulling out a small pebbled shaped object from his pocket, "Well, see you later alliance of the Church and shitty Devils!"
He then threw the object at his feet and a blinding flash overtook the area and when the light disappeared, Freed and Valper were gone.
Xenovia jumped off the roof and began running towards the forest, "We''re going after them, Irina!"
"Right!" Irina shouted as she followed her partner, the two women disappearing through the trees.
Kiba was not far behind, wordlessly chasing after the girls.
I won''t let you get away, Valper Galilei! Not this time! Kiba screamed in his head.
"Damn it, Kiba, wait!" Natsuki said and just as she was about to sprint after the Knight, a familiar voice was heard from behind the group.
"Goodness, just what have you gotten yourselves into?" The four remaining Devils turned around and saw that it was Rias.
Next to the King was Akeno, and next to her were Sona and her Queen, Shinra Tsubaki. Two different magic circles glowed behind the four Devils before disappearing, indicating that the group had just arrived.
"Sona-Kaichou!"
"Rias-Buchou!"
Saji and Issei cried out, respectively.
"I''m sure this will be a lively story, I can''t wait." Rias said with a smile, but Koneko, Issei, and Natsuki noticed the dangerous tinge to it.
"Whenever you''d like to start explaining, I''m ready." Sona said coolly, looking only at Saji.
"Aaaaaah!" Issei and Saji both yelled in fear, Koneko closed her eyes and Natsuki let out a groan.
We''re fucked. The dark-haired Pawn thought.
The Devils had entered the abandoned mansion, the four older Devils looked on silently as their charges went on to give their account of what had happened that night and what they had been doing for the last few days.
Rias did not have a pleasant expression on her face by the end of the story, placing a hand on her forehead in frustration. "Destroying Excalibur. You three... now it looks like we have no choice but to intervene."
"Saji." Sona barked at the Pawn prostrating at her feet.
"Y-es?" Saji said, hesitating as he lifted his head off the ground to look at his King.
"You were doing something like this behind my back? You were not nearly as cautious as you should have been, you truly are a troublesome child." Sona''s eyes narrowed, "I''m disappointed."
Saji began to nervously sweat, tears staring to form in the corners of his eyes. "I-I''m so sorry, Kaichou! Please forgive me!"
"Well, I''m guessing Kiba isn''t here because he went after Valper, I''m I correct?" Rias asked her servants.
"Yeah, along with Xenovia and Irina. But I think if something happens, he''ll let us know." Issei responded.
Rias sighed, "I wonder, his head is so filled with thoughts of revenge, I don''t think he would call like he normally would."
Damn, she''s right. Issei thought, thinking of how Kiba has been acting since everything with the Holy Swords began.
Rias then looks at Koneko, "Koneko. Why did you get involved with all of this?"
Koneko looked towards the floor, "... I didn''t want Yuuto-senpai to go away."
Rias looked more confused than angry, "Well, there''s no use dwelling on it now, is there? I need you three to be mindful of your actions, this is not like those other times that I have let your choices slide. What you three and Kiba have done could influence the supernatural world, and it will affect the rest of us in this family, you understand that right?"
"Yes, Buchou." Koneko, Natsuki, and Issei said as they nodded their heads, knowing that they took the situations they were in too lightly.
Slap! Slap!
The Gremory Peerage looked in the direction of the slapping sound and saw that Sona had covered her hand with demonic magic and was using said hand to spank Saji.
"You need to reflect on your behavior." Sona said in between slaps.
"Uwaaaaaaan! I''m sorry! I''m sorry! Please forgive me Kaichouuu!" Saji cried, wanting his misery to end.
"No. One thousand spankings." Sona replied.
"She''s using her powers to spank him?" Natsuki asked aloud, horrified by what she was watching.
"Aw, man. What''s Rias going to do to us?" Issei whisper shouted to his friend, afraid of what punishment Rias was going to give them if Sona saw fit to spank their fellow Pawn.
Rias stood up from where she was sitting and took a step towards her servants, "Issei, Natsuki, Koneko."
Before any of them had time to question her, Rias pulled the three into a tight hug. "What is wrong with you three? You really are stupid children, making me constantly worry like this."
"HUH?! How come they get hugs over there and I''m getting my ass beaten?!" Saji yelled indignantly, angered by the difference in how the two masters were treating their servants.
"That is them. This is us." Sona answered, delivering an especially hard spank to Saji''s bottom.
I''m so glad that I''m Rias'' servant! Issei thought to himself, happy that he was not in Saji''s position.
This is way too good to be true. Natsuki thought simultaneously, thinking of how suspicious Rias was acting.
"Now Issei." Rias said as she released her servants, "I need you to bend over please."
"What?! I thought you were going to forgive us!" Issei cried out in horror.
Rias smiled at the trio, "That''s not how this works; a master is responsible for disciplining her servants. You too will be punished with a thousand spankings."
"What? A thousand?!" Issei yelled.
"And you, Natsuki." Rias said as she looked at said Pawn.
Natsuki flinched as she was hoping that Rias had be too focused on Issei to remember her role in all of this. "Yes, Buchou?"
"While this was Issei''s idea and not yours, you still went along with it and deserves to be punished as well."
"Okay, in my defense, I did try to talk Issei out of this, and l only went along because I knew he would do it without me and get in more trouble." Natsuki quickly spat out, raising her hand in front of her defensively.
"Natsuki, you traitor!" Issei screamed, glaring at his friend who was now trying to throw him under the bus.
Rias thought this over, "You do make a fair point."
"What?!" Issei screamed, thinking Natsuki was going to go unpunished.
"But you also could have told me about this so I could stop Issei myself." Rias argued.
"Uh..." Natsuki had no rebuttal, she could have gone straight to Rias if she were truly so against Issei''s plan.
"Fine. I will not give you a thousand spanking, but instead two hundred." Rias stated.
"I humbly except my punishment, Buchou." Natsuki said respectfully, the look Rias was giving her told her that the King would not go any lower, so Natsuki knew to just take what she could get.
"Fuck you, you bastard!" Issei exclaimed, tears comically falling down his face as Rias prepared to spank him.
"Wait just a moment, Rias. Issei and Natsuki are not the only ones at fault." Koneko interrupted, standing between Rias and Issei. "I think I deserve half of the spankings."
"Are you serious?" Issei asked, staring at his kouhai in shock.
A frown formed on Natsuki''s lips, "Koneko, you don''t have to-"
"Okay then. Koneko, get ready for your spankings." Rias responded; her expression more serious than it was before.
Koneko kneeled in front of Rias, "Yes, ma''am."
"Wait, Rias, please!''" Issei exclaimed, "Don''t spank Koneko! This whole thing was my stupid idea, Koneko doesn''t deserve to get punished, she should get what''s supposed to go to me."
"Issei''s right; this was all his idea." Natsuki began, ignoring the glare Issei sent her way, "But Koneko wouldn''t even have done any of this if the two of us didn''t rope her in. If anything, Koneko was just trying to look out for her three idiot senpais."
"You''re both wrong." Koneko spoke, but the two Pawns ignored her.
"Please take it out on my butt as much as you want." Issei said as he bent over.
"I mean, I don''t want to get spanked, but I won''t have someone else be given my punishment, especially not one I deserve." Natsuki added as she bent over too.
"Issei, Natsuki. Move out of the way." Rias said as she took another step forward. She then looked down at Koneko, "Are you ready."
"I''m ready, thank you." Koneko answered, squeezing her eyes shut as she waited for the pain to start.
Rias raised her hand and when she brought it back down, she just barely touched the younger girl''s backside.
Koneko looked back at Rias in surprise as the King repeated this motion a second time.
"Alright, Koneko, all done." Rias said as she smiled at the girl.
"But..." Koneko trailed off, still confused by the lack of force.
"It''s commendable for you to have reflected on your actions in the way you''ve done, so this is the punishment I''ve decided to give you in response to your choice today." Rias explained.
"I-I don''t know what to say. Thank you." Koneko said softly, a blush staining her cheeks as she stood up.
"Classic Rias Gremory! She can be kind but firm too." Issei said as he watched the King with prideful awe.
She didn''t say anything about letting us off the hook. Natsuki thought, she wanted to say it aloud, but a tiny part of her feared that maybe Rias was going easy on them and that saying anything would cause her to change her mind.
"Now, it''s your turn next, Issei." Rias remarked, still smiling kindly.
"Right on!" Issei cheered happily as he bent over.
"All right, I''m going to do the rest now."
"Wait, like all the rest?" Issei asked as he looked back at Rias.
"Yes, Koneko took yours and Natsuki''s place for one your thousand and one of her two hundred, you should both be grateful." Rias explained, "You only have nine hundred and ninety-nine left."
I knew it... Natsuki thought sorrowfully, visibly slumping in place.
"Nine hundred and ninety-nine left?!" Issei cried out.
A red glow encapsulated Rias'' hand and she began to spank Issei, these spanks were far stronger than the two she gave Koneko.
"AAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAA!" Issei cried, feeling nothing but pain.
"Fuck." Natsuki muttered as all she could do was watch and wait her turn. She thought about running but she knew that Rias would eventually find her, and her punishment would be worse.
"You know, Natsuki-chan," Natsuki looked to her right and saw Akeno looking at her with a sadistic grin and red cheeks. "If you don''t want to wait, I could give you your spankings?"
Natsuki immediately stepped back, trying to create distance between them but Akeno kept moving closer. "NO! I''m good, Akeno, I''m good, I''ll wait for Buchou."
While she was not looking forward to being spanked, Natsuki knew that her spankings would be nowhere near as painful if Rias did them instead of the S & M obsessed Devil standing before her.
Rias momentarily paused in dolling out Issei''s spankings, giving Natsuki an evil smirk, "Actually, Akeno, that''s a great idea. It will take me too long to finish with Issei, you have my full permission to give Natsuki her punishment. Remember, its one hundred and ninety-nine of them."
Akeno licked her lips salaciously, her eyes never leaving Natsuki''s form, "Of course, Buchou."
"No, no, wait!" Natsuki squealed, quickly running and trying to escape. Natsuki ran towards the exit, she only made it about a yard before she was slammed into the floor.
Natsuki coughed as the wind was knocked out, she turned her head to the side and saw that Akeno had tackled her and was now sitting on her back.
Akeno was breathing heavily and Natsuki knew that it was not out of exhaustion but excitement. The older Devil trailed a finger down the side of Natsuki''s face, stooping once she reached her lips.
"Mmph!" Natsuki was thrown when Akeno shoved her finger into her mouth, the younger Devil could feel her senpai rubbing her finger against the grooves of her teeth.
"I thought you said that you would take your punishment, Natsuki-chan?" Akeno asked, enjoying having the girl at her mercy.
She then stood up, her hand becoming covered in her own magical energy, "It''s time to get what''s coming to you~"
I''m never doing anything that Issei says ever again!
"I can''t tell who''s more of a sadist; Rias or Akeno?" Natsuki complained once she teleported into her bedroom.
Every movement she took cause agony throughout her body, especially her rear.
"I cannot say I have ever witnessed a partner of mine be punished in such a manner but I also cannot say that was not enjoyable." Lux said aloud, her voice strong with amusement.
"Go fuck yourself, Lux. In my mind, this is just as much you and Ddraig''s faults as it is Issei''s." Natsuki muttered.
"Your master was right; you did not have to do what Issei said, and by that extension you did not have to do what I said. Are you not your own person?" Lux replied.
"If I could kill you, I would." Was all Natsuki said in response, ignoring Lux''s chuckling.
Natsuki took a deep breath and raised her hand, a magic circle appeared on the ground in front of her.
When the light disappeared, a large black lioness was now in the room.
Natsuki. Midnight greeted.
Natsuki smiled, "I''m sorry it''s been so long since I''ve called you, Midnight. Things have kinda crazy around here lately."
There is nothing to apologize for, we are both individuals with responsibilities to others. Midnight replied.
"I actually have a favorite to ask; my friend Kiba is missing, so I wanted to ask if you can find and keep and eye on him." Natsuki asked.
Which of the Devils you are entwined with is this Kiba you speak of?
"Kiba is the male with blond hair, blue eyes, a mole on his cheek, and uses swords to fight."
I will find this Devil you seek. Do you only want me to watch over him? Midnight asked.
"Could you step in it looks like Kiba is losing? If he is in danger?"
Of course, I will watch over this Devil you care for. Midnight said before disappearing in a flash of light.
"Your friend will not like having another step in and possibly hinder his quest for vengeance." Lux said once they were alone.
"I''d rather he''s alive and pissed then dead because he''s too focused on killing Valper." Natsuki answered.
Lux stayed silent, thinking over Natsuki''s words. In her mind she doubted if Natsuki was in a similar that she would let others besides Lux help her.
Natsuki too can be singularly focused. Lux thought to herself.
Before she could further question Natsuki, the teenager threw herself into bed, burying herself under the covers.
"I know you have more to say, but can it wait till morning?" Natsuki asked.
"Of course." Lux sighed, "But you feel it do you not? Magic is moving in this town, and it will all come to head within the coming days."
Natsuki rolled onto her back, "I know, but it''s not like I can just run in blind by myself, it didn''t work for me and the others, you saw that tonight."
But it still feels wrong to being nothing while Kiba, Xenovia, and Irina are out there fighting. Fucking hell, this sucks¡ Natsuki thought as she drifted off to sleep.
The Next Day
The Gremory Peerage had met up after school in the ORC clubhouse, the Devils planning their next move.
"So Kiba didn''t call any of us?" Issei asked the group.
"Not one call, but the good news is the two Kiba''s with are strong. They should be able to take on a stray priest if they run into one." Rias answered, worry and annoyance were the two emotions most obvious on her face.
Issei sighed, turning his gaze to the floor. "I''m sorry, I just made things worse."
Akeno stepped forward, "You didn''t, whether you made your plan or not, Kiba was always going out for revenge, Issei. But we couldn''t sit around waiting for him so we sent out our familiars."
"You guys did too?" Natsuki asked Rias, Akeno, and Koneko.
"When did you send out your familiar?" Rias asked.
"Last night, after you sent us all home. I told Midnight to search for Kiba and help him if he''s in danger." Natsuki replied.
As Rias moved to continue, a small magic circle appeared on the back of her hand. "My familiar has found something!"
The Peerage moved to the center of the room as Rias formed a teleportation circle to take then to her familiar''s location.
A few moments later and the group found the in the park. In front of them was the bat familiar in her humanoid form and in her arms was an unconscious Shindou Irina.
"Irina!" Issei shouted as the group made their way over to the pair, the familiar moved out of the way, allowing Issei to cradle the unconscious girl''s body.
"Quick, Asia!" Issei shouted to the girl.
Asia immediately kneeled next to Issei and began using her Sacred Gear to heal Irina''s injuries.
"Can you hear me, Irina-san?" Asia asked as Irina began to twitch, her eyes opening slightly.
"What happened to you? Are Kiba and Xenovia are okay?" Natsuki asked the human.
"I don''t know where they are, but they got away. I was¡ I was attacked trying to escape." Irina replied as each breath she took became harsher.
"What were you guys trying to escape." Issei asked, worried about the threat that could have made the three flee.
"I let them down, I was too slow!" Irina cried out as her memories started replaying in her mind.
"Try not to push yourself!" Asia exclaimed, seeing and feeling the strain that Irina was putting herself through.
Irina started to cry, "I couldn''t get away he was too strong."
"Who''s ''he''?" Issei asked but his question went unanswered.
"Please be care-careful." Irina whispered to the Devils before losing consciousness again.
"Irina!" Issei shouted.
The Gremory Peerage then turned and saw a magic circle glowing a few feet away from them, and through the circle Sona, Tsubaki, and Saji, stepped out.
"Thank you for coming, Sona." Rias greeted.
"Of course, I came right after I received your message." Sona said before making her way towards Issei and Asia, kneeling on the other side of Irina. "The damage is very bad, isn''t it?"
"Yes, [Twilight Healing] isn''t strong enough to restore consumed stamina." Asia said, looking back down at Irina, ashamed that she was not able to do more for her.
"It''s okay." Sona told Asia, "I have the equipment to treat her at my house. Tsubaki?"
"Right." Tsubaki said as she kneeled and took Irina into her hands."
"I''ll live her with you." Sona told her Queen.
"Understood." With her King''s blessing, Tsubaki summoned her own teleportation circle and vanished.
"So are Kiba and Xenovia okay for now?" Issei asked, still worried about their safety.
"We''re going to have to assume that for now, Kiba and Xenovia are alive and well since Irina told us they escaped." Natsuki answered.
I haven''t heard from Midnight but I have to assume she found Kiba by now. And if he was hurt or worse she would''ve contacted me. The Pawn thought.
Suddenly a sharp pain emanated through the hearts of all the Devils in the park. A dangerous feeling washing over them.
"What''s this in my chest." Saji cried out, gripping the center of his shirt tightly.
"Damn it! That creepy fuckers back!" Natsuki yelled, glaring at the tree line behind them.
"Well, well, well, would you look what we have here! If it isn''t the ''We all took the bait club''!" Freed cheered as he moved from behind a tree, and stood on the path in front of them. "Welcome all of you, you fucking Devils!"
"You''re like a fucking cockroach, you just keep coming back." Natsuki gritted out, not at all pleased to see the exorcist.
Freed ignored this as he smirked at the former nun. "Asia Argento, the traitor nun who gave her soul to the Devils. How much do you love your new life as Devil scum?"
Asia took a step back, the memory of her last encounter with Freed still fresh in her mind.
"Shut up!" Issei yelled as he stood in front of Asia. "Lay one finger on her and I''ll kill you!"
Issei summoned his Sacred Gear but Rias and Sona jumped to the front of the group, magic circles already in their hands as they prepare to strike Freed down.
"Whoa, whoa, whoa! Hold on! Don''t hurt the messenger, someone wants to talk to you, Red." Freed said mockingly.
"Which someone?" Rias asked as she and Sona temporarily disengaged.
"Heh, heh¡ my boss!" Freed shouted, leaning back and pointing to the air above him.
The air in the park instantly changed, a heavy forbidding feeling overtook everyone. The sky became the same dark purple it did when a Fallen Angel was near and had sealed off the area.
Floating above all of them was a lone figure, a tall, pale man with long black hair and narrow, blood red eyes, pointy, elf-like ears and five pairs of black wings.
"Fallen Angel¡" Koneko whispered.
"And he has ten wings." Akeno added, glaring at the man with fierce contempt. "He''s of the leader class."
"It''s a pleasure to meet you, daughter of the House of Gremory." The Fallen Angel spoke, his voice deep and raspy.
"You must be Kokabiel. I heard you were in my town but I did not think you would come down to meet me personally, I must be quite special." Rias said calmly, but those who knew her could see the tension the flowed off her. "It''s nice to put the face to the name."
Kokabiel smirked, "Your crimson hair is quite breath taking. Just as lovely as the scarlet haired Devil King, even your facial expressions are similar. That is absolutely nauseating."
"Thank you. Is there something you wish to discuss with me or are you just here to review my appearance?" Rias said sarcastically. "Not that I''m rushing you, it''s nice to see a leader of a another faction up close."
Kokabiel grinned, "I will be rampaging in this town using your base, Kuoh Academy, as the starting point. Then Sirzechs will also appear, right?"
Rias glared at the Fallen Angel, "And why would you want to harm or school? It has nothing to do with your quest for the Holy Swords. If you do something like that, the War between God, Fallen Angels and Devils will begin again."
"That''s what I''m wishing for. I thought that Michael would start a war if I stole the Excaliburs. But what he sent were grunt Exorcists and two pathetic Holy Sword wielders."
"Wait, that''s what you wanted? You actually want to start a war?" Akeno spoke up this time, appaled by what they were learning.
"Yes, yes! After the first war ended, I was bored, I''m bored indeed! Azazel and Shemhazai were being so passive about when the next one would start." Kokabiel growled.
"Not only is Azazel distracted by impending wars but he''s also obsessed with collecting Sacred Gears and suing them for his boring research."
"So stealing Holy Swords wasn''t enough for you guys? Now you need Sacred Gears, too?!" Issei exclaimed, gripping onto his [Boosted Gear] with his right hand.
"No need to generalize, I don''t care about your [Boosted Gear], but Azazel might. Maybe I should give it to him after I rip it from your body? I''m sure he''d love to add a Devil''s toy to his collection." Kokabiel grinned before turning back to Rias, "That''s why I''m going to rampage at Sirzech''s sister''s base. Perhaps if I rape and kill you, then Devil kind will rise up to avenge you?"
"You''re a fucking battle manic." Rias sneered.
The Fallen laughed, "Obviously, why do you think I''m using Devils this time? The little sister of Lucifer and the little sister of Leviathan right here, clear for the taking. The school you two rule over must be filled with demonic-powers, it will allow me to enjoy the chaos! It''s also the best place to release the real power of Excaliburs! The perfect battlefield."
Freed began laughing, "Hyahahaha! Isn''t my boss the best? His craziness is the best. So I''m also eager to do it. He even gives me treats like this." The exorcist then opened his coat, revealing the countless swords he had inside.
"Those are Holy Swords!" Koneko said, feeling the holy energy wafting off the blades.
"Does that mean they''re all Excaliburs?" Issei asked.
Issei''s question was soon answered as Freed began pointing to all the swords in his collection. "You all already know that is one is Excalibur Rapidly. The one on the left is Excalibur Nightmare. The one on my hip is Excalibur Transparent. I also received Excalibur Mimic from that sweet little girl in pigtails! Man I would just love to take Excalibur Destruction from that other girl. Hyaa! Am I the first person in the World to be in possession of this many Excaliburs? I also received an element from the geezer Valper that allows me to wield Holy Swords. Right now I''m in a hyper mode that allows me to wield all of them, you know? I''m invincible! I''m wonderful! I''m the strongest! Hyahahahahahahahaha!"
"Hahaha! Let''s have a war! Little sister of Sirzech Lucifer, Rias Gremory!" Kokabiel laughed viciously.
A green magic circle the formed in Kokabiel ''s hands, and a barrage of light spears flew in the direction of the Devils.
"Everyone! Move!" Rias yelled as she, Akeno, and Sona created large circles to smiled the group.
The others followed this order, moving for cover.
The spears deflecting of the shields kicked up a large amount of dust and by the time it cleared, the sky had returned to normal and Kokabiel and Freed were gone.
"Where did they go?" Saji asked, looking around desperately for the pair.
Koneko spoke from her place on a high tree branch, pointing towards the town. "I saw them go that way; they''re heading towards the school."
"They going to destroy the entire school." Issei announced.
"Guys," Sona spoke up, "They said they were going to start at the academy, but it won''t be ending there."
"Sona''s right." Rias said, still staring at Kuoh Academy in the distance.
"There''s no telling what''s he''s going to do but a Fallen Angel of that class could easily wipe us out."
"So once he''s done with us, Kokabiel will destroy all of Kuoh?" Natsuki asked, already knowing the answer to her question.
"This is bullshit! We can''t let those Fallen Angel bastards fuck with us again! We have to make sure this is the last thing Kokabiel ever does!" Issei shouted to the others.
This all reminded him of Raynare and her group of Fallen Angel comrades. He still hates thinking of them, of their arrogance and disregard for the lives of others.
We can''t let that bastard think he can mess with our town, like he just start a war like this! Issei thought.
Rias stepped to the front of the group, "It''s time. We need to make our way to the school."
"What happened to not getting involved?" Natsuki asked.
"That ended when that piece of trash thought he could walk into our territory and mess with our lives." Rias replied, a fine burned in those bluish green eyes.
A look that promised pain and suffering to all who met it.
Natsuki smirked at her King, clenching her fist at the thought of their upcoming battle. "That''s more than fine with me."
The Battle At Kuoh Academy
The Occult Research Club and the Student Council immediately rushed to Kuoh Academy once it became clear where Kokabiel was planning to start his war.
"We''ve covered the entire school in a large protective barrier, if nothing drastic happens, it should be able to keep everything within from getting damaged." Sona said, watching as her Peerage collectively used their magic to form said barrier.
Sona then turned to Rias, "My servants and I will continue to hold the barrier in place to reduce the damages, I want to minimize as much as possible. It will be hard to prevent our school from getting damaged, but it looks like we must since it''s the leader of the Fallen-Angels who is moving."
"Thank you, Sona." Rias replied.
"To tell you the truth, if Kokabiel were to fight seriously, not only this academy, but the whole region would be annihilated. Adding to that, he has already gotten prepared for that; my familiar has seen him releasing his power at the school grounds." Sona explained.
A purple magic circle appeared behind the group, revealing the traveler to be Tsubaki.
"Tsubaki-senpai, how is Irina?" Issei asked.
"Her condition is not life-threatening; she can thank Asia for that." Tsubaki answered as she walked past the ORC and towards her master.
Asia smiled, "What a relief."
"Yeah, but we still haven''t heard from Kiba or Xenovia." Issei said aloud, still worried about the two.
"They''ll be here." Natsuki assured.
Issei turned to Natsuki, "How do you know? I mean, we know they got away when Irina was attacked but a lot could''ve changed."
"I don''t know Xenovia, but I know Kiba and he''s not an idiot. He most likely would''ve stayed low after he and the girls were originally caught. Besides, like Sona-Kaichou said, Kokabiel is releasing his power all over the place. It will be a beacon for pretty much every supernatural in the area." Natsuki explained.
You haven''t lost him yet, have you, Midnight? Natsuki thought, reaching out to her familiar through their link.
No, I still have the Knight''s scent. He is heading in the direction of your school. Midnight answered back.
Sona''s gaze sharpened as she looked in the direction of the school, her eyes filled with hatred. "Rias, our enemy is a monster with strength far above ours. It''s still not too late, we can get your Oni-sama-"
Rias shook her head, looking at her friend with a smirk, "You know what I don''t see? You trying to contact your Onee-sama."
Sona returned the smirk, only hers was more rueful, "With good reason too. Your brother loves you, Sirzechs-sama will definitely move, there''s no doubt that he''ll come here as soon as you call him. So, call him."
Before Rias could respond, Akeno spoke over her, "There is no need, I have already informed Sirzechs-sama."
"Akeno! How can you do that without asking me first?!" Rias snapped, shocked, and angered by her friend and Queen acting without her knowledge.
Akeno glared back at her King, her expression deathly serious, "Rias, I understand that you don''t want to cause problems for Sirzechs-sama or bother him unless we absolutely must. But our enemy is a Leader-Class Fallen Angel; he''s not someone you can take down on your own." Akeno then smiled, "I think that qualifies this as a must."
Rias did not hold onto her anger for long, sighing, "Fine."
Akeno gave her King a closed eyed smile, "I thank you for your consideration, Buchou. Sirzechs-sama is on his way, I believe that his forces should arrive here in within the hour."
Rias rolled her eyes with a grin, "Good grief, girl, I cannot win against you, can I?" She then crossed her arms and turned back to face the school, "Should be a fun hour."
Rias looked back at her servants, "Now, my servants. We will be on the offensive; we will go inside the barrier and draw Kokabiel''s attention. Unlike the battle against Riser, this is a battle of life and death! Even so, I will not forgive you if you die! Do you hear me? We will survive this and continue to attend this school!"
"Yes, Buchou!" The five Devils before her cried out.
The Peerage then moved through the barrier, making their way inside the school, preparing to fight the battle of their lives.
The moment they entered the school, Issei and Natsuki both promoted themselves from Pawns to Queens now that they were in enemy territory. Magically, their Queen states were still weaker than Akeno''s, but having three Queens no matter the power level, increased the Peerage''s strength.
"Issei, I need you to be on support this time." Rias said aloud.
"Support?" Issei asked as they walked.
"I want you to use your ability to transfer your power to the rest of us to increase our strength." Rias explained.
Issei grinned, "No problem, I''m all over it!"
Rias then looked towards the others, "And I think you can all stall until Issei can safely transfer his power to the rest of us."
"I bet we can manage that." Akeno smiled.
"Absolutely." Koneko nodded.
"Natsuki, you''re going to be the key to our offense. Your ability to absorb magic is going to essential in fighting such a powerful foe." Rias said to Natsuki.
Natsuki sighed; she knew Rias was going to say that but still held doubts. "I know, Rias, but I don''t know if that will be enough."
Rias looked back at second Pawn, "What do you mean?"
Natsuki shrugged her shoulders, "We all saw Kokabiel, I felt his magic in the park, nothing we''ve faced before now has come close to matching him in terms of strength."
Rias and the others had come to realize after the Rating Game against Riser that Natsuki was finely attuned to magical energy, able to sense it better than most. Rias had figured it had to do with the nature of Natsuki''s abilities; to absorb magic and use it to make herself stronger.
"We''re not fighting to beat him, only to stall long enough until Sirzechs-sama and his Peerage arrive." Akeno spoke, trying to assuage Natsuki''s worries.
Asia looked Natsuki, "Is he really that strong?"
"I can''t put it in numbers, but I would say that Kokabiel is way stronger than Riser, but weaker than Rias'' brother." Natsuki answered, remembering just how strong Sirzechs felt when they met him.
"Don''t try and back out, Natsuki. We agreed to fight this bastard long before now, so don''t be getting scared!" Issei exclaimed, not used to Natsuki being so cautious and apprehensive about a fight.
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "I''m not, I''m just saying that this more serious than anything else we''ve dealt with, we can''t fuck around."
"Natsuki is right." Rias said stopping the argument from beginning, "This nothing like the Rating Game with Riser. This time our lives will be at risk."
A gleam passed through Rias'' eyes as they reached the doors the main courtyard, "But believe me; I will not allow us to die here."
As they entered the yard, a large golden magic circle could be seen spreading across the whole school field, four tendrils flowing out of it and towards the ground as they interlocked.
"That magic circle is enormous." Asia said as they all looked at it.
"We don''t have time to focus on it; the Fallen is here." Natsuki said, being the only one not looking at the magic circle, but at the large throne floating above them in the sky.
Kokabiel snickered, drawing everyone''s attention, "So you noticed me? I suppose I should not have been surprised by this; you are the newest Golden Dragon Empress."
"Kokabiel!" Rias growled, glaring at the Fallen Angel.
"Valper still needs a few more minutes to finish, but I must know; is Sirzechs coming? Or is it Serafall instead?" Kokabiel smirked, looking down at the Devils.
"Right now, we''re the ones here ready to fight. That''s all that matters." Rias bit back.
Kobabiel''s smirk remained as he snapped his fingers, and a blot of light formed in his hand. Without him moving, the bolt moved out of his hand and flew down, growing as it quickly slammed into the school''s gymnasium, destroying the building in a massive explosion.
When the glow died down, the gym had been destroyed, and in its place was a giant spear of Holy Light. Not only was the spear larger than it was before it destroyed the gym, but it had three light blue rings surrounding the middle and another end pointing upward.
"This is so boring." Kokabiel complained, "But atlas, this will have to do as far as entertainment."
"No fucking way." Issei muttered, staring in awe and fear.
"What''s wrong, are you scared, partner?" Ddraig asked aloud, drawing Issei attention.
"I''ve never seen a spear of light that big before. It''s on a different level than us." Issei replied.
"Of course, it on a different level. We''re talking about a man who is so strong his name is recorded in the Bible, a man who survived fighting with God and the previous four Maou."
"Do you really think we can beat him?" Issei asked, looking at Kokabiel.
"When it comes down to it, I''ll beat him even if I must turn most of your body into a dragon. And I''m sure sis feels the same way. Isn''t that right, Lux?"
Natsuki being the closest to Issei had heard the conversation and a glow appeared on her chest at Ddraig''s question as she slowly pushed herself off the ground.
"I will not be taking over my champion''s body again." Lux started, " But I will help to ensure enough lasting damage is done until the Maous arrive."
"Lux-" Natsuki said before being cut off.
"No, Natsuki. I will not take over your body, not ever again, not under any circumstances." Lux said fiercely, the glow on Natsuki''s chest glowing hotter and brighter then before.
I will not be taking over your body to save any of your friends. Was what Natsuki heard in Lux''s tone and that worried her.
But Natsuki did not have time to dwell on this feeling further for Kokabiel started to speak, "Since you came all this way to see me, I might as well let you play with my favorite pet!"
The Fallen Angel snapped his fingers once more, but this time the golden light that appeared flew straight to the ground, causing a green magic circle to appear.
A large pillar of fire exploded upwards, a shadowy figure emerging from the dark pot that had been created from the flames. There was the sound of the ground rumbling as it came closer to the group, the form becoming larger, appearing to be more than ten meters tall.
Once the fire dissipated it became clear what the figure was, showing that it was a large, three-headed dog creature. The body had thick legs, each with a set of sharp claws and each head had a pair of red eyes and a mouth lined with sharp fangs.
"Cerberus." Rias said, her voice filled with disgust.
"He-he''s real?" Asia asked aloud, staring at the beast in horror.
"Cerberus?" Issei asked, not being as well versed in myth and magic as the others.
"The famous creature of myth that protects the gates of the Underworld from intruders; The Guard-Dog of Hell." Natsuki explained.
The Guard-Dog of Hell? Just how dangerous does it have to be to get a name like that?! Issei thought.
"What are we going to do?" Asia asked.
Rias glared at Cerberus, "Bringing him to this world is forbidden. Let''s send him back! Akeno! Koneko!"
"Yes, Buchou!" The two exclaimed, following Rias as they went to attack the creature.
"Issei, use your Sacred Gear to enhance our power!" Rias ordered as she summoned her wings and flew towards Cerberus.
"Right! [Boosted Gear]!" Issei shouted, causing his Sacred Gear to appear on his arm.
[Boost!]
"Asia, get back!" Issei told the girl.
Asia followed, moving behind Issei and Natsuki.
"We''ll be fine. Trust me; our girls will have no problem taking care of that puppy." Issei smirked.
"Let''s hope not. [Ethereal Domination]!" Natsuki said as she summoned her own gear.
One of the heads then looked towards Rias who was flying at it and breathed out fire.
"Too na?ve." Akeno said as she flew in front of Rias and froze the fire instantly.
"Take this!" Rias jumped from behind Akeno and released an enormous black and red block of demonic power, knocking the dog to the ground, a tear forming in its side.
As Cerberus tried to stand again, Koneko jumped down and slammed her foot against the top of its middle head, causing loud cracks to primate through the area.
Akeno let out a dangerous chuckle as she watched the beast continue to push itself to its feet even while being attacked by Koneko. "I think he wants more¡"
Akeno then pointed her fingers up to the sky, only a second passed and Cerberus was surrounded by a violent storm of lightning. This added to the blow that Rias had given it earlier, causing dark black blood to begin oozing out of monster dog''s stomach. But what was still shocking was that the beast could still move even after receiving those attacks.
"Damn it, just how strong is this bitch?" Issei asked angrily.
If only I was stronger, then I could enhance everyone in a split second. Issei thought bitterly.
"Eeeeeeeehhhhh!" Asia screamed and quickly the two Pawns turned around.
Another Cerberus had appeared and was staring Asia down. Just as it opened its mouth to breathe fire, Issei ran and grabbed Asia, pulling them both out of the way.
"What the hell? There''s more than one?" Issei shouted.
The second beast geared up to attack again, a stream of flames flew out of its mouth, but Natsuki stood in front of the other two Devils, shielding them from the attack.
"Natsuki!" Issei and Asia shouted as they watched her disappear into the flames.
The fire was not continuous as it had been before, quickly being sucked downward and disappearing just as quickly as it came. Natsuki was still standing in front of Issei and Asia. Her body was completely free of damage, but her necklace was glowing brighter.
"I guess fire from a demon dog is still magical." Natsuki said as she looked over herself.
Issei felt relieved as he glared at Natsuki, "Don''t do that again, you asshole!"
[Boost!] Issei''s Sacred Gear cried out, causing him to look at his gauntlet confused.
Did the multiplier just rest? Issei thought.
"Yeah, yeah." Natsuki waved off, "Hey Lux, you think this much will be enough?"
"To deal with this lowly thing? Most definitely." Lux answered.
Natsuki smirked, "Good."
The Pawn quickly ran, closing the distance between her and Cerberus, jumping up and upper cutting the left head, causing it to slam into the other two and pushing the creature back a couple of feet.
Natsuki looked back at the other two when she landed, "Issei, take Asia and run. I''ll handle this thing."
Issei wanted to argue, "But-"
"But nothing, your gear just reset because you went to save Asia. If we want to use you affectively, then we need to give you as much time as possible to charge up." Natsuki explained, "Besides, I have a dragon gear too, dumbass. I''ll be fine."
Issei was reluctant, but followed Natsuki''s order. He picked Asia, carrying her bridal style as he tried to put as much distance between them and the dogs as he could.
"This sucks!" Issei shouted as he ran towards the school.
"Issei! Behind you!" Asia shouted as she pointed to something over his shoulder.
When Issei turned around, he saw that a third Cerberus had appeared and was running straight towards them, its mouths open as it tried to swallow them.
Issei was about to use his [Boosted Gear] to defend himself and Asia when Koneko flew at the newest Cerberus and punched one of its heads before latching onto the back of its neck.
"Get out of here!" Koneko shouted, hanging onto the dog head as it vigorously tried to shake her off.
Stolen content warning: this content belongs on Royal Road. Report any occurrences.
"But you can''t take him alone!" Issei yelled, finding himself stuck between wanting to help Koneko and maintaining his gear''s [Boost].
"I''ll just stall for time then. Now go!" Koneko shouted.
Issei gritted his teeth but once again did as he was told, running away. "Be careful!"
Koneko was not able to hold on for long as the head soon bucked her into the air, and one of the others quickly followed her and bit down, trapping her within its teeth.
The head was not able to swallow her as Koneko used her legs to slowly pry its mouth open. A large scratch was visible on her leg, and she was covered in blood and saliva. The Rook summoned more of her strength and kicked the upper jaw all the way up, breaking a few of the head''s teeth and allowing her to jump out of the mouth and escape.
"That was absolutely disgusting." Koneko muttered, glaring at the creature.
"Are you alright?!" Asia asked, she and Issei circled back when they saw the beast trying to eat her.
"I''ve been better." Koneko replied as she watched Issei put Asia down and the girl use her [Twilight Healing] on her leg.
"Don''t worry; I''ve got this." Issei said, stepping forward as Cerberus got back up, the beast looking angrier then before.
The beast let out a roar, but it soon turned into a whimper when the second Cerberus was suddenly thrown into it, causing them both to go flying backwards.
The trio turned to the side and saw Natsuki calmly walking towards them, staring at the two dogs with a look of boredom. A smirk soon appeared on her face as she stopped in front of the other Devils, "I believe it''s time to finish this."
Natsuki extended her right arm, her hand now covered in a mass of black energy as she pointed it in the direction of the two Cerberus''. Before Natsuki could release her attack, a gust of wind blew past the Devils and towards the first Cerberus causing one of its heads to fall off, having been severed from its neck.
"You need a little help here?" The Devils saw a certain blue haired human had jumped in front of them, turning to look at them with an amused smirk.
"No, I didn''t." Natsuki deadpanned, annoyed by the other girl''s interference.
Ignoring Natsuki''s snarl, Xenovia turned around and charged at the now two-headed dog, lifting her sword, and cutting through the Cerberus, causing the creature to burst into flames.
"And that is exactly the damage one can expect a Holy Sword to have on evil." Akeno said aloud, she like the others taken aback by the power of Holy Swords.
"If you didn''t need my help, then why didn''t you kill it earlier?" Xenovia asked, turning her head towards Natsuki.
Natsuki felt her eye twitch as she stared Xenovia down, "You are truly begging for me to kill you, aren''t you?"
Rias smiled, "I''d rather we didn''t need the help, but I am glad you''re here."
Natsuki clicked her teeth and ran at the second Cerberus, intent on killing it herself. Xenovia saw what Natsuki was doing and ran to join, keeping pace with the Devil. The two jumped into the air; Xenovia with her Holy Sword and Natsuki with the same black energy in her hand, slammed their attacks against the dog, causing it to explode.
"Whoa, they''re amazing." Issei whispered as he watched how easily the two were able to kill the demon.
Before he knew it, a bright light began to emanate from his gauntlet, shining brighter then he ever saw before. "What is that?"
"It''s the signal; we''ve reached an appropriate multiplier for fighting. The Cerberus can be defeated if you transfer it to Rias Gremory or Himejima Akeno." Ddraig explained to him.
Issei looked back at the fight between his seniors and the last remaining Cerberus, "Seems kind of convenient to have that built in."
"Just chalk it up to you and the Sacred Gear maturing, it has made possible what you desired. As you cannot tell the power difference between you and the opponent, you didn''t know how many boosts you needed. It has started to tell you now."
Issei smiled, realizing that his [Boosted Gear] was responding to his weakness and compensating for it, reacting to the power difference between himself and his opponent. "Buchou! Akeno-san! I have enough power to take down Cerberus!"
Issei ran towards them as Rias and Akeno flew closer to him, allowing Issei to place his hands on their shoulders.
[Transfer!]
A green aura surrounded Rias and Akeno as they absorbed an enormous amount of demonic energy, both shocked by the power that was flowing through them.
Rias smirked as she looked down at the two remaining dogs. "Akeno?"
"Of course. Now, ring out, thunder!" Akeno pointed her fingers to the sky, a magic circle appearing as she started to control the thunder before her fingers were now aimed towards the remaining Cerberus.
The Cerberus tried to run from the spot as if it predicted the upcoming thunder, but the creature was unable to get far as countless swords sprung from the ground and pierced through the Cerberus.
"I won''t let you escape." A voice was heard coming from the forest.
The person who appeared through the clearing was Kiba, the Knight, walking towards the group with a smile.
"Kiba!" Rias said with a look of relief. Rias then summoned her own magic circle, looking back at her Queen, "Let''s end this, Akeno!"
"With pleasure." The lighting that Akeno summoned went down with blinding speed, going through Rias'' magic circle, causing the lighting to become even larger before it flew at the Cerberus.
The lightning bolt was so large that it covered more than half of the school grounds.
The moment that all the beasts were killed, Rias turned her attention to the Fallen Angel above them, throwing a giant mass of her destruction magic at him. "Take this, Kokabiel!"
As the Power of Destruction hurdled towards him, Kokabiel smirked, lazily lifting a single hand in front of him. The Fallen Angel slapped the attack away, sending it flying back. Rias flew out of the way as her spell hit the ground, creating a large crater behind her.
"Impressive." Kokabiel said, staring down at the group, ignoring the smoke that had begun to waft from his hand. "Look at how much stronger you have become due to the power of the Red Dragon Emperor. How fascinating."
"That bastard!" Issei growled, shocked, and angered that he was able to deflect Rias'' attack.
"It is complete!" Valper''s voice rang out.
Everyone turned to see that the four Excaliburs that were placed in the center of the school field started giving out incredible amounts of light.
Kokabiel started applauding, "The four Excaliburs are going to become one."
Divine light began to spread throughout the school field, because of its brightness, the group were forced to cover their eyes with their hands. The four Excaliburs were put on top of each other and when the bright light was gone, there was one Holy Sword at the center of the field giving out a blue-white aura.
"No!" Kiba shouted.
Valper began to laugh maniacally, "Finally, it is done!"
"Seriously? Now what?" Issei asked aloud, looking back at the others.
Valper smirked at the boy, "I would suggest leaving quickly. You only have about twenty minutes before everything in this town is nothing but rubble."
Kokabiel took this time to stand from his throne, releasing his ten black wings. "If you want to save this town then you''ll need to defeat me. So, are you ready, Rias Gremory?!"
"More than!" Rias growled as she threw an even larger beam of Destruction at the Fallen.
This time, Kokabiel caught it, holding the sphere of Demonic power in his hand. Akeno used this as an opportunity to fire a bolt of lightning at the Fallen, only for him to do the exact same thing to her attack.
Kokabiel slammed the people spheres together, creating a large mass of red and black magic, with sparks of electricity flowing around it. He then threw it back at the two Devils, hitting Akeno directly and causing her to slam into Rias.
The two went flying backwards, Rias righted herself midair, but Akeno continued to fall to the ground. Natsuki summoned her own wings, flying up and catching Akeno in her arms, the Pawn was able to slowly float them back to the ground.
"Are you okay, Akeno-senapi?" Natsuki asked the girl once her feet touched the ground.
"I''m fine." Akeno said before looking to the other Pawn, "I''m sorry, Issei. You wasted all that power on me."
Issei shook his head, "I''m not worried about that right now." He then looked up at the Fallen Angel, "Hey asshole, how could you do that to her?!"
Natsuki took this moment to place the older girl gently on the ground. "I''m going to make that bastard pay."
Akeno let out a small laugh, "Ever the passionate hero, huh, Natsuki-chan."
Asia then ran towards the older girl as Rias float back down, landing next to her.
The Bishop began using her [Twilight Healing] on Akeno.
"It doesn''t look like we''ll be able to hold out. What is taking Sirzech-sama so long?" Akeno asked.
"It doesn''t matter we have to find a way to win." Rias said before looking around, "Kiba?"
Natsuki stopped in place, causing Issei to do the same, looking back seeing that Kiba was slowly walking towards Valper. "Kiba?"
Kiba stopped about a yard away from the man, staring him down venomously. "Valper Galilei, I am a survivor of the Holy Sword Project, or more accurately, of those you tried to murder. I was able to live because I was reborn as a Devil, I refused to die because I knew that one day I would avenge the death of my comrades!"
Valper grinned, "Is that so? Freed!"
The white-haired boy priest then emerged from the darkness. "What''s up, boss?"
"Use the Excalibur in the circle, it shall be the last entertainment. Fight while using this new powerful Excalibur."
"Yeah, yeah. Geez, my Boss sure uses people recklessly. But I''m so honored to use the Excalibur, I will use it to chop up you worthless Devils!" Freed put on a crazy smile while holding the Excalibur.
Valper grinned, "You see, I like Holy Swords. I had been fascinated by the legend of Excalibur since I was a child. That is why when I found out that I could not use Excalibur I fell into despair."
"Why is this geezer trying to tell us about his past?" Natsuki muttered.
"I held admiration for those who can wield it because I could not. That feeling became so powerful that I started an experiment to create those who can use them. And after years of research and experimentation my everything is completed, and it is thanks to you and the others."
"What? Complete? You disposed of us after finding us to be a failure." Kiba said incredulously.
Didn''t they dispose of them because they found them to be a failure? Kiba thought but Valper shook his head.
"I realized that there was an essential gene needed to wield Holy Swords. So, I used the numerical value of these genes to investigate their capability, most of the test subjects had the right genes, but they didn''t have the numerical value needed to wield the Excalibur. Then I reached a conclusion; Is there a way to take out the genes and gather them together?"
Xenovia''s eyes widened, "I understand now. The thing that exist within Holy Sword wielders when they received a blessing are these genes."
Valper smirked, "That''s right, girl. We take out the genes from those who have them and crystallize them. Just like this."
Valper took out an orb that was giving out light that contained this so-called holy aura in it. "With this, the research on Holy Sword wielders improved. Even so, those fools from the Church banished me for heresy and took away my reports on the research. But looking at you, I see that the project was succeeded by someone. That Michael. He made me look like a criminal and this is the result? Well, even if he takes the genes out from the test subjects, he will not go as far as to kill them. That would only make him more human than me. Kukukuku."
It became clear to everyone what Valper was saying. At present, to create Holy Sword users artificially, it requires a sacrifice. So Kiba and many others that currently worked for the Church were victims of the project started by Valper.
"¡You killed my comrades and took the genes needed from them to have others wield the Holy Swords?" Kiba asked Valper, his voice filled with killing intent.
"That is right. This orb is from back then. I have used three of them on Freed though. This is the last one."
Freed began to laugh, "Hyahahahaha! Other guys besides me died because their bodies couldn''t synchronize with the genes! If I think like that, that makes me special."
Kiba''s body began to shake, his anger palpable. "¡Valper Galilei. How many lives have you sacrificed for your greed and experiments?"
Valper playfully pondered Kiba''s question and tossed the orb in his hand to the Knight. "Hm. My research has reached the stage where it is possible to mass produce them in the right environment. So, to start, I will destroy this town with Kokabiel. Next, I will gather the legendary Holy Swords stored around the world. Then I will mass produce Holy Sword wielders and start a war against Michael and the Vatican with the combined Excaliburs. I''m going to show the result of my research to those foolish Angels and their followers who have convicted me."
"Everyone¡" There were tears on Kiba''s cheek, his expression was filled with sadness and anger.
The orb that Kiba held started giving out shallow lights, the lights started to spread, and eventually covered the whole school field. From the ground there were lights coming out and it started to form a shape.
It took the shape of people, boys and girls giving out blue-white aura as they surrounded Kiba.
"The various powers that are present on this battlefield made the spirits within the orbs appear." Akeno said, making Natsuki and Issei question how things like this happen.
The boys and girls that appeared looked at Kiba with dear and sad expressions. Kiba looked at the spirits surrounding him in shock, "Everyone! H-how ar-how are you all here?"
It was understood by all that they were also involved in the Holy Sword project, used, and disposed of.
"¡I have always¡always thought about it. Was it all right that I was the only one that survived? There were those who had more dreams than me. There were those who wanted to live more than me. Is it all right that I am the only one to have a peaceful life?" Kiba said tearfully, barely holding himself together.
Then one boy''s spirit smiled, and it seemed like he wanted to say something, he was moving his lips no sound could be heard from him.
Unlike everyone else, Kiba could understand what he was saying clearly.
[Do not worry about us anymore. You are alive at least].
There were tears coming out from both of his eyes because it seemed like their thoughts reached him. Then the spirits of boys and girls started to move their lips in a rhythm.
"¡The sacred song." Asia mumbled, as the voices of the children could now be heard, recognizing the tune.
As they were singing, Kiba started to sing while shedding tears. When they were going through the painful experiment, this was the only thing they obtained to keep their hopes and dreams, this was the only support they had to continue living during their harsh life.
Their bodies started to glow blue and white, these lights glowed brighter, with Kiba in the center.
[We were no good alone.]
[We did not have enough to wield the Holy Swords. But.]
[It will be okay if we are together.]
[You must accept the Holy Sword.]
[It is not scary.]
[Even if God is not watching over us.]
[Our hearts are always¡]
[ONE.]
Their spirits went up into the sky and they turned into a big light that fell over Kiba. The ORC watched on sadly, moved by the scene in front of them.
"That''s sweet." Akeno remarked.
Asia had her hands clasped beneath her chin, crying silent tears.
Issei was the opposite, sobbing at the sigh as he vigorously wiped his own tears away. "Damn it, Kiba! You''re breaking my heart!"
The light that split the abyss night looked as if it was giving blessings to Kiba.
Kokabiel became very intrigued by this new development. "Oh?"
Kiba glared at Valper once the lights disappeared, his resolve strengthened. "My friends never wanted me to seek revenge. They wanted me to be free, but I''m not. First, I need to destroy the evil in front of me, then no one else will have to suffer."
Kiba then summoned one of his Demonic Swords, pointing the blade at Valper. "No one but you!"
A twinge of fear appeared on Valper''s face as he took a step back. "Freed! Help me!"
Freed smirked, "Don''t you worry, I''m here!"
"Kiba! Kick that bastard''s ass and destroy those shitty Excaliburs!" Issei yelled, cheering his friend on in his pursuit.
Kiba looked back in surprise, "Issei¡"
"You are the Knight of the House of Gremory my comrade! Fight Kibaaaaaaa! Don''t waste those spirits feelings and lives!"
"Yuuto!" Rias herself began to speak, "Fight like member of my Peerage. Do it; you must finish this yourself! Surpass Excalibur! You are the servant of I, Rias Gremory, and a true Knight of mine will not lose to such a pathetic foe!"
"Come on, Yuuto-kun! We believe in you!" Akeno yelled.
"Kiba-senpai! Please do your best!" Asia shouted.
"Spill this fool''s blood." Koneko added.
"Oi, what are you still standing around for? Hurry up and beat these worthless fuckers, make them pay for their crimes." Natsuki exclaimed.
Everyone¡ Thank you. Kiba thought to himself.
"Gross! Another touching scene from the House of ''Gag me'' Gremory! It''s totally the worst, now my skin is crawling, I don''t want to hear it anymore. I''m totally at my limit! I''m going to cut you into pieces to make myself feel better!"
Freed Sellzen. My friends'' spirits reside within you. I can''t allow you to do evil deeds with them any longer! These tears I have are tears of determination.
"¡I will become a sword."
My comrades. My comrades who have merged with my spirit. Let us overcome it together. The feelings we couldn''t say back then! The wishes we couldn''t fulfil back then! Right now, right here!
"I shall become the sword of Buchou and my comrades! Please respond to my feelings now! [Sword-Rebirth]!"
"He has done it." Lux said aloud, drawing everyone''s attention to Natsuki''s Scared Gear.
Ddraig added his own voice, "She''s right, that Knight has reached it."
"What are you guys talking about?" Natsuki asked.
Lux explained what they were seeing. "Sacred Gears change and evolve while using the feelings of the possessors as a key. It happens when the thought and feelings of the user oppose nature, when they go against the natural order of things in this world. The Sacred Treasure then peaks as it reaches this new stage. Yes. This is¡"
Ddraig gave a laugh of enjoyment as he finished Lux''s sentence. "Balance Breaker."
Kiba''s Sacred Gear and the spirits of his fallen comrades began to mix, taking root in the sword he was holding, the demonic and holy powers were combining.
Yes, this sensation. My Sacred Gear is¡my comrade were telling me¡ªthat this is sublimation.
"Balance Breaker: Sword of the Betrayer! The power of this sword that has both the power of light and demonic powers!" Kiba yelled, raising his newly empowered sword into the air.
Valper looked on in shock, "A Holy Demonic Sword? That''s impossible! Two opposing elements cannot mix, something like that is an aberration!"
Xenovia moved, standing next to Kiba, and putting away her Excalibur Destruction. "Rias Gremory''s Knight, if the cooperation is still valid, let us destroy that Excalibur together."
Kiba looked at the human from the corner of his eye. "Is it okay?"
Xenovia laughed fearlessly at Kiba''s words. "At worst, it won''t be a problem if I collect the fragment of the Excalibur that is acting as the core of it. Since Freed is the one now wielding it, that blade is a Holy Sword no longer. That is a sword of heresy."
"Heresy?" Issei asked.
"Holy Swords can change depending on its user, taking on that person''s traits. And with how twisted Freed is, I can only imagine what that Excalibur is capable of." Rias explained.
"Oh, Saint Peter. Oh, Basilius and Dionysius, and the Blessed Virgin Mary, I ask you to please hear my prayer!" A golden magic circle appeared next to Xenovia, and a chained gold and blue sword slowly emerged from it. She then grabbed the sword, pulling it free from the chains that it was wrapped in. "In the name of the Saint living within this blade¡ I hereby set you free! Durandal!"
"Durandal?" Kiba asked in surprise.
"It''s a Holy Sword!" Natsuki exclaimed, unable to take her eyes off the legendary blade.
"A sword on par with Excalibur, said to be able to cut everything in this world." Akeno said in awe.
"That''s impossible! My research did not go into how to handle Durandal; no one should be able to wield that thing!" Valper exclaimed.
"You''re wrong. Unlike Kiba or Irina, I''m one of the rarely found naturals." Xenovia said.
"One who is perfectly suitable, a True Holy Sword user! So, you are not the wielder of the Excalibur!?"
"I was originally the wielder of Durandal, but I was also chosen as the holder of the Excalibur Destruction."
Not just Valper and Freed, but not even Kokabiel, could hide their astonishment.
Xenovia began to smirk, "Durandal is a sword that ravages beyond what people can imagine, cutting anything it touches. It doesn''t even listen to me most of the time. That''s why I have to keep it in another dimension, even I, its holder, has a hard time with it. Now, Freed, thanks to you, we can have the decisive battle between Excalibur and Durandal. Right now, I''m shaking with enjoyment, don''t die in a single strike, okay? At least use the Excalibur to its fullest!"
The blade of Durandal started to give out more Holy energy than the Excalibur Freed held.
That aura! It had more power than my Holy Demonic sword! Kiba thought to himself.
Freed growled before charging at the pair, "Just shut the fuck up already!"
His Excalibur started to twist as if it were alive, moving randomly as it came towards Kiba with intense speed. The Knight realized that this ability had to be from the Excalibur Mimic, showing that the sword had the abilities of the four that used to make it.
Then Freed''s sword split into two at the tip of the blade and started to come at Kiba even faster than before, with God speed. This was the ability of Excalibur Rapidly, its trait was its velocity, it accurately tried to pierce Kiba from every direction, but he blocked each strike.
Kiba had found it easier than before to read Freed''s killing intent, allowing him to know which direction the man was trying to attack him from even though he could not physically see it.
Freed became more frustrated, "Why!? Why isn''t it hitting!? This is supposed to be the unrivalled Holy Sword!? Fine, then! Then I just have to add this as well!"
The tip of the Holy Sword disappeared completely from view, a transparency pheromone of Excalibur Transparency, the ability to make the blade transparent.
GIIN! GIN! GIN! GIIIN!
The transparent sword and Kiba''s sword made sparks as they clashed against each other, the Knight still able to parry all of Freed''s attacks.
Freed narrowed his eyes and made a shocked face, even as he used the powers of his Excalibur, he was still unable to harm the Devil before him.
"Yes, keep him there." Xenovia suddenly intruded, and with a single side slash, the Excalibur shattered. Because of the pressure given by the swing of Durandal, there was a big hole in the school field where Freed had previously stood, having been sent flying backwards.
"So, it''s just a broken Holy Sword, huh. It can''t even compete with my Durandal." Xenovia sighed while looking bored.
"Are you serious!? Are you really fucking serious!? The legendary Excalibur, shattered into pieces!? And by Devil scum and a worthless bitch no less! Was it wrong to use something that was broken from the start? Is this all the shallowness of humans can accomplish?" Freed cried out, his killing intent dissipating as his resolve began to falter.
A shallow shattering sound echoed across the school field and the broken pieces of the Excalibur began crumbling away into nothingness.
Kiba smiled before using his Knightly speed to rush towards Freed, using his Holy Deomic sword to cut the rouge exorcist down, blood beginning to flow from the wound that was made from his shoulder to the side of his stomach.
"Gah! Fucking damn it!" Freed hissed as he clutched his wound.
Kiba smiled to himself, "Did you see it? Our powers have surpassed Excalibur!"
Valper stood gob smacked, "How is this possible? In theory, the fusion if Holy and Devil powers is-"
Kiba then turned to face the man, remembering that just because he and Xenovia destroyed the Excalibur did not mean that his mission was over. "Prepare yourself, Valper Galilei!"
Valper then started to laugh maniacally, "¡I see! I understand now! If the balance between Holy and Demonic powers is disrupted, then it could be possible! Which means that not only the Maous but God has also-"
Before the man could finish his explanation, everyone watching was shocked when a spear of light fell from above, piercing Valper through the chest, killing him instantly.
"Oh, Valper, you were a remarkable mind. Unfortunately, you were not supposed to figure that part out." Kokabiel said aloud as he slowly descended upon the group.
"What are you doing, Kokabiel?" Rias asked, like the others she was confused as to why would kill his ally.
Kokabiel chuckled, "I''m destroying everything I find tedious. Now, I''m even more bored than before." He then looked at Issei, "You there, Red Dragon Emperor! Raise the dragon''s power as much as you can and transfer it to one of them."
He was pointing at Rias and Akeno as he said this before looking at Natsuki, "And you Golden Dragon Empress, do you need me to fire some spears of light at you? I can send as much as I can to empower you to your limits."
Natsuki narrowed her eyes, "Why would you allow us to do any of that? You know that you give us the edge over you."
Kokabiel laughed, "That is exactly what I want; You all are going to need as much help as you can get to even last a minute against me. I would not want our battle to end too quickly by squashing you too fast."
Natsuki looked back at her King to get her orders, "Rias-Buchou."
Rias continued to look at Kokabiel as she spoke, "We''re out of time, my brother should have gotten here by now."
"So, we''re doing this?" Natsuki asked.
Rias looked towards her Peerage; she saw how everyone was looking at her, their faith in her unwavering, fully prepared to follow her into this battle, even as the odds were stacked against them. A sigh escaped her as she grabbed Issei''s hand, "Akeno."
Akeno nodded her head, moving towards Natsuki and placing her hands on the Pawn''s back, her hands glowing as she pushed her magic into Natsuki. The Pawn''s Sacred Gear shining brightly as it absorbed the magical energy that was being given.
"Let''s do this." Rias said as she and Issei began walking towards Kokabiel.
The Fallen Angel grinning from ear to ear as the sounds of Issei''s Scared Gear could be heard as it charged up, excited to see just what the group before him was truly capable of.
Go, Occult Research Club!
"¡It''s done!"
Issei''s gauntlet emitted a bright light that shined like a beacon, the Sacred Gear having reached its limit.
"Issei!"
"Yes!"
Issei started to transfer the power at Rias'' call, from their clasped hands, a green aura passed from the Pawn to the King. The aura once it left Issei, changed color, becoming red as it covered Rias'' body, increasing drastically in size.
"Fuhahaha! Good! That flow of Demonic power! The Demonic power I can feel right now is that of an Ultimate-Class Devil. A little bit more and you could reach that of a Maou, Rias Gremory! Looks like you have a talent equal to that of your brother''s!" The Fallen Angel leader laughed as if he was genuinely enjoying it all, his expression was colored in ecstasy, showing the pleasure he felt in fighting.
"In that case, be gone!" From Rias'' hand, a large amount of Demonic energy was shot out, covered in the Power of Destruction.
It made a shockwave that shook the ground as the powerful shot headed towards Kokabiel, with both his hands put in front of him, he tried to deflect it. "Interesting! Interesting, you''re indeed a Maou''s sister!"
Kokabiel began to gather the power of light into his hands, as he took the blast head on. Rias'' shot started to get pushed back, beginning to lose its shape. Even with the power from Issei''s [Boosted Gear], Rias'' magic had not done much damage to Kokabiel, only tattering his black robe and cutting his palms. And because of the attack she just performed, Rias'' breathing became ragged, glaring at the man with nothing but pure hatred.
It wasn''t enough! Rias thought.
"Now ring out, Lightning!" Akeno sent the lightning towards Kokabiel who was still facing Rias, but her lightning was dissipated with a single movement of Kokabiel''s wing.
Kokabiel smirked as he turned to Akeno, "Will you stand in my way!? You who inherited her power from Baraqiel!?"
Akeno''s eyes widened, becoming enraged, "Don''t speak his name! I am nothing like that creature!" She continued to use lightning, but they were all deflected by Kokabiel''s wings.
Baraqiel? Isn''t that a Fallen Angel? Natsuki thought as she stared at Akeno''s back. How is he related to Akeno?
"What''s a Baraqiel?" Issei asked aloud.
"One of the Fallen Angel leaders." Xenovia answered, "He can use lighting and thunder, so basically Akeno''s power."
Kokabiel laughed loudly after nullifying Akeno''s attack completely. "For you to become a Devil! How hilarious, how far have you sunk!" He then looked back at Rias, "You have such interesting servants, Rias Gremory! Sekiryuutei! Kogane Ry¨± K¨g¨! The leftovers of the Holy Sword Project who reached Balance Breaker! And the daughter of Baraqiel! You have weird tastes, just like your brother!"
"No, it can''t be!" Xenovia exclaimed in shock.
"What?! For real, Akeno? You''re the daughter of a Fallen Angel?" Issei yelled.
Akeno grits her teeth, staring at the ground in shame and anger, she could not find the strength to turn and look at the others, afraid of seeing the disgust and anger on their faces.
Issei, Asia, Xenovia... Natsuki, they all must hate me now. Akeno thought disparaging.
Kokabiel snickered, "How terribly amusing. A propensity for inferior products must run in the-"
The Fallen Angel was cut off by a large black mass of energy flying at him and hitting him directly in the face and knocking him back a step.
Everyone turned and saw Natsuki who was scowling at the man viciously, her hand still raised up, facing Kokabiel. "Did anyone teach you not to talk so much, you fucking bastard? That wasn''t your secret to tell, it was Akeno''s. And where do you get off calling her or any of us inferior products? An overinflated piece of shit like you has no room to judge anyone."
Natsuki did not know the relationship between Akeno and her father, but it was clear based on Akeno''s reaction that it was not a good one. Akeno obviously did not want the newer members of the Peerage to know, that she was not ready to tell them, so seeing Akeno angry and ashamed of Kokabiel revealing her parentage, and his amusement with everything, made Natsuki''s blood boil with rage.
Akeno stared at the other girl in awe, surprised that Natsuki was not mad at her, but for her. "Natsuki..."
The smoke cleared from Kokabiel''s head, revealing that Natsuki''s attack had caused the skin to burn away from half of his face, showing the muscles and bone underneath. But the Fallen still had that damnable smirk on what was left of his lips, "Oho! It seems I''ve awoken the dragon. Will you be the one who gives me a somewhat passable challenge?"
Rias drew his attention away from the Pawn, "Your comments about my brother will not be tolerated! But more than that, for insulting my servants, you will pay the ultimate price!"
Kokabiel flew to the ground, landing with a resounding slam that kicked up some dirt. He smiled provokingly at Rias, "By all means, go ahead and try to destroy me! A Maou''s sister! Possessor of Welsh and Evolving Dragons! The Crimson-Haired Ruin Princess! Please tell me you realize whom you are up against? You are confronting the archenemy of Devils! See this as a chance you may never get again."
Kiba gritted his teeth, he did not know if his new Holy Demonic Sword could go against the Fallen Angel, but he knew he had to try, that if they were going to defeat Kokabiel, then he could not stand around not doing anything.
As he gripped his sword, Xenovia took a step forward, slowly walking past Kiba, "We will attack at the same time."
After hearing that, Kiba also moved ahead, putting his strength into his sword, and went on slashing at Kokabiel with Xenovia. Xenovia reached the Fallen first, attempting to bring her sword down on his head, but Kokabiel created a sword of light with his hand and blocked her.
"Hmph! Durandal, huh!? Unlike the Excalibur that was already broken once, its light is the real thing! But..." The air shook, and there was a buzzing that rang throughout the field, Kokabiel emitted an air wave from his other hand and made Xenovia''s body float, using this to kick Xenovia in the stomach.
"Gaa!" Xenovia flew back with an anguished cry.
"It depends on the wielder, girl! You still can''t control Durandal! The previous wielder was someone who had unrivaled strength!"
As this was happening, Kiba finally reached Kokabiel, engaging the Fallen with a flurry of sword strikes, which Kokabiel countered with ease. Xenovia adjusted her stance in the air and landed on the ground, she then went on slashing towards him once again, Kiba continued attacking him at the same time.
"Kokabiel! I will eliminate you with my Holy Demonic Sword! I''m not allowed to lose anyone anymore!" Kiba roared.
Kokabiel grinned, "Ho! Attacks at the same time from a Holy Sword and a Holy Demonic Sword! Interesting! Good indeed! Come! You can''t defeat me unless you do that much!"
Kokabiel created another sword of light with his other hand and clashed with their swords, Kiba''s Holy Demonic Sword and Xenovia''s Durandal. He was taking on both of their attacks as if it was nothing, showing that even in terms of swordsmanship, Kokabiel was above them.
Kokabiel rolled his eyes when he felt a presence trying to sneak up on him from behind, Koneko jumped towards him, thrusting her fist out with the intent to punch him.
"How na?ve." Suddenly, his black wings turned into sharp blades and cut up Koneko''s body, her body fell to the ground as blood oozed out of her open wounds.
"Koneko-chan!" Kiba screamed in horror.
"Hey, looking away while fighting will easily get you killed!"
Kiba had let his guard down because of the damage Koneko took, allowing Kokabiel''s sword of light come straight at him. Luckily, his fast reflexes gained from being a Knight kicked in, allowing him to block the blow with his sword on instinct. The sound of cracking soon permeated the atmosphere, causing Kiba to look down at his sword when he realized where the noise was coming from.
A crack appeared on his Holy Demonic Sword, the strength of it solidness depended on his thinking, so if he lost concentration for a moment, then for that period, the hardness of his blade would go down as well.
Another shock wave emanated from Kokabiel''s body, sending Xenovia and Kiba flying, both were to fix their stances midair and land on their feet but were each breathing heavily.
Issei covered Asia as they ran to Koneko''s side, the former nun activating her Sacred Gear and beginning to heal Koneko''s wounds.
"Issei, just focus on boosting. We''ll create an opening for you." Natsuki said to her fellow Pawn.
Issei nodded his head, "On it."
[Boost!]
"Good." Natsuki said before running at Kokabiel, his fist raised as she punched him.
Kokabiel was able to catch Natsuki''s fist, but the Devil used her momentum to bring her left foot up and kicked him across the face.
"Is that all-" Natsuki did not let the Fallen finish his sentence, bringing up her free hand and blasting him in the face with another Black Bolt.
Before she knew it, Natsuki felt a horribly painful sensation coming from her stomach, looking down she saw that Kokabiel''s fist was there. The Fallen''s face was even more burned than before, but he smiled as he used his other hand to slap Natsuki away. The Pawn was sent hurdling into the sky before landing on the ground with a loud bang, cracking the ground beneath her.
"Natsuki!" Akeno and Rias cried out.
"C''mon, that can''t be all you have?" Kokabiel asked playfully, the skin on his face slowly beginning to regenerate.
Kiba growled, "Kokabiel! It''s not over yet!" He put as much strength as he could into his Holy Demonic Sword, the crack on the blade disappearing as he ran forward, rushing Kokabiel.
Kokabiel laughed, "Hahaha! You still want to come at me? All right! Come!"
"[Sword Birth]!" Kiba surrounded the Fallen Angel by making swords covered with Holy and Demonic aura, trapping Kokabiel in a prison of swords.
"You think you''ve captured me with this?" The ten wings of Kokabiel started to sharpen again and began breaking the swords around him with ease.
It didn''t work! Kiba moved to strike him from the front, but the Fallen Angel didn''t flinch at all, stopping Kiba''s Holy Demonic Sword with just two fingers.
Kokabiel sighed in disappointment, "Is this it?"
Kiba''s Holy Demonic Sword had been stopped and he could not move it at all. He then created another Holy Demonic sword, but that was also stopped with Kokabiel''s other hand, the Fallen again using two fingers to stop the second blade.
It''s not over yet! Kiba opened his mouth wide and imagined creating a Holy Demonic Sword around his mouth. This third sword, he gripped with his teeth and moved his neck roughly to the side. Kokabiel did not think of a third strike, causing him to let go of Kiba''s swords and stepped back. As Kiba looked at the Fallen Angel, he saw that there was but a small scratch on his cheek, a bit of blood coming out of it.
The Knight looked at him despairingly, even with that attack, Kiba could only give him that much damage.
So, this was the power of one of the top echelons of Fallen Angels.
Everyone else was making similar expressions of despair and breathed violently. Only Kokabiel who had the advantage, was smirking.
"You cut me." Kokabiel said before throwing a sphere of Holy Light at Kiba.
Xenovia jumped in front of the Devil, using her own sword to block the attack, the attack pushed her back a bit, but Xenovia was able to cut through the sphere and dispel it.
Natsuki sat up with a groan, rubbing the side of her face, "That fucking hurt."
"Are you okay?" Rias asked as she and Akeno helped pull Natsuki to her feet.
"Other than the fact that I just got bitch slapped, I''m peachy." Natsuki drawled.
Rias rolled her eyes, "Well, you''re being sarcastic so you must be fine."
[Boost!] Issei''s [Boosted Gear] cried out.
Issei looked at his fallen and tired friends, gritting his teeth with how he had to sideline himself. "A little bit more, I''m almost there."
Kokabiel began to laugh when he saw that they were regaining their resolve. "Why fight so hard even after losing the master you serve?"
"Mind clarifying that?" Rias asked with doubt.
Kokabiel began to laugh even harder, "That''s right, I totally forgot. The truth wasn''t revealed to you lowly grunts! We''ll there''s no point in hiding it any longer, I am trying to start a war; in the pervious three-way war, God was killed alongside the Yondai-Maou!"
Everyone stood shocked, no one could believe the words that had just come out of his mouth. God, the supreme being, the creator of everything, had been dead for centuries.
"He''s what? God has been dead since the war? How is that possible?" Rias opened and closed her mouth, trying to find the words, before shaking her head and staring at the Fallen Angel. "You''re lying; I''ve never heard anything about that!"
"It''s normal for you all to not know about it. Who can just come out and say that God has died? Humans are an incomplete bunch, without God, they cannot control their hearts and obey the rules, you know? Even us, the Fallen Angels, and Devils couldn''t tell this secret to those below us. You won''t know where the information about God will be leaked from. Even among the three-powers, only the people at the top and certain people know about it. Though it seems Valper noticed it earlier." Kokabiel playfully shrugged his shoulders.
He then leaned back, raising his head to look down on them. "Back then, the Devils lost all their Kings and the majority of their High-Class Devils. The Angels and Fallen Angels lost almost everyone except for their leaders. Pure Angels could not increase their numbers, and purebred Devils are just as rare, aren''t they? All sides have been ruined to the point where they must rely on humans to survive; Angels, Fallen Angels, Devils. The leaders of the three factions had to seal this information away, that way the God-fearing humans would keep on fearing."
"No way. God is dead?" Xenovia whispered to herself, her eyes wide and her face pale. "Lies, they''re lies, it''s not true, it can''t be true."
She then fell to her knees, a panicked and fearful expression overtaking her face. She was an active believer, God''s servant, a person who lived their life to serve God, viewing it as a holy mission. With the existence of God being called into question, Xenovia was losing the will to fight, the will to live.
Asia was in a similar position as she stumbled backwards as if the truth had hit her like a physical blow.
Kokabiel continued to rant, but this time his expression grew into one of disgust and hatred. "I don''t care about any of that. What drives me crazy the most is the fact that after God and the Maous died, it was decided to stop the war! Why would they do something like that in the middle of winning?! How dare they try to keep me from squashing my enemies just when it was getting fun?! We would have won! Even that bastard Azazel declared there would never be another war! And now, Fallen Angels are stuck relying on inviting humans who possess Sacred Gears to join our ranks."
All expect Asia were taken aback by the manic and demented look on Kokabiel''s face as she shakily rose to her feet. "God doesn''t exist anymore? Then where is the love that has been given to us coming from?"
"Heh! Michael has been holding his own so far, he''s the one who has been keeping the humans and Angels together in God''s stead."
"The Archangel Michael is acting as God''s agent?" Xenovia asked aloud as her head fell, "What does that mean for our prayers?"
Kokabiel continued to talk, "As long as the system works, prayer and exorcisms will endure to a certain extent. I''m sure someone has been listening."
After hearing this Asia fainted, as she was falling, Koneko jumped up to catch her before she could hit the ground.
"Asia!" Issei exclaimed as the girl fell into Koneko''s arms, watching as the Rook placed her unconscious body against a nearby tree.
Xenovia looked back at them with pity, "It''s a natural reaction to have. I''m surprised that I can even think right now."
Kokabiel smiled, "Well, I suppose knowing that compared to when God was still alive, the number of believers has drastically decreased, doesn''t help, does it? But without anyone to manage the balance between good and evil, it''s no wonder something contradictory like the Holy Demonic Sword would appear. Which means the war must continue! And I''ll keep it going by taking your heads if I must!"
Akeno looked at Rias, watching the redhead''s body beginning to shake. "Rias?"
Rias lowered her head, causing her bangs to fall over her eyes, her body still shaking and her voice starting to crack. "Again, I''ve let my pride get in the way. It''s my fault."
"Fuck off, asshole! Natsuki was right, you really don''t know when to shut up!" Issei screamed, jumping to his feet.
"Issei..." Rias said softly, staring at him in awe.
"I''m not going to let you destroy this town or my friends, and I don''t care what bullshit reasons you have! Besides, I don''t think you understand; I''m going to be the Harem King! And some clich¨¦, wing flapping Fallen Angel is not getting in the way of my glory!" Issei shouted, cocking his fist back.
Kokabiel looked at him stunned, before starting to cackle. "Harem King? You mean, that''s all the infamous Red Dragon Emperor wants?" He then smirked enticingly, "Then join me, you''ll be Harem King in no time. Beautiful girls falling at your feet wherever you go. You just point at the ones you like and take them."
Issei froze on the spot, his lips quivering and his eyes glossing over, "I... I wo-won''t fall f-for y-your sweet, awesome words. Even though that sounds amazing."
"Seriously, Issei? You''re considering betraying us just like that?" Natsuki said, staring at him with both disapproval and annoyance.
Rias became angry, "Issei! Wipe that drool from your mouth! Why are you like this even in this kind of situation?!"
"Yes, ma''am!" Issei exclaimed, wiping his mouth, and standing as straight as a rod. "So-sorry, you know how I get with the word Harem."
Rias sighed, "If you really like girls that much, listen up. After we get back home, I will let you do whatever you want to me."
That sentence echoed in Issei''s mind, repeating over and over. His cheeks turned red as he looked back at Rias from the corner of his eye, "Really? So, uh, not just groping, but like, even sucking on your boobs?"
Rias looked a bit uncomfortable, but pushed forward, "You can. If that''s what it takes, it''s a small price to pay."
As images of Rias'' breasts flashed through his mind, the jewel on Issei''s Sacred Gear let out a large burst if glowing green light.
"No way!" Rias exclaimed as she and the others watched the display.
"I know that light, I swear I''ve seen this before!" Kiba shouted.
A closed eyed smile appeared on Akeno''s face, "It''s a Sacred Gear releasing power after being perfectly aligned with its master''s wishes."
Issei closed his eyes, raising his fist into the air as he smirked, "Yes, bring it on, Kokabiel. You''re going down, and I''m going to suck on a pair of world class tits!" He then opened his eyes and pointed his finger at Kokabiel, "Right now, I feel like I can kick God''s ass. Lucky for him, he''s already dead."
[Explosion!] The [Boosted Gear] exclaimed, taking on a new appearance as a second green jewel formed and the gauntlet took up more space on Issei''s arm.
"It''s like when Natsuki uses her gear." Kiba said, noting that more of Issei''s arm was covered, like how more of Natsuki''s body was covered by her [Ethereal Domination].
An enormous amount of power flowed out of Issei, the boy grinning wildly, "Hell yeah! I''m going to beat you into the ground and suck on Buchou''s nipples, Kokabiel!"
Kokabiel growled and threw a spear of Holy Light at him. Issei took off running, punching through the spear with a single blow, jumping into the air and slamming his gauntlet covered fist into the side of the Fallen Angel''s face. Kokabiel took a few steps back and held his now bruised cheek, glaring at the Devil, "All the Red Dragon Emperor had to do release this much power was think about sucking on some breasts? Unbelievable. What in the world are you?"
Issei gave him a smirk, moving his body and making what he thought was a cool pose. "Remember me, Kokabiel! My name is Hyoudou Issei, I possess a [Boosted Gear] powered on sex and passion. I am also Rias Gremory''s Pawn!"
A rueful smile appeared on Kiba''s face, "This is embarrassing. I bet he thinks that sounds cool."
Koneko stared at the Pawn blankly, "Being a twisted pervert will never be cool."
Natsuki stared at Issei, not knowing what to feel about Issei''s newfound strength. With a reason like that!? The Sacred Gear increased its power by answering Issei''s lecherous thoughts! He... he did what I couldn''t. Natsuki thought, clenching her fists tightly.
"Well, I suppose that''s Issei for you, right?" Akeno said, amused.
Rias cleared her throat, trying to will down the blush that had formed on her cheeks from how blatant Issei''s desire for her was. "He''s right; what''s important now is that we haven''t lost yet, you can only lose when you give up. Let''s take Issei''s lead guys!"
"You got it, Rias!" Akeno, Kiba, and Koneko said in union, all three being emboldened by Issei''s actions and Rias'' words.
Natsuki remained silent, still clenching her fists. For the first time since she had known Issei, she had found herself staring at his back, a feeling of dread building inside at the thought of Issei surpassing her and leaving her in the dust.
"Do not tell me you are going to sit back while your allies fight?" Lux said in Natsuki''s head.
"I... I wasn''t. I just... Issei has gotten stronger." Natsuki stammered.
"Is that not what you wanted?" Lux asked.
Natsuki looked at the ground, "I did, but, this strength, Issei got it from thinking about breasts! He has synchronized with his [Boosted Gear, I wasn''t able to do that. Last time, you had to take over my body to use Balance Breaker, my strength then and now aren''t-"
"Did I end up in the possession of a coward?!" Lux growled, causing Natsuki to wince as it felt like her head was splitting open. "It does not matter if you are weak now, you swore to get stronger, to become the strongest, and you will not become that by being jealous of other''s growth. Where is the girl that put her life on the line to keep her friends from ending up as Riser''s playthings? Where is the girl that begged at the feet of a Devil to save the life of a friend that she believed she failed to protect? The odds have always been against you, and you have never wavered, so do not do so now!"
Natsuki took a breath, "You''re right, Lux. I''m sorry you had to see me like that."
The Pawn then took a step forward, "Minus all the boob stuff, Issei is right. Who gives a shit if this idiot is Fallen Angel leader or that God is dead, it doesn''t change the fact that we''re going to kick his ass."
Kokabiel scoffed, but he was still grinning, "I admit I found myself surprised when not one, but two low ranking Devils managed to land blows on me. But I guess I should have expected such from two Dragon Emperors, this is interesting, I find it remarkably interesting!"
Natsuki''s frown turned into a scowl as a shiver ripped through her. An unknown fear and nervousness encapsulated her whole body, she could feel an overwhelming power above them, her head snapped up to look at the barrier above them. "Guys! Something''s above us! Something incredibly powerful!"
Just as she said this, something fell from the sky, crashing through the barrier and destroying it while overwhelming everyone with its presence and the power difference, making Natsuki despair.
Whatever it is, it''s far stronger than Kokabiel! Natsuki thought, horrified.
"They have finally arrived..." Lux said, clear surprise bleeding through her tone.
This story originates from a different website. Ensure the author gets the support they deserve by reading it there.
"Wait, seriously, Lux?! Then are they here for Issei?" Natsuki asked aloud, drawing the Peerage''s attention.
"Do you know who that is, Natsuki?" Rias asked but Natsuki did not respond, still staring at the figure in shock.
Despite not understanding what was going on, Issei could feel his entire body beginning to shake, his heart racing and his left arm burned as he looked at the mysterious newcomer.
What''s going on? And who is that?!
The person descended while cutting the abyss of the sky by sending out a white light. They were glowing a bright white light, not leaving a shadow in the dark night. They floated an inch off the ground, covered in white plated armor with jewels across it in various locations. The armor also had a mask, covering the face of the person wearing it.
Eight armored wings emerged from the person''s back, giving out a divine glow. While it had a different shape and color, it was nearly identical to the [Boosted Gear] and [Ethereal Domination] Scale-Mails.
"¡The Vanishing Dragon." Natsuki muttered, but the tense silence that had overtook the field allowed everyone to hear her.
The other half of the Two Heavenly Dragons, the rival of the Welsh Dragon, and one of the nineteen Longinus. But what shocked everyone was the fact that the wielder of [Divine Dividing], was in their complete Balance Breaker state.
Kokabiel sneered as he looked up, "So the Vanishing Dragon must be captivated by the Red as well-"
Before Kokabiel could finish his sentence, the White Dragon Emperor appeared behind him in the blink of an eye, two of Kokabiel''s black wings now within their hands, causing the Fallen Angel to cry out in agony.
"What is he doing to him?" Issei asked aloud.
"He... he moved too fast to even see." Kiba said, surprised that he was only able to see the aftermath of the White Dragon Emperor''s action.
"Your wings remind me of a filthy crow, Azazel''s wings are deeper, like everlasting darkness." The Vanishing Dragon said, their voice carrying across the field.
Kokabiel gritted his teeth, glaring at his new opponent as he clutched the top of his back. "My... my wings! What the fuck do you think you''re doing, you bastard?!"
"Someone who''s fallen lower than the ground hardly needs wings, don''t you agree?" The White Dragon Emperor said sarcastically, a hint of amusement bleeding into his voice.
Kokabiel flew up into the air, creating countless Holy Light Spears in the sky, but the White Dragon Emperor was hardly intimidated by the display.
[Divide!] Cried from [Divine Dividing] and the aura surrounding Kokabiel disappeared along with half of the light spears.
"The name of the dragon within me is Albion. One of the powers of my Sacred Gear is [Divine Dividing]. It halves the power of those I touch every ten seconds, your power will become my power. You don''t have time, if you don''t defeat me quickly, you will become so weak that you can''t even beat a human." They said to the Fallen tauntingly.
"Cuts power in half?" Issei exclaimed.
"The Red Dragon Emperor multiples its owner''s power and transfers it to something, while the White Dragon Emperor halves the enemy''s power, using that for its owner." Rias stated, scoffing at the situation they were now in, "So the legends were right."
Issei gulped, turning from Rias to Natsuki, "If that''s true, isn''t their power just like yours, Natsuki?"
"No, it''s not." Natsuki growled, her eyes not straying from the White Dragon''s form.
It''s better, it''s far better than my own. Natsuki thought, her fingernails digging into her palm with how tightly she was clenching her fists.
From what she could see, [Divine Dividing] allowed the White Dragon Emperor to absorb another''s power just by being near them, including magical attacks. Natsuki could do no such thing, she could not take power just by being near, she had to be touching them or physically touching magic in some way to absorb it. So, in her mind, even with the ten second caveat, [Divine Dividing] was superior to [Ethereal Domination], at least with how she was currently capable of using her Sacred Gear.
With his remaining wings, Kokabiel tried to fly towards the Vanishing Dragon, but he could not catch him because he was not able to keep up with the Sacred Gear user''s movements, looking as if they were moving at the speed of light. It was shocking to those on the ground that one of the echelons of the Fallen Angels who was overwhelming them minutes prior, was being played around with.
[Divide!]
A small chuckle escaped the White Dragon, "Still bored? Here, let me make this a little more fun for you."
[Divide!]
Kokabiel tried to attack with another spear of light and a sword of light, but Hakuryuukou swung his arm to the side and vaporized them. While Kokabiel was having a tough time fighting, his powers were being halved and after a few moments, Kokabiel''s power had fallen so low that any of the Devils below could take him on with ease.
"Already the power of a middle-level Fallen Angel, huh? Boring. I thought I could have a bit more fun¡" They then flew at Kokabiel at breakneck speed, slamming their fist deep into Kokabiel''s stomach, causing the Fallen to cough up blood.
"¡I¡Impossible¡ me¡" Kokabiel muttered, unable to believe how badly he was being beaten.
"What? You said a common phrase of a worthless grunt. ''Impossible? Me?'' What''s after that? ''This can''t be?'' Is it?" The Emperor laughed as if they found it truly amusing. "I was told you were getting out of hand, so Azazel asked me to bring you back, by any means necessary."
"So that''s how it is! Azazel¡ Azazeeeeel! I¡I¡!" Kokabiel growled, howling with rage.
The figure then punched Kokabiel in the face, causing the Fallen to crumple and fall to the ground. Once the Fallen was unconscious, the mystery person hoisted Kokabiel onto his shoulder.
Natsuki shook with a silent rage, this had been the hardest battle they had ever fought and yet, the White Dragon Emperor defeated Kokabiel with ease.
He''s also a dragon holder, Issei''s eternal rival, and he''s better than us, so much fucking better!
"Looks like I must carry that stray exorcist as well, there are some things I need to ask that fool." The White Dragon Emperor said to himself as he walked towards the unconscious Freed, grabbing the human by his collar, and dragging him along.
As they were about to leave, Ddraig spoke out loud, the gems on the [Boosted Gear] glowing. "Are you going to ignore me, White One?"
The White Dragon Emperor turned around, their wings glowing as Albion started to speak, "You''re still alive, Red One?"
Ddraig scoffed, "I''ve been wondering when we would finally meet again."
"As have I, we are still fated to fight. It is inevitable."
"You two are always ready to fight, even when there are other things of more importance." Lux called out, causing the gem on Natsuki''s necklace to glow gold.
Albion sounded surprised and jovial, "Lux? It has been even longer since we have spoken to each other, sister."
"You''d be even more surprised to learn that our dear sister wishes to join us in battle. She''s feeling left out." Ddraig said cheekily.
"Is that true?" Albion asked, his voice intensifying.
Lux sighed, "Only this time around. My champion here desires to be the strongest, getting past you two is a step in what we must do to accomplish this goal."
"Then it appears that our battle will be even more exciting." Albion stated.
"A fight between the Two Heavenly Dragons is already hard to imagine, but adding the Evolving Dragon to it, it''s unbelievable." Rias said incredulously.
"That''s how it is. Then let meet again, Ddraig, Lux." Albion said.
"Yes, let''s, Albion." Ddraig said.
"Farewell, brother." Lux said.
The White Dragon Emperor was preparing to leave once more, but Issei was not having it.
"Hey, wait!" Issei exclaimed, scowling at the figure in white. "What the hell is going on?! I don''t even know who you are!" The Pawn then clenched his fists, "More importantly, you just ruined everything! I was going to win, now I can''t suck on Rias-Buchou''s boobs and it''s all your fault!"
Seriously? Almost everyone else thought, still amazed at where Issei''s priorities lay.
The White Dragon Emperor spoke as if they did not hear Issei''s reason for being angry at them. "Before you can understand, you''ll need more power." They then looked at Natsuki, "Both of you will. So become stronger, my rivals, we will fight someday."
They then turned into a white light and flew up, leaving everyone speechless at the outcome of the fight, and the magic circle of destruction that Kokabiel created had disappeared as the White Dragon Emperor carried him away from the school.
"Rias." A voice called out.
"Sona!" Rias quickly turned around, seeing her oldest friend and her Peerage standing a few feet behind her.
"I wonder what caused the White Dragon Emperor to show up out of the blue like that." Sona said, staring up in the sky.
Rias let out a deprecating laugh, "I wonder if he even knows that he saved our town?"
"Oh, I certainly doubt it." Sona said nonchalantly before turning to her Queen, "Now, Tsubaki, it''s time to repair the damage done to our school."
Tsubaki looked at the damaged field, "We should be able to finish before classes start, Kaichou."
"We can help." Rias offered, feeling bad as most of the damage done was due to herself and her Peerage.
Sona shook her head, "No, taking care of the school is the job of the student council."
As this was going on, Kiba looked down at his Holy Demonic Sword. Is it over? No. There were still people who took over Valper''s research. When I confront those people, what I will do with this Holy Demonic Sword, I still don''t know. But now, yes, just for now-
Kiba felt someone wrap their arm around his shoulders. "Hey, you did it, pretty boy."
"Oh, thank you, Issei." Kiba said softly, snapping out of his thoughts.
Issei then looked at Kiba''s sword with interest, "So that''s a Holy Demonic Sword? It looks beautiful with the whole white and black thing all mixed together. Super badass."
Kiba looked away from Issei, "Look, Issei, I wanted to say something-"
Issei waved this off casually, "No, don''t say another word, okay? It''s over now, isn''t that enough, for the Holy Swords and your friends?"
Kiba stared at Issei surprised, not expecting to be let off so easily for everything he had said to the other boy.
Issei then folded his arms behind his head, "Besides, with all the new drama we now have, whatever you were going to say is too much for my brain right now."
The image of the White Dragon Emperor flashed through his mind, momentarily stopping the joyful and happy aura Issei was trying to exude.
"Um, we can still do club activities, right, Kiba-san?" The pair turned and saw that Asia was now awake, walking towards them with Koneko by her side.
Kiba felt bad as Asia was worried about him, even though she should be having a tough time after the learning that God no longer existed.
You really are a kind girl, Asia. Kiba thought.
Just when he was going to reassure Asia, someone else called out to him.
"Yuuto." Rias said, giving him a warm smile.
"Rias¡" Kiba replied, not knowing what to say.
"Yuuto-kun, I''m glad you decided to come back to us. And for you to be a Balance Breaker, as your master, I can''t tell how proud of you that makes me."
In response, Kiba dropped to one knee, bowing his head to her. "Still¡ I betrayed the club. And most importantly, I betrayed you, the person who saved my life and gave me purpose. I can''t make up for what I''ve done, nor can I find the words to express my apology."
Rias'' expression became softer, still smiling at her Knight. "But you came back, that''s enough for me, that''s enough for all of us. Next time, don''t let everyone''s feelings go to waste."
Kiba looked up, seeing the smiles on the rest of the ORC''s face before dropping his head again, trying not to cry shamefully. "Buchou¡ I''ll make my vow to you once more. I, Kiba Yuuto, promise to protect you and your companions as a Knight of the House of Gremory for the rest of my life."
Rias walked towards Kiba, kneeling in front of him and gently cradling his face, pulling the surprised boy''s face into her chest as she held him. "Thank you, and welcome home."
Issei jumped forward, staring at the pair jealously, "Hey get your face off there, that''s my spot!"
"Calm down." Kiba said placating.
"Instead of being a stupid Pawn, I wish I could have protected everyone as a Knight like you did!" Issei''s jealous look soon turned into a happy and accepting one, "But I guess you''re it. You''re the only guy I know who''s good enough to be Rias-Buchou''s Knight, so no more flaking on your responsibilities."
Kiba smiled gratefully, happy to know that he was still accepted by the group.
"Now then, Kiba." Rias began, a glowing red aura covering her hand, giving him a closed eyed smile. "It''s time to accept your punishment. One thousand spankings."
"What?!" Kiba exclaimed, his face becoming pale with fear.
Issei started laughing at the Knight''s plight, "This is awesome! Good luck with your punishment, pretty boy!"
"Shut up, Issei!" Kiba yelled, cautiously taking a few steps back as he stared at Rias'' glowing hand nervously.
The Knight considered using his speed to run, but after taking a few more steps, he bumped into something behind him. When Kiba turned to look, he saw Natsuki standing behind him, a cruel and vindictive smirk gracing her lips.
Natsuki stared at Kiba sharply, her smirk growing more with it, "You know, Kiba. Issei, Saji, and I got spanked harshly by our masters for going out of our way to help you. Honestly, it was one of the worst pains I''ve ever experienced, and it was embarrassing as fucking hell. Don''t you think as the person who caused all of this by running away and acting like a damn brat, that you should take yours like man, instead of trying to run away?"
"I-But I didn''t a-ask you to d-do that!" Kiba stammered.
Natsuki then reached forward and grabbed both of Kiba''s arms, holding them in a painfully tight grip. "Are you trying to say that we shouldn''t have been good friends and came to your rescue? Maybe I should ask Rias to give you another thousand spankings, just for being so inconsiderate to us, Casanova?"
"Natsuki, if you would be so kind?" Rias said, continuing to walk closer to them, her glowing hand raised.
Natsuki wordlessly kicked Kiba''s feet from under him, pushing him onto the ground and pressing one foot onto Kiba''s back, the boy''s backside now raised up into the air.
Issei began to cheer, "Yeah, Natsuki, hold him down!"
Rias maintained a warm smile that contrasted greatly with her magic enhanced hand as she now stood behind Kiba.
Oh, no. Kiba thought fearfully.
A Few Days Later
Issei and Asia were talking to each other as they entered the club room, only for their conversation to cease when they saw they saw a familiar blue-haired foreign girl sitting on one of the couches, now wearing a Kuoh Academy uniform.
"Hey, Red Dragon Emperor." Xenovia said casually.
"Why are you here?!" Issei exclaimed, pointing his finger at her.
Rias smiled from where she was sitting at her desk, "She is the newly made Knight of the House of Gremory. Welcome home, Xenovia."
"Now remember, Issei, it''s important that you get along with her." Akeno added, watching Issei and Asia''s expressions with amusement.
"Wait, she''s your new Knight? This has to be a joke!" Issei said in disbelief, still eyeing the girl with suspicion.
Xenovia then drew out her two black bat wings, causing Issei to cry out in shock.
"You''ve been transformed into a Devil?" Asia asked, shaking with fear.
"Well, that''s a rather unexpected development to say the least." Kiba said, taking a sip of tea.
"After I found out that God had died, I was desperate, so I begged her to take me in." Xenovia explained.
Issei looked between Xenovia and Rias in shock, "Wait, you begged for this? Seriously?"
In his mind it did not make sense that someone like Xenovia, who hated Devils with extreme prejudice, would suddenly turn around and beg to become one.
Rias chuckled, "It''ll be nice to have the Durandal user added to our ranks. With this, you and Kiba will be the swordfighters, covering our right and left flanks."
"So, you''re going to add someone who''s beliefs are so flippant to our Peerage just for some firepower, Buchou?" Everyone turned and saw Natsuki standing in the doorway of the club room, her eyes firmly on Xenovia.
"Natsuki, I take it you heard all of that?" Rias asked, looking her Pawn cautiously.
She knew of Natsuki''s dislike of Xenovia, which stemmed not only from Xenovia''s treatment of Asia, but also from her being a member of the Church and worried that the taller girl would act on these negative feelings.
"I did, and why should we trust her? She hated Devils before and now she suddenly wants to be one?" Natsuki asked, walking into the room, and standing less than a few centimeters away from Xenovia.
Xenovia met Natsuki''s glare head on, "The reason I didn''t return with Irina and why I became a Devil is because without God I have no meaning, there was nothing for me-"
Natsuki scoffed, smirking cruelly at Xenovia, "You have no meaning without God? You religious types always spout nonsense about your unshakable beliefs and now look at you; all afraid and nothing but a hypocrite. Kokabiel said that the Angels have been keeping Christianity together, so why not turn to them for salvation? Why not take your cowardice and your desire for meaning in your life to fucking Michael?"
Xenovia glared at Natsuki, insulted by her talking down to her and calling her a coward. "Was Asia not someone who was also faithful? You do not treat her-"
"Because Asia has shown how determined and strong she is! Even when you bastards threw her away like she was garbage, she stayed faithful, believing that God had a plan for her, that he was looking out for her. She didn''t run, looking for someone to absolve her, she didn''t turn her back on everything she knew even when she had every right to!" Natsuki yelled, her eyes glowing with a golden yellow hue.
How dare she compare herself to Asia?! Asia had no choice but to rely on the Fallen, and even when they were clearly using her, she didn''t beg for us to save her, she wanted us to be safe and not endanger ourselves for her sake. How dare this foolish girl even think that they are in the league, that their experiences are the same?! Natsuki thought angrily.
Rias stood up and she and Akeno moved away from her desk, preparing to stop Natsuki physically if she made a move towards their newest member. The rest of the Peerage were similarly tense as they had never seen Natsuki become this riled up and so quick towards anyone before.
But Xenovia stepped closer to Natsuki, not fearing the Dragon''s rage that she had brought to the surface, standing her ground. "You are right; it is foolish to try and compare myself to Asia. And I do not know if becoming my old enemy was a good thing, but the sister of the Maou treated me with nothing but kindness and compassion. So, I will do everything in my power to pay this back, even if it means giving my life to her."
While it may not have seemed significant to Natsuki, to Xenovia, Rias was her savior, pulling her out of the depths of despair when she had no one else. She could not talk to Irina about this, not wanting to cause her dear friend to also lose faith and become a hallow shell like she was, so Rias finding her after the battle with Kokabiel, was a blessing to her.
Natsuki continued to scowl at the other girl and when she was going to speak, she felt someone grab her hand, holding it within their own. When she looked down, Natsuki saw that Asia was holding her hand, looking up at her firmly, "Natsuki-san, it''s alright."
Natsuki felt her anger diminish, realizing how she had allowed her rage to get the better of her and made her look childish. She calmed down but was still staring at Xenovia menacingly.
Issei let out an awkward chuckle, looking between the three girls anxiously, "So you mentioned Irina before. What happened to her?"
Thankfully, Xenovia allowed the topic of the conversation to change, turning her head to stare out the window, watching the sun setting. "She returned to our headquarters in Vatican City along with Valper Galilei''s corpse, the four cores of the destroyed Excaliburs, and my former Excalibur, Excalibur Destruction."
"So, you didn''t tell her the truth?" Issei asked.
"Irina''s faith is deeper than mine, I didn''t tell her the truth because I don''t know if she could handle the truth. And unlike me she was lucky, she wasn''t at the battle because of her wounds, so she didn''t learn the truth about God like the rest of us."
"And you just gave them your Excalibur? And the Church just let you leave so easily as after betraying them?" Natsuki asked, narrowing her eyes at Xenovia.
Xenovia sighed, "I had to give them the Excalibur, while both of my swords are Church property, unlike Durandal, Excalibur Destruction could more easily get inexperienced users who could wield it. As for me, I''m now a dangerous person who found out the truth about something I shouldn''t have, so the Church has declared me a heretic."
Asia''s expression became solemn, "They kicked you out, that''s why you became a Devil."
"Yes, and Asia, I owe you an apology. If there is no God, then there is no hope of salvation or love, so I am deeply sorry." Xenovia then bowed her head to Asia, "The things I said to you were wrong and hurtful, you may hit me if will make you feel better."
Asia flinched, "Um, no-no thank you!"
"For a Holy Sword user who should be respected to be cast out for knowing the truth, it''s changed the way I look at everything. I can''t get the treatment of the higher ups out of my head; I must have made you feel the same way."
"Xenovia-san," Asia said, smiling softly, "Don''t feel bad, in case you couldn''t tell, I''m incredibly happy here. Even though I''m a Devil now, I''ve never felt more blessed. I''ve met so many people who mean so much to me, I''ve never been this happy before in my whole life."
Xenovia stared at the blonde shocked by her kindness before smiling back, "I see. Then may I ask if you could show me around school sometime? Now that I will be a student here."
"I''d loved to." Asia grinned.
Xenovia then looked forward, meeting Kiba''s eye, "Also, if it isn''t too big of deal, I think it would be fun to try out my Holy Sword Durandal against your Holy Demonic Sword."
"I was thinking the same thing." Kiba said, already thinking of a rematch between the two of them.
Asia tugged on Natsuki''s hand, drawing her attention back to her, "Is this enough for you to trust her, Natsuki-san?"
Natsuki looked down at Asia, feeling the weight of everyone''s eyes on her. Knowing that continuing to argue was pointless, Natsuki rolled her eyes with a sigh, "You people really need to be less trusting."
Rias moaned, staring at Natsuki in exasperation, "I think you''re just too paranoid and skeptical, Natsuki."
"Someone has to be." Natsuki said before looking at Xenovia sharply, "You''re a part of the Peerage now, that means you have everyone here relying on you, putting their faith in you, so don''t screw it up, otherwise I''ll make you regret it."
"I won''t. And I''ll work hard so that you can see me as a peer." Xenovia said, smiling tentatively.
Natsuki felt someone pressing their finger into her cheek, playfully twisting it against her flesh. Akeno then rested her head on Natsuki''s shoulder, "Aw, you''re like the Peerage''s very own guard dog, Natsuki-chan. Acting all tough and scary to protect us."
Natsuki looked forward with a blank and chill inducing expression, "I will rip your finger off and shove it down your throat."
"Is that a promise?" Akeno asked suggestively, rubbing her chin against the taller girl''s neck.
Issei looked at his friend jealously, "Damn it, Natsuki! It''s bad enough you''re holding Asia''s hand so perversely, but doing so while rubbing up on Akeno-senpai, is going too far!"
Natsuki turned to Issei, "You''re the last person who should be calling anything anyone does perverse, you dumbass! And I''m not even doing anything, your shitty pervert eyes are turning what is obviously normal into something dirty!"
"I would agree with you about Asia-senpai, but Akeno-senpai doesn''t have good intentions." Koneko spoke for the first time since Xenovia''s arrival.
"Aw, Koneko-chan, I''m being perfectly innocent." Akeno said, still rubbing her head against Natsuki''s neck, even going so far as to wrap her arms around Natsuki''s waist.
"Goddamn it, Akeno-senpai! Get off me!" Natsuki yelled, realizing that Koneko was right.
Rias smiled at the chaos but eventually cleared her throat, knowing that she had to explain the recent goings on to her servants. "The truth of this whole incident with the Excaliburs has been given both to the Angels and the Devils by the Governor General, Azazel. The theft of the Excaliburs was an action taken by Kokabiel and Kokabiel alone, the other leaders didn''t know about it. He planned to break the tension between the three sides, and because he tried to start another war, he was put in the Cocytus for eternity in a frozen state. And though it ended with the intervention of the Vanishing Dragon, they stopped the rampage done by one of them by sending someone from their organization."
So, the White Dragon Emperor is with the Fallen Angels. Only humans can get Sacred Gears, so are they just like Issei, Asia and I, some fool who was just unlucky enough to get killed and was revived, or are they like Xenovia, someone who chose to be reborn? Or have they not been even reborn at all and are still human but choose to align themselves with Fallen Angels? Natsuki thought.
Natsuki could not stop thinking about the White Dragon Emperor, thinking about just how strong they were, how far above thery were over she and Issei in terms of power. As she thought about the White Dragon''s perfect Balance Breaker, Natsuki could not help but feel inadequate, knowing that she was nowhere close to being able to do the same thing.
She had technically achieved her Balance Breaker, but it was only because Lux took over her body and forced the transformation, at the moment, Natsuki was not capable of doing so on her own.
"There will also be a meeting between the representatives of the Angels, Devils, and Azazel. Apparently, there is something Azazel wants to talk about, I heard that maybe Azazel would be apologizing about Kokabiel. Though it''s suspicious if Azazel would actually apologize." Rias said with disgust while shrugging her shoulders, thinking about what she knew of the Fallen Angel and his ego. "We have also been invited to the meeting; we have to make a report about the incident since we were involved."
"Are you serious?!" Issei asked out loud.
Everyone had shocked expressions on their faces, surprised that they would be in the same room as the most important people of the three factions.
As everyone thought about what could result from such a meeting, Issei asked Xenovia something that had been bothering him. "Xenovia, the White Dragon is a part of the Fallen Angels, right?"
Xenovia nodded, "That''s right, Azazel is gathering Sacred Gear possessors who have a Longinus, I don''t know what he is thinking, but it''s not good. The Vanishing Dragon is the top fighter among them, I heard that he is the fourth or fifth strongest out of strongest of the group, including the leaders of Grigori. At this point, he is far stronger than you, who is his rival."
"Fourth strongest?!" Issei shrieked, looking at Xenovia wide eyed.
That''s why they were able to defeat Kokabiel, who we couldn''t even stand up against. Issei thought, thinking about what would happen they would inevitably meet again.
Natsuki''s jaw clenched, resolving herself to get stronger by the time this meeting between the three factions took place. If The White Dragon Emperor was so strong then it would be a given that he would be there. She was not their eternal rival, Issei was, but if she wanted to be the strongest being around then Lux was right; beating the White Dragon Emperor was a necessary step she needed to take to reach that goal.
I know that I won''t have enough time to become stronger than him in such a small amount of time, but I want to be strong enough so that the White Dragon Emperor has to acknowledge me. I won''t let them get away with writing me off like last time.
Natsuki''s gaze drifted Issei, ignoring the speech about the Occult Research Club back in business now that the everything with the Holy Swords was done with.
I''m glad that Issei is getting stronger, I know that''s what he''s wanted since we became Devils, but I don''t want to be left behind either, he''s improving while I''m stagnating. There are going to be threats far stronger than Kokabiel, and maybe even the White Dragon too.
I have to get stronger, not just for myself, but for them... for my friends.
The Next Day
The Gremory Peerage sans Rias, Akeno, and Xenovia were sitting in a karaoke room after school along with Motohama, Matsuda, and Kiryuu.
Issei was on the stage singing the Dragon Ball theme song, while his performance was energetic, his singing was completely off key. Today was the club''s day off, so Issei decided to invite his club mates and friends bowling and karaoke.
Xenovia had declined, wanting to finish unpacking all her belongings and getting ready for her first day of school. Rias and Akeno had also declined as they wanted to spend the day shopping together.
When Issei had invited Saji, his fellow Pawn declined with tears in his eyes, telling Issei that Sona forbids him being so close to the opposite sex. Issei felt for Saji, knowing that Saji wanted to come, but was cursed by being the servant of such a strict master.
Asia was the only person enjoying Issei''s singing, her joy causing Motohama and Matsuda to boo Issei, calling him an idiot and mocking his singing. Koneko was not participating, eating a slice of pizza, Natsuki was covering her ears with her hands, staring at Issei annoyed and seemingly offended by Issei''s inability to carry a tune, and Kiryuu was flipping through the song book, still choosing which song she wanted to sing.
Once he was done, Issei gave the microphone in his hand to an impatient Matsuda, dropping down on the couch next to Asia with a breath.
As he took a sip of his juice, Issei heard his phone ringing and when he picked up his phone, he saw that he had gotten a message from Rias. It was a photo with the words ''Picking a swimsuit. I''ll choose one that I know you''ll like'' with a heart emoji. The photo was of Rias'' face, the girl standing in a changing room with a sultry smirk on her face. Getting this text along with the idea of Rias showing him her swimsuit, made blood burst out from Issei''s nose on the spot.
What Issei did not see while he was distracted was that Natsuki had gotten a similar text message from Akeno at the same time.
Akeno had sent a picture of the swimsuit she had chosen, still on the hanger as she smiled at the camera, the words, ''This is for you'' with a purple devil emoji at the end were sent along with it. Natsuki rolled her eyes, but a small smile appeared on her face as she put her phone down.
Koneko noticed Issei''s reaction, staring at him with a bored and knowing look, "Pull yourself together, Issei-senpai, your nose is bleeding. You were thinking of something lewd, weren''t you?"
Kiryuu laughed, reaching up and fixing her glasses, "Is there something abnormal going on between your legs?"
"Hey, my eyes are up here, you perv!" Issei yelled, placing his hands over his crotch so Kiryuu could not look at it with her secret ability.
Natsuki heard her phone ringing, and when she checked she saw that a familiar client was calling her. As Issei and Kiryuu were arguing, Natsuki took the opportunity to leave the room and answer the call.
Natsuki leaned against a wall as she spoke to the man on the other end. "Hello? Yeah, we can make it, Issei would be pissed if I decided to cancel for the both of us, we''ll leave now. No, it''s not a problem. See you soon."
Issei soon appeared, his phone in hand, "Did you get a text too?"
Natsuki shook her head, "Nah, he called me. I already told him that we''re going to head out now."
Kiba, who had been sitting in to hallway nursing his drink for the last few minutes, looked up at the pair, "Got a client?"
Issei sighed, walking towards the drink machine that was next to the Knight, refilling his glass. "Yeah, it''s that same old rich dude who always calls us."
"Calling on a day off too. That sucks." Kiba said.
"We could always decline and say we''re not available." Natsuki said, sitting down next to Kiba.
"No way!" Issei exclaimed, "Unlike you, he''s the only regular I have, and he won''t see me if you decide to bail!"
"I know, and I decide not to do so out of the goodness of my heart." Natsuki drawled.
"Goodness of my heart, my ass." Issei mumbled but knew that Natsuki did not fully trust the old man and was only continuing to keep him on as a client because Issei desperately needed the contract and the old man would only remain a client if both of them came. It also did not hurt that their client paid them exceedingly well, and Natsuki was not the type of person to turn down a large amount of money.
Kiba looked at the pair seriously, "Issei, Natsuki, I wanted to thank you both, but I haven''t gotten the chance to yet. So, thank you."
Issei took a sip of his drink before responding, "It''s no big deal. And don''t worry; all of us, including Rias, we''ve already forgiven you. Besides, you don''t need to thank us."
Natsuki bumped shoulders with Kiba, "We all understand why you did it, and moved on. Just make sure you learn from this and rely on us in the future, alright, Casanova?" Natsuki then stood, "Now come on. We got to sit through another one of Issei''s terrible sets before we leave."
"Eh?! Who''s set are you calling terrible? Last I checked, you haven''t even sung yet!" Issei yelled.
"Because I don''t want to embarrass you with my amazing voice. I''ve got to let you win at somethings otherwise you''ll become demoralized." Natsuki said, smirking as she walked back into the karaoke room.
"Oh, fuck you!" Issei screamed, quickly rushing after the girl.
Kiba shook his head, laughing mirthfully as he followed the other two Devils back into the room, happy to have friends like them.
A Few Hours Later
"Aw, man! I lost again!" Issei cried out, once again seeing his character bring killed by his client in the fighting game they were playing.
Once Natsuki and Issei had reached their client''s apartment, he quickly let them in, stating his desire to play his favorite video games against them. Natsuki was sitting on the couch behind them, slumped as she stared at the television screen with pout, she had decided to verse their client first but lost each time. Issei was not surprised that Natsuki refused to give up as despite her general ''I don''t care'' demeanor, Natsuki was a sore loser at heart.
After an hour, their client had to take the controller from Natsuki''s hands and give it to Issei so they could play, and the girl had been sulking ever since.
The older man chuckled, "I''ve had a lot of time in order to play against you guys. After all it has been a while since you''ve come by to visit."
Issei scratched his head and laughed awkwardly, "Sorry about that, we''ve been kind of busy lately." He then looked around the room, his eyes landing on all the new things there, "Meanwhile, you''ve been busy buying a ton of new stuff!"
"Yeah, I got kind of obsessed with games after you two took me to that arcade."
"Really? That''s awesome, but how many video game systems do you have? All of them?"
Their client smirked, his eyes gleaming, "What can I say? I can''t stop once I''ve started collecting something. I''ve often been told that I get completely immersed whenever I''m collecting."
"Collecting?" Natsuki asked aloud, trying to think of why that stuck out to her.
Their client turned his head and smirked at her, causing Natsuki''s to tense up and glare at him, but the man only grinned before turning around.
Issei was thinking the same, that he had heard something about someone who was obsessed with collecting things. His distraction caused Issei to not realize that the man had killed his character for over the dozenth time until it was too late.
With this the man stood up, stretching his arms. "Well, you want another match, Devil boy? Or should I say Red Dragon Emperor?"
Natsuki immediately jumped to her feet when she heard this, stepping between Issei and the man, standing defensively as she scowled at the man.
How did he know that?! He shouldn''t know that! Natsuki thought.
A pair of pitch-black raven wings sprouted from his back as she smiled at the pair of Devils. "I am Azazel, otherwise known as the head, the Governor Angel of the Fallen Angels."
"Azazel?!" Issei exclaimed, "But¡ why- why us?!"
Natsuki closed her eyes and groaned, not for the first time wishing that she never decided to try and save Issei''s life from Raynare, nostalgic for her previous, non-supernatural life.
The Start of Summer
Natsuki and Issei stared at the man in shock, surprised that their client was not only a Fallen Angel, but the race''s leader.
Natsuki pointed her finger at Azazel, "I knew it! I knew there was something off about you, with the weird vibes I was getting from you there''s no way you could''ve been human!"
Natsuki had felt a strange energy coming from the man since the day they made a contract with him, the feeling never going away each time they met. She had told Rias about it, but the redhead waved her concern off, stating that there were many average humans who had higher than normal amounts of magical energy and that was what she was noticing.
Natsuki''s anxiousness about the whole matter was only settled when she spoke to Lux, and the dragon told her that she sensed no ill will or malice from him towards Natsuki and Issei.
Azazel chuckled, "No, I''m not. I was almost afraid when we first met that you would have seen through the glamor spell, I used to disguise myself and figured out I was a Fallen Angel."
Issei spoke up, "A glamor spell? But you look exactly the same as before just with twelve wings popping out of your back."
"There are several types of glamor spells that exist; the one I used was made to hide my scent and power, but Natsuki was still able to pick it up, even just faintly. I heard about your ability to sense magic, but the rumors don''t do you any justice. Where did you get it from? Last I was aware, it was not an ability that belonged to the Evolving Dragon."
Natsuki ignored his question, openly scowling at the man, "Why are you here?" It''s not an ability from Lux?
"After what happened with Kokabiel, I thought I''d quickly visit. That and one other thing; I also happened to have a special interest in your [Boosted Gear] and [Ethereal Domination]. It also seems that Vali did some excellent work didn''t he?"
Oh, yeah. Xenovia told us that Azazel has been collecting Sacred Gear users for a while now. So, is he trying to recruit me and Natsuki? Issei thought.
"Vali?" Natsuki asked.
"It''s the name of the White Dragon Emperor." Azazel answered, a dangerous smirk appearing on his lips. "Unfortunately, I wasn''t able to be as present as I''d liked, so I had someone else take care of it in my stead. And I must say I was impressed with how well he followed directions this time."
Natsuki was about to ask what he meant by his last sentence, but Issei jumped forward, comic tears falling from his eyes as he glowered at the Fallen. "So, it your fault, you''re the reason I couldn''t suck on Rias'' boobs! You destroyed my dreams!"
Azazel began to laugh, not expecting such a response, "Did I really? I''m so sorry."
Natsuki slapped the back of Issei''s head, "Take this seriously, dummy!"
"Fuck off, Natsuki, this is more than important! This bastard deserves to have a house fall on him!" Issei roared, grabbing Natsuki by the collar of her shirt and shaking her.
"Okay, okay, I get it." Azazel said, stopping the two Devils from arguing any further, "You two will never be able to defeat someone like Kokabiel with the amount of power you have. It really doesn''t matter how hard you try."
Natsuki flinched, a low growl leaving his lips, her eyes flashing gold as scowled, a fire burning through her at the man''s words.
Azazel raised his hands up placatingly, still smiling lazily, "What I said wasn''t meant to be an insult, Golden Dragon, only the truth."
"Well, it won''t be true for much longer." Natsuki spat.
Oh, I know it won''t... Azazel thought, wanting the two teenagers before him to grow stronger. "But in all seriousness, I have something that I want to discuss with you two."
"First the Governor General of the Fallen Angels intrudes on my territory and interferes in my business, but now he''s trying to poach two of my prized and beloved servants?! It''s definitely because of your Scared Gears, how dare he try to lay his hands on you?! The price for this transgression must be answered with a thousand deaths!" Rias angrily spat, pacing in front of her desk.
The next day, Issei and Natsuki immediately told Rias about their encounter with Azazel, how he had been using magic to disguise and masquerading as their human client.
"I''m absolutely livid!" Rias said before walking to Natsuki and Issei and patting their heads softly. "Don''t worry, Ise, Natsuki, I protect you both from the evil Fallen Angel."
Issei smiled brightly, not bothering to hide the lovesick expression on his face, more than happy with how Rias was treating him. Natsuki did not know how to respond, she was aware of how deeply the redhead cared for her servants, but she never knew how to react whenever Rias showed how possessive she could be with them.
Kiba then came up to the trio, staring at Issei and Natsuki as if they were going to disappear. "I will protect you both."
"Thanks, Kiba." Natsuki said.
But Issei had an exaggerated look of disgust on his face, "No, um, I am happy but¡how should I put this¡ if I hear such things from a man with a straight face then I''ll be troubled on how to respond."
Kiba shook his head, "It''s obvious that I''ll say that with a straight face; you saved me, you''re my precious comrade. If I can''t save a comrade in crisis, then I can''t call myself a Knight of the Gremory household."
Issei shuddered in disgust; he could understand what Kiba was trying to say, but the tone that Kiba was using was not one used towards a comrade or a friend, but what a hero would say to their love interest.
Please, stop, Kiba. There are already rumors spreading around school that we have a BL romance; this will make it worse! Issei thought.
Without caring about that, Kiba continues, "There''s no problem. With my Sacred Gear that attained balance breaker, Ise-kun''s [Boosted Gear} and Natsuki-chan''s [Ethereal Domination], if we combine these three, then I feel we can surpass any danger that comes our way. Fufu, I wasn''t the type to say such things before. After hanging out with you, my readiness for comrades also changedl. But I don''t know why I don''t dislike that, it makes me feel hot around my chest region."
"¡D-Disgusting. You¡ Don''t come near me! Don''t touch me!"
Natsuki could not stop herself from laughing when Kiba tried to hug Issei, only for Issei to run to the other side of the room, hiding behind Asia.
Rias smiled too, but it soon fell as her thoughts were consumed once more with the Governor General. "Still, I can''t help but wonder how the Governor of the Fallen Angels could be moving around Kuoh unnoticed. And this is even more maddening because we don''t know what he is truly planning."
Natsuki felt a chill race down her spine and she quickly turned her head in the direction of the door, facing where she was now feeling two immense amounts of magical energy coming from. Her eyes grew larger when she saw the two people standing across from her, their eyes meeting her own.
Did they just get here? I didn''t see any teleportation circle, so how did they just appear like that? Natsuki thought, still staring at the pair dumbfounded.
Sirzechs'' smile grew as he stared Natsuki, not surprised that she was the only one out of the group to notice his and Grayfia''s arrival. "Azazel has always been like that, Rias-chan."
The rest of the Peerage heard a voice that belonged to nobody among them, turning to face the same direction Natsuki was and the direction the voice came from, seeing a familiar crimson haired male smiling pleasantly at them with his maid dressed wife and Queen by his side.
""O-O-O-Onii-sama!" Rias let out, surprised.
"Azazel won''t do anything like what Kokabiel did a few days ago, he may do a prank like last time, though. The Governor just came earlier than the planned date." Sirzechs said.
The rest of the Devils hurriedly kneeled before the Maou and Natsuki followed suit, realizing that she was being rude by just blatantly staring at the older and more powerful Devils.
Sirzechs chuckled, "Please relax, I came here for private business today, no need to be so formal."
Everyone obeyed the order and stood up.
"Onii-sama, w-why are you here?" Rias asked doubtfully, confused by her brother''s presence as he had not informed her that he was coming to the human world, along with the fact that he had never come directly to the school when doing so.
After she said that, Sirzechs pulled out a printed form from his pocket and handed it over to Rias. "What are you saying, your open house is coming soon, right? I wanted to see my little sister working hard in her studies from up close."
A look of disbelief and horror overtook Rias'' face as she looked at the form and then at her sister-in-law. "Grayfia Onee-sama, please tell me you weren''t the one who told him?"
"Yes, the reports from the school come to me as I am the one entrusted with the schedules of all members of the Gremory household. And of course, as Sirzechs-Sama''s Queen as well, I reported it to my master." Grayfia responded without hesitation.
"Father is also coming." Sirzechs added, his smile growing larger.
Rias took a step back, "But-but you can''t. Both you and father are busy, I mean you can''t just drop your responsibilities and-"
"And come see my baby sister in action? Of course I can!"
Rias could do nothing more than drop her head and sigh, seeing this as the losing battle that it was, nothing would deter her brother and father coming to the school''s open house and embarrassing her into an early grave.
Th open house was a yearly event that allowed parents and teachers to meet each other face-to-face, where parents are given the same schedule as their child, following them during the school day and were also given reports on their child''s progress. They will also be given tours of the school and different classrooms, clubs, and teams, showing off the school''s achievements and accolades.
Sirzechs'' smile became more of a smirk as he spoke, "And this will count as work, in a way. As you are aware; there will be a meeting between the representatives of the Angels, Devils, and Fallen Angels, but we have decided to hold this summit here at Kuoh Academy."
Rias'' eyes grew, "Here? Really? Are you serious?"
"Ah, this school somehow seems to have fate tied to it. My little sister, you, the legendary Sekiryuutei and Kogane Ry¨± K¨g¨, the Holy Devil Sword user, the Holy Sword Durandal''s wielder and Maou Serafall Leviathan''s little sister are attached to this place, and Kokabiel and Hakuryuukou have attacked this place. This is a phenomenon you can''t label as coincidence; strong powers keep mixing here, it''s like wave motion. I think the people accelerating this wave motion are Hyoudou Issei-kun and Sukehiro Natsuki-chan."
Sirzechs glanced at Natsuki and Issei, Natsuki pursed her lips while Issei stood straighter at the attention, feeling nervous at the way the Maou looked at him briefly.
Sirzechs then looked in Xenovia''s direction, "You must be Xenovia-chan."
"I am, it is nice to meet you, Mauo-sama." Xenovia responded, bowing her head to the devil King.
"I got the report from Rias; the Holy Sword wielder of Durandal got reincarnated as a Devil, and not to mention becoming my sister''s servant. Truth be told, I was doubting if my ears were working properly when I heard it the first time."
"I also didn''t think that I would become a Devil. To be reincarnated into the side that I hated so deeply, even if I say so myself, I sometimes regret it and that it was quite a bold move. Why did I become a Devil? Desperation? However, at that time, truthfully, everything was fine. But was it fine to be a Devil?" Xenovia declared, again unknowingly saying things that she did not mean to say aloud as she was thinking deeply.
This caused Sirzechs to laugh, "It''s great that my little sister''s Peerage has a lot of interesting people. Xenovia-chan, since you were just reincarnated you won''t understand right away, but I want you to support the Gremory household as one of Rias'' Knights. I''ll be counting on you."
"If I am asked by the Legendary Maou written in the Bible to do it, then I will have no choice but to do it. I don''t know how much I will be able to do, but allow me to do whatever I can in my capability."
After hearing Xenovia''s words, Sirzechs smiled, the same smile that Rias would always give her servants. "Thank you."
Hearing Sirzechs'' thanks and seeing him smile so brightly and earnestly, Xenovia cheeks became slightly red, and she broke eye contact with the Maou, looking towards the ground.
Natsuki clenched her fists as she stared at Sirzechs and Grayfia, once again getting that intense feeling that she knows the pair. It irritated her not knowing the truth that they were no doubt keeping from her, and how she could not explain having met them but having never seen their faces before becoming a Devil.
"Sirzechs-sama."
Sirzechs turned to look at the Pawn, "Yes, Natsuki-chan?"
He will not tell you the truth. Lux suddenly spoke to Natsuki in her mind, He may be smiling at you and treating you kindly, but I can feel his shiftiness around us.
You still haven''t told me how you can feel what other people feel and tell when they''re lying. Natsuki thought, amusedly.
"Natsuki-chan?" Sirzechs repeated as the girl was just staring at him, not saying anything.
Is she talking to the Golden Dragon? Sirzechs thought.
Natsuki blinked, clearing her throat when she noticed that everyone was looking at her questioningly. "I¡You said that Azazel was here for the leaders'' summit."
"I did."
"But Issei and I have been going to Azazel for job requests for a while now, so this summit would have had to be in the works way before everything with Kokabiel went down."
"She''s right." Rias said, turning towards her brother, "Onii-sama, how long have the leaders of the Three Factions been planning this summit for peace?"
Sirzechs gave his sister a closed eyed smile, "Since God and the four original Maous were killed and the war ended, of course."
"What?!"
Sirzechs laughed at the reactions of everyone, "Obviously, the hatred between our three races was and is still prominent. But even back then, there were those of us aware enough to realize that continuing to kill each other would only lead to the destruction of our races. And lately, more serious issues have become known, making a more permanent alliance between us all."
"What issues?" Natsuki asked.
Sirzechs waved her off, "That''s not important; work is being done to correct them. Right now, the only thing you all should be focusing on is putting your best foot forward and preparing for the summit."
Natsuki clenched her jaw, forcing herself to remain quiet and not ask the questions she truly desired to voice. She always hated being kept in the dark about things, of being lied to, but she had to accept that she was now a part of a larger world than the one she was once aware of.
There was a chain of command, a hierarchy, and despite being a servant of a High-Class Devil such as Rias, who was the heir to a Duchy and the sister of one of the leaders if the Devil race, and having one of the fourteen original Longinus as a Sacred Gear, Natsuki was still seen as very low on the totem pole as a reincarnated Devil who was still subservient to another.
Calm yourself, ?????? ??????. As I told you, we will not get much from this fake Lucifer, it is pointless to waste time and energy trying to do so. Lux said to her.
I know, but it''s so vexing to know that you''re being lied to. Why shouldn''t I be upset that they are clearly hiding something from me?
You have the right to be upset, but as I said it will not get you anywhere. They cannot keep whatever they are hiding secret for long, and in the meantime, I will help you discover the truth. Discreetly.
We don''t even know where to start.
You are a Devil, my dear. We have all the time in the world, just have patience.
Sirzechs clapped his hands together, ending the internal conversation between dragon and host. "Now that the difficult conversation has been had, let us move on to more important matters. Even though I came to the human world, it''s nighttime. Would it be fair to ask for a place to stay for the night?"
Everyone looked at each other, all of them, apart from Issei, Rias, and Asia who lived in the Hyoudou household, and Akeno who lived in a converted shrine at the edge of town, lived in apartments, none of which would be big enough to house Sirzechs and Grayfia.
After a few seconds, Issei hesitantly and slowly raised his hand, drawing everyone''s attention to him. "You can stay at my house for the night."
"I am glad to hear that my little sister has not inconvenience you." Sirzechs said, smiling at Miki.
"Oh, no. Rias-san is a such a lovely girl." Miki said as she walked back into the living room. "Clean, eats her vegetables, she hasn''t been a bother."
Why am I here? Natsuki thought to herself as she sat next to Sirzechs Lucifer on a couch along with Hyoudou Gorou.
Natsuki knew why she was in the Hyoudou residence; Sirzechs had asked her to come with them and who was she to say no to an all-power Devil who could kill her without even lifting a finger.
It is strange how he has invited us to a home that is not even his. Lux asserted, causing Natsuki to snort. Rias looked at her questioningly for a few seconds before turning away.
Rias had tried to refuse when Issei offered up his house for her brother and sister-in-law to stay in, but there was no way of stopping them once the words left Issei''s mouth. And she could do nothing when Sirzechs all but dragged Natsuki to the Hyoudou house, not taking any refusal that Natsuki tried to give.
So, Rias had been red faced since the group arrived in the house, embarrassed and afraid of what Sirzechs and Grayfia might say in the presence of Issei''s parents.
Neither Gorou nor Miki was bothered by Natsuki, Sirzechs, and Grayfia spending the night. If anything, they were ecstatic to meet some of Rias'' family and getting to better know the friend their son was constantly talking about.
"Oh, she''s a wonderful young lady, but I have no idea what she''s doing with Issei." Gorou said with a laugh, pouring Sirzechs another drink.
"If you insist." Sirzechs said as he lifted his glass.
Issei could do nothing but sigh and drop his shoulders at the scene, muttering to himself. "Sure, Otou-san, hang out with the Devil King like you two are old friends."
Asia looked at Issei sympathetically as she whispered to him, "It''s okay, he doesn''t know he''s talking to a Maou."
Rias crossed her arms as she started pointedly at Issei, her cheeks still slightly red, "Why did you say he could stay at your house?"
"I was being polite." Issei argued, "And he said he would find a hotel tomorrow."
"Ugh, this is so humiliating," Rias groaned, leaning further back into the chair she was sitting in.
Rias gets humiliated? Issei thought, shocked by the revelation while also thinking of how cute Rias'' uncomfortable and shy expression was.
Gorou looked at the other side of the couch to the space directly behind Sirzechs, loudly whispering to the man, "The maid-san over there is¡"
"Her name Grayfia. She''s actually my wife." Sirzechs answered.
"Eeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeh?" The Hyoudou''s exclaimed and no one could blame them for how Sirzechs and Grayfia acted.
Grayfia was expressionless as she reached over and pinched her husband''s. "I am the maid, Grayfia. I apologize for my master speaking such boring jokes."
"It huwts, It huwts, Grayfia." Sirzechs exclaimed, smiling teary eyed while the angry and quiet Grayfia continued to pinch his cheeks.
Rias covered her face with her hands, trying to hide from the embarrassment she was feeling.
Natsuki took a sip of the juice Miki had given her, "I guess this happens a lot?"
Rias moved her hands low enough to glare at her second Pawn, "This is not funny, Natsuki."
"I didn''t say it was." Natsuki replied, but Rias did not believe the girl as she was actively hiding a smirk behind her glass.
Miki cleared her throat, causing Grayfia to reluctantly release her hold on her husband''s face, "Well then, Gremory-san, will you be attending the open house as well?"
Sirzechs rubbed his cheeks, "Yes, I have taken a break from work, so I thought I could use this chance to see my little sister''s school and how she looks in class. My father will be coming as well."
"Ah, Rias-san''s Otou-san as well."
"Father helped in the establishment of Kuoh Academy, so we viewed this as a good chance visit as well. Although, frankly, he just wanted to see Rias''s face."
Once again, Rias sighed, her face becoming as red as her hair as the adults in the room laughed.
I am in hell¡ Rias thought.
"What? You cannot be serious! Are you trying to tell me I can''t sleep with Ise?" Rias exclaimed, standing in the doorway of Issei''s bedroom in a form fitting nightgown.
"Sorry, but I want to talk to him as we go to bed. Natsuki too, its why I asked her to come. Surely, I can borrow him for just an evening?" Sirzechs said as he and Natsuki set up the futons Miki had given them.
Whatever he has to say has to be important if he wants to talk to me and Issei alone. But since Issei is here, it''s not going to be about Sirzechs'' lying. Natsuki thought.
Issei looked at the two surprised. He doesn''t care that we sleep together?
Rias then ran into the room and hugged Issei, "Can you sleep alone? Are you all right with me not being beside you? I am not all right though. Just by you not being beside me..."
While he was very happy by the action and the words, this made issei think about something Akeno had told him, wondering if she was right about Rias'' degree of dependence towards him was increasing and if it was obvious to everyone if Sirzechs did not care that he was sharing a bed with his younger sister.
Before Issei could respond, Grayfia entered the room with Asia, "Ojou-sama, now let''s return to our room."
"I''m coming." Rias sighed.
"Rest well." Grayfia told the other as she curtseyed to them, Grayfia then took Rias by the hand and led her out of the room, saying something quietly to her.
"I know, Grayfia¡" Rias replied, looking back at Issei.
"Uh, sweet dreams, Buchou." Issei said as the two left, "She''s acting like we''re a parent and child being separated."This tale has been unlawfully obtained from Royal Road. If you discover it on Amazon, kindly report it.
Natsuki turned to Issei in disbelief, "You can''t be serious? Do you actually think she sees you as her kid?"
"Yeah. I mean, I''m one of her cute servants. She sleeps in my bed because I''m like her body pillow that she uses to have a good night''s rest. Everything between us, it''s familial." Issei answered, ignoring Natsuki looking at him like he was an idiot.
To him, there was no way that Rias Gremory would ever be interested in someone like him. And he has been painfully taught why a lame pervert like himself would never get a beautiful girl to return his feelings.
No doubt the boys from my class think I''ve lost my virginity, and I''m definitely not going to correct them! But if it were Kiba or some other guys, would they have already slept with Buchou? No, no, that''s not true! Even though I sleep with two hot girls every night, there is a proper order for things. For me to skip the order and attack Buchou is¡
With how cowardly you''re being about the whole thing, you''re not the Red Dragon Emperor but the Red Virgin Emperor, Partner. Ddraig voiced within Issei''s mind.
Shut up! Leave me alone! In the meantime, I will do ecchi things with Buchou and you can just keep on looking from there!
Issei shook his head, pulled out of his conversation with Ddraig when Asia hugged him, "Ise¡ Um, Ise-san, good night. I also think it''s unfortunate but tonight I''ll sleep in my room."
Slightly bowing her head, Asia headed off towards her room smiling to herself, leaving Issei and Natsuki alone with the Maou.
Man, why did that make me feel guilty? Issei thought as he and the others finished getting ready for bed.
When Issei turned off the lights, Natsuki could not deny the awkwardness she felt laying on a futon right next to a Maou, feeling like this could have been the set up to a really bad and raunchy joke.
"I heard you two met Azazel." Sirzechs finally said, breaking the silence.
"We did." Issei said obediently.
"I hear he did nothing to you, but did he say something to you?"
Natsuki answered this time, "''I''ll meet you again next time,'' is what he said."
"I see, Azazel has always had a strong interest in the Sacred Gears, your [Boosted Gear] and [Ethereal Domination] are no exception. Actually, same as the two of you, a person possessing the Longinus has gathered alongside him."
"We know, Maou-sama; Rias told us, and it was obvious who Vali was when he showed up and beat Kokabiel. But what purpose does Azazel have for any of this?" Natsuki asked.
Sirzechs turned to face the ceiling, "I don''t know, Azazel is the Governor of an organization with the power to affect Heaven, the Underworld, and the human world. However, he doesn''t like war like Kokabiel does. And it''s because of that hate for war, that the Fallen Angels were the first to withdraw from the Great War. And I know that Azazel has punished Kokabiel by freezing him solid in Cocytus."
I don''t want to have another owner other than Buchou. Would Azazel want Natsuki and I as his servants? Is that why he''s so interested in us? What if he brainwashes us? Issei thought, a shiver racing down his spine.
As if realizing Issei''s concern, Sirzechs spoke in an amused tone. "Don''t worry, I can guarantee your safety, you have nothing to worry about. It doesn''t happen often that one, let alone two, legendary dragons join the side of Devils. And my little sister treats you both dearly, I''ve never seen Rias have so much fun, even in the underworld. I am sure she must be having fun every day, so I have to thank you."
The two Pawns could hear the deep affection Sirzechs had for Rias in his voice, see the way his expression brightened as he spoke about her.
Sirzechs looked at the pair warmly, "Hyoudou Issei-kun, Sukehiro Natsuki-chan. Take care of my sister Rias, from now on too."
"Of course! I''m Rias Gremory''s Pawn, I will protect her with my life!" Issei boasted.
Natsuki nodded her head, "Rias is our friend and King; she has me in her corner as long as she needs me."
"Thank you very much, I appreciate it." Sirzechs said before sitting up in his futon and looking at Issei directly, "Also, I never asked, is it if I call you Ise-kun like my little sister does?"
Issei sat up in his own bed, "O-Of course! It''s an honor!"
Sirzechs then looked at Natsuki, placing and hand under his chin as if he was deep thought. "You don''t have a nickname, Natsuki-chan."
"And I don''t need one, Maou-sama." Natsuki quickly vocalized, trying to be as respectful as possible.
The only person who referred to her by a nickname was Kushina, who would often call her Natsu, Natsu-chan, or her summer princess, all of which made her feel a warmth in her chest and embarrassment if Kushina did so in public.
So, the thought of a Maou, and undoubtedly others doing the same felt wrong in a way that she could not properly put into words.
"Oh, I''ll think of one later. It will come to me eventually." Sirzechs laughed, ignoring what the younger girl next to him said and the sigh that went with it. "Regardless, it''s only fair that I ask you both to call me by name. Onii-san is also fine."
Natsuki and Issei looked at each other, both shocked before Issei answered the older Devil. "I feel like that would rude given everything. Would calling you Sirzechs-sama be all right?"
Sirzechs sighed, a pout appearing on his lips that made him look even more like his sister. "That''s fine, but it''s a pity, I wanted to be called Onii-san by two legendary dragons. Meh, it will happen eventually with one of you, so this can do for now."
"Huh?" Issei breathed out, not understanding what Sirzechs was implying.
Natsuki did understand and chuckle to herself, accidentally meeting Sirzechs'' eye, the man giving her a playful wink that made her laugh harder, much to Issei''s confusion.
Sirzechs then looked at Issei, "Hey Ise-kun, I wanted to ask you something. You have an appreciation for women with large breasts, yes?"
Natsuki''s eyes grew larger, not expecting the Maou to ask such a question.
Issei''s hearing the question, jumped out of his bed passionately. "Yes, sir! I love them more than air!" But the Pawn immediately froze, realizing that he just voiced his lustful desires to Maou, becoming embarrassed by his own behavior.
Sirzechs continued, unbothered by the outburst, "Even as her brother, I can acknowledge that Rias has a very attractive set."
Issei stood straighter, "Agreed. Rias-Buchou-my master''s boobs are the best there is. Nothing else can compare."
"What the fuck kind of conversation is this?" Natsuki asked aloud, looking at the other two Devils annoyed and weirded out, but was ignored by them both.
"Might I speak hypothetically for a moment?" Sirzechs asked.
"Uh, yes?" Issei replied.
Sirzechs began to smirk, "Have you ever wondered what would happen if you transferred your power from your [Boosted Gear] to Rias'' breasts?"
A shock like he had never felt before, washed over Issei as he began to think about Sirzechs'' idea.
Use [Boosted Gear] on Bu-Buchou''s boobs? No way, such a thing even possible? No, but! That concept wasn''t present! Gift to boobs! To transfer the power of Sekiryuutei on boobs! Th-That is, what exactly would happen if that occurred? I can''t imagine it! I can''t predict it! Dammit! Sirzechs-sama''s glorious brain is far above mine! Would the size increase? No, no, would they shine while stretched? Uhhhhh! I don''t know!
"Just something to think about." Sirzechs said, watching as Issei weakly climbed back into bed, staring at the ceiling as his brain was overwhelmed by the thought of what he could do with his newly given knowledge.
Natsuki looked at the Maou deadpanned, "Did you really come all the way to this house, made me sleep over here too, just to tell Issei to sexually harass your sister?"
I cannot believe that this fool was the man capable of besting so many of my pervious hosts. It makes me feel pathetic. Lux said, the disgust in her tone evident, and Natsuki could not help but agree somewhat.
Sirzechs grinned, "From what I witnessed in the Rating Game against Riser and in the reports I received after your battle against Kokabiel, Issei seems to respond greatly to women''s bodies. I am only ensuring that he continues growing as much as he has been."
Natsuki could not deny that Sirzechs was right in a sense; Issei''s dream of becoming a Harem King and his lust have driven him to become stronger. But Natsuki knew that this dream had been secondary in the battles they had fought.
Raynare and her group of Fallen, Riser and his Peerage, Kokabiel, Valper, and Freed. They were all people Issei fought in the defense others, to protect and keep their friends safe.
Issei was weaker than me, a lot weaker, but now I can feel him closing the gap. I have been fighting just like him to protect the Peerage, so why do I feel like I''m stagnating? I want to be the strongest, isn''t that a better goal to have than sleeping with a bunch of girls? Natsuki knew that it was wrong to think the way she was, that she should be happy for Issei''s growth, but she could not help it, this newfound jealousy and insecurity was gripping her tightly.
"You shouldn''t be upset about your own progress. You''re getting stronger every day, even if it doesn''t feel like it." Sirzechs said knowingly, causing the girl''s head to snap towards him.
Natsuki''s jaw clenched, "I''m not-"
"You are. You''re jealous of Issei, afraid that he is going to overtake you soon."
Natsuki quickly turned her head the other way, looking at Issei and feeling relieved when she saw that the boy had fallen asleep.
"It is a common emotion to feel, it does not make you lesser. It''s what you do and how you act with that emotion that matters." Sirzechs continued.
Natsuki looked down at her hands, "And you can relate to what I''m feeling?"
"I wasn''t always Sirzechs Lucifer, the Crimson Satan, Ace of the Anti-Satan Faction."
Natsuki scoffed, "Excuse me if I find it hard to believe that the Embodiment of Destruction was ever a normal man."
"My sister tell you about that nickname?" Sirzechs asked with a laugh, "Still, I was not as strong nor confident in my abilities as I am now. You are much the same, you just need to reach that¡ enlightened moment in your path to greatness."
"Enlightened?"
"Yes, enlightened." Sirzechs repeated, "You have to find clarity and understanding within yourself, your reason for being."
"And Issei''s obsession with breasts is enlightenment?" Natsuki asked sarcastically.
"To Issei it is." Sirzechs grinned, "It''s different for everyone, Issei just happens to be guided more by the tenant of lust than other Devils."
"So, the Seven Deadly Sins are real?" Natsuki asked, temporarily distracted.
"Not in the physical or magical sense. Devils are known for being creatures of selfishness and desire, so its easiness to chalk up the commonness of these traits into seven tenants to which one must aspire."
Natsuki remained quiet for a few moments before whispering, "How do I reach this enlightenment I need to get stronger?"
Sirzechs shrugged playfully, "I can''t tell you that, Natsuki-chan. It''s something one must figure out for themselves."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "Will you at least tell me how we know each other?"
"Natsuki-chan, you are my sister''s Pawn, how else-"
"I know you are lying to me." Natsuki snapped, "I can feel it, so how do I know you and your wife?"
Sirzechs stared at Natsuki, the smile on his face irritating the girl. "It''s not important for you to know at the moment; you''ll learn the truth soon enough, especially with the surprise coming in a few days."
Natsuki looked at the other Devil confused, "A surprise? Not important? What does that even mean?"
Sirzechs once again shrugged, "Who knows."
Natsuki narrowed her eyes, "And you won''t tell me, Sirzechs-sama?"
"I won''t." Sirzechs replied with an easy-going tone, "You could always try to beat the answers out of me if you desire to know so badly."
"I don''t have a death wish." Natsuki said sardonically.
Sirzechs laughed, "Oh, I wouldn''t harm one of Rias'' precious servants."
"But-"
"Natsuki," The girl could not stop herself from flinching with the now serious and cold way that Sirzechs said her name and with no honorific and the end. His eyes her glowing a slight reddish black color, and his body language had lost its playful demeanor; this was no longer Rias'' goofy, friendly, siscon older brother, this was a Maou, one of the strongest beings alive, and it terrified her.
Natsuki¡ Lux said, her voice taking on a tense and nervous edge.
"I know you have questions, but I will not answer them for you. Trust me when I say you are better off not knowing, there is nothing you need to concern yourself with."
Better off not knowing? Not knowing what? I just wanted to know why you know me, what does this have to do with, why is this so serious? "I just-"
"Am I understood, Natsuki?" Sirzechs asked, his voice becoming deeper, shaking Natsuki to her bones.
"I-I¡ Understood, S-Sirzechs-sama." Natsuki stuttered.
In an instant, the glow of his eyes was gone, his body relaxed, and his smile returned. "Good."
What the fuck was that?! Natsuki thought, staring at the Maou wide eyed.
Sirzechs then yawned loudly, "Well, that was a good talk. Good night, Natsuki-chan."
Natsuki watched as Sirzechs laid down on his futon, pulling his blanket over his chest and closing his eyes, falling asleep quickly.
"What the fuck¡" Natsuki said aloud, still shocked from what just happened.
We need to leave. Lux said to Natsuki, her voice slightly frantic.
"I don''t think we can." Natsuki said, still staring at Sirzechs sleeping face, "Wouldn''t he notice us leave?"
He would. Lux sighed; This Devil is more dangerous than I remember him being, and he has certainly gotten stronger. And it only makes me more curious about what he knows.
Natsuki laid down on her futon, staring at the ceiling conflicted, "I need to know."
Natsuki could not see Lux''s face, but she could practically feel the expression on her face. Even after he just threatened you?
"I''m stubborn, you know this, Lux."
Lux laughed slightly. Yes, I am more than aware of that fact.
Natsuki continued to stare at the ceiling, Lux quieted down but remained awake with her, as a form of silent protection and support.
As hard as she tried, Natsuki was not able to sleep peacefully that night, her body and mid still wired with questions that refused to leave her and a fear that remained with her due to the man sleeping calmly beside her.
Two Days Later
The next day after spending the night at Issei''s house, the younger Devils took Sirzechs and Grayfia out and showed them around the area before they had to leave.
They went to a few arcades, something Sirzechs mentioned he wanted to bring to the Underworld, and Issei found himself shocked when he kept getting beaten by the centuries old Devil. At the ice cream shop, they tested out all the flavors, much to the annoyance of the people working there. And finally, they went to the Shinto shrine, where the Maou''s absolute Demonic power drove away the shrine''s Holy power just by stepping one foot inside the building, allowing the other Devils to enter the holy building unscathed.
Now the Occult Research Club was cleaning the school''s pool as a favor to the Student Council and as thanks for helping them maintain the barrier when Kokabiel tried to reignite the Great War. Rias agreed to cleaning the pool on the condition that she and her Peerage were the first ones to use it and as often as they liked.
"Natsuki, why do you look so bored? Don''t you understand the greatness that has befallen us on this day?!" Issei exclaimed, staring at the pool with tears of joy.
He, Natsuki, and Kiba were standing before the pool waiting for the rest of the girls to finish changing into their bathing suits now that they had finished cleaning.
Issei was wearing moss green swimming trunks with a gold rope, Kiba was wearing a blue swimming cap over his head and dark blue speedos, and Natsuki was wearing a black bikini top and yellow swimming trunks with a black vertical stripe going down both sides.
Issei could not help the slight jealous he felt seeing his friends more muscular builds, both Kiba and Natsuki having lean muscles and abs.
"Issei, it''s a pool, and all we''re doing in it is swimming." Natsuki replied.
In all honesty, Natsuki did not find much enjoyment in swimming, all of which stemmed from her childhood and how she only learned to do so because the other kids in the orphanage like to throw her off an old bridge that was near their home during the winter.
They found humor in watching the cold and soaked girl nearly drowning trying to escape the river and reach the shore. But this behavior stopped once Natsuki had to all but force herself to learn how to swim and thus no longer being able to watch her flail around helplessly.
It also did not help that swimming at a pool required a person to change in and out of a swimsuit, but Natsuki circumvented this today by wearing her swimsuit underneath her clothes and was planning to wait for the other girls to finished changing before doing so herself once they were done for the day.
Issei shook his head back and forth, "It''s not about the pool! It''s about what the pool provides; beautiful girls in skimpy, barely able to hold on, bathing suits!"
Kiba chuckled, "I feel like you two will never be able to agree on this topic."
Issei then turned to the other boy, "C''mon, Kiba, you have to agree with me here!"
Kiba shrugged, "Sorry, Ise, but I mainly want to use the pool because it''s a good sense of exercise. I''ll be able to improve my endurance with a couple dozen laps for sure."
Issei dropped his head, "I''m surrounded by ungrateful fools."
The trio were not kept waiting much longer as Rias, Akeno, Koneko, and Asia walked out of the girls'' changing room.
"Sorry to keep you three waiting." Rias said while Akeno used her magic to fill the newly cleaned pool with water.
The redhead was wearing a pure white swimsuit that fit firmly on her body, with her bottoms being held up by three interconnecting golden rings on each side of her hips. The whole look extenuated the girl''s long shapely legs and backside.
Noticing Issei''s hard staring, Rias grinned, "Hey, Ise. How does my swimsuit look?"
"Puh! It''s the greatest swimsuit I''ve ever seen!" Issei yelled, feeling blood beginning to drip from his nose.
"Ara, ara. It''s amusing how badly you wish to impress Ise-kun with your bikini, Buchou." Akeno said as she walked over.
Akeno was wearing a purple and pink bandeau with matching bottoms, and the shoulder straps were moved to hang around her neck. The cloth was small and stretched out, as if it would snap and break if Akeno did anything too strenuous.
Aah, if the two Great Onee-samas wore clothes like this every day, then a lot of young boys will have to start slouching! Issei thought feverishly.
"As if you aren''t trying to do the same." Rias said to the other girl quietly, pointedly looking in Natsuki''s direction.
Akeno giggled, but did not deny the claim that Rias threw at her; she bought this outfit with the singular purpose of drawing some reaction out of the Pawn and was not shy to say it. But she also found herself burning up as she looked at Natsuki''s attire, licking her lips as she watched Natsuki''s muscles tense with each movement she took.
"Ise-san. I-I came after changing as well." Issei turned around and saw Asia fidgeting behind him. Asia was wearing the traditional school swimsuit, with the name ''Asia'' written across her chest.
Issei grinned, giving the girl a thumbs up, "Asia, you''re looking cute! Your onii-san is deeply moved! It suits you well!" Yeah, if a blonde haired bishoujo wears a Japanese swimsuit then you will feel an incredible power!
Asia smiled, "Ehehe. I am happy that Ise-san said that. Koneko-chan is wearing a school swimsuit too."
Koneko was indeed wearing the same school swimsuit, the only difference being that Koneko had a white swim cap on her head and the name written across her chest was her own.
"Wow, Koneko-chan, you''re looking more like a school mascot than ever. I''ve got to say, it works for you!"
Koneko looked away from Issei, a small blush appearing on her cheeks, "I honestly have no response for that. I guess it''s better to have the pervert''s opinion than anyone else."
Natsuki reached over and poked one of the red cheeks with her finger, "Koneko, don''t tell me you''re falling for Issei''s charm, I thought he was a useless pervert?"
Koneko''s face twitched and in response to Natsuki''s teasing, grabbed the finger she was still poking her cheek with, squeezing it hard.
"OW! It was a joke, Koneko, it was a joke!" Natsuki screamed, trying but failing to pull her finger out of the younger girl''s grip.
The others laughed at the sight, especially when Koneko refused to show mercy and squeezed even harder, causing Natsuki to drop to her knees.
Rias had come to Natsuki''s rescue, clapping her hands to gain everyone''s attention, "Alright guys, let''s get to swimming, we don''t have all day to waste."
"Yes, Buchou!" Everyone except Natsuki who was still cradling her finger exclaimed.
Rias then put her hands on Koneko''s shoulders, "Ise, I hate to ask, but could you help Koneko and Asia by being their partner? Neither of them knows how to swim by themselves."
"Oh, yeah, totally." Issei said before looking at Koneko, "Let''s get in the water, Koneko-chan."
Koneko nodded her head and walked to the edge of the pool, holding Issei''s hand as he slowly helped her into the water. Asia stood on the side watching the pair and beginning to cheer on the younger girl."
Kiba jumped into the water, swimming to the other side and beginning his laps, swimming as fast as he could back and forth inside the lane he had entered.
Natsuki walked over to the nearby chairs, sitting down on the one directly under an umbrella as she closed her eyes and relaxed.
Akeno pouted as she watched Natsuki sit down instead of swimming and was about to go and try and convince her otherwise but was distracted when Rias issued a challenge to race in the water.
Why can''t I relax? Natsuki thought to herself, reluctantly opening her eyes as her thoughts kept racing, still thinking about two nights ago in Issei''s bedroom.
You could try swimming to burn off your restless energy. Lux spoke softly in Natsuki''s head.
I could. Natsuki said plainly, staring at the pool with distaste.
Lux, being intwined with Natsuki''s soul, could look into Natsuki''s mind and see her memories, so she knew why Natsuki did not want to swim, and did not begrudge her for it, nor was she going to mention it. You are going to drive yourself mad by refusing to move on from your encounter with Sirzechs.
Natsuki sighed. I know, I''m trying, it''s just so¡ I don''t know what to do, Lux.
Neither do I, to be honest. This whole situation has left me troubled, but I suppose it makes sense why Sirzechs would be hiding something in relation to you.
Natsuki sat up, staring at Issei as he helped Asia with feet pedaling. What do you mean? Do you know something, Lux?
Lux sighed, she had not been planning to tell Natsuki this, but she figured this was as good a time as any. You and I share a body, Natsuki. That night, when you first unlocked your Sacred Gear, I awoke from my slumber, and¡ and I could feel that something was different about you.
What? What was different about me?
Your body, your soul, they were not like any human host I had ever had before, but I realized that it held similarities to some hybrid hosts I have had in the past. Like your friend, Akeno, I do not believe that you were entirely human when you died.
Natsuki froze, shocked by what she just heard. I''m, I''m not human?
I cannot tell you what your other side might be, but I do know that I have not had a host with the same lineage. And I can tell you that it does not belong to the pantheon that you are currently apart of; you are not of Devil, Fallen, or Angel origin.
Pantheon?
Gods, mythical creatures, and monsters from other religions and cultures; pantheons, exist. Lux explained. Greek, Roman, Norse, they are all real.
Natsuki took a moment to adjust. And you don''t know which one I could belong to?
No, I do not. Many of the pantheons have crossed with each other over the eons, and many share histories and commonalties with each other. There are so many beings with similar energies that it is hard to tell, especially with how many I have come across in my lifetime.
Natsuki did not know how to process the knowledge that she was a hybrid; a reincarnated Devil and something else that she did not know.
It is one of the reasons I believe that your magic is so strange and has manifested the way it has. Why you are so attuned with the magical energies around you, able to sense it better than almost all partners I have had in the past, why you can create black masses of magic.
Natsuki''s eyes widened. That ability didn''t come from you?
It did not, it is all you, Natsuki.
It''s all me...
Natsuki did not know how much time had passed as she became lost in thought, only snapping back when she felt a pair of arms wrap around her neck from behind, the person pressing their chest firmly against her back, and resting their chin on her left shoulder.
Akeno''s lips skirted against the edge of Natsuki''s ear, allowing Natsuki to feel Akeno''s warm breath as she spoke. "You know, it really hurts my feelings when you sit here with your head in the clouds, especially when I picked this bathing suit just for you, Natsuki-chan. It breaks my heart; you should take responsibility for that."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "I didn''t ask you to buy anything for me. And even if I did, I doubt I would like any form of payment I would have to give you for it."
"Maow, you''re no fun." Akeno joked, taking a strand of Natsuki''s hair, and twirling it around her finger. "Why aren''t you swimming with the rest of us?"
"I didn''t feel like it." Natsuki said.
"Why?" Akeno asked.
"Where''s Xenovia? It shouldn''t take that long to put on a swimsuit, one of us should go check on her or something." Natsuki tried to stand up, but Akeno tightened her hold, refusing to let the other girl leave so easily.
"Natsuki-chan, it''s rude to change the subject like that and to make up fake excuses."
Natsuki sighed, "I don''t like swimming, okay. It just brings up bad memories for me."
Akeno became solemn, "You could have told us, we would all understand if you didn''t want to stay after the pool was clean."
"I wanted to stay, Akeno-senpai." Natsuki argued, "And besides, it''s not like I have some debilitating aversion to swimming, I just don''t care for it the same way you guys do."
"Well, let''s make some new memories to get rid of those pesky ones from when you were a kid." Akeno said, nodded her head towards the pool.
"You''re not going to take no for an answer, are you?"
Akeno grinned, leaning even closer to Natsuki, "I would honestly love it if you said no; it would make things all the sweeter for me." She then licked the inside of Natsuki''s ear before biting her earlobe, pulling the skin with her teeth.
Natsuki jumped at the sudden action and the pain it caused, but she also shivered, a warm feeling spreading in her stomach and across her face.
Akeno''s eyes brightened in delightful surprise, "Did you enjoy that, Natsuki-chan? Do you like it when I hurt you? I''m sure you''d like me to be in control of your pleasure, to-"
"Akeno..." Natsuki turned her head, looking at the older girl coldly.
"Yes?" Akeno asked playfully, slowly releasing her hold on Natsuki, and standing.
"I''m going to kill you." Natsuki spat, embarrassed that Akeno had managed to draw out such a strange sensation in her body.
Akeno giggled, quickly sprinting away, Natsuki right on her heels determined to catch her. Akeno ran to one of the pool''s diving boards, balancing on the edge as she watched Natsuki run at her full speed.
Natsuki, not paying attention to where Akeno was standing, only that she had stopped running, kept charging towards her and tackling her, causing them both to fall into the pool.
When they resurfaced, Natsuki was still holding Akeno, her arms wrapped around the older girl''s waist. Akeno laughed, "That wasn''t so hard now, was it?"
"You''re annoying, senpai." Natsuki growled.
Akeno laughed in response, and when she stopped, she rested her hands on Natsuki''s shoulders as the younger girl continued to hold her.
Her eyes, they''re brighter when she''s relaxed, the burgundy color becomes more prominent. Akeno thought, seeing that Natsuki''s eyes were no longer hooded like they were when she was sitting by herself.
Natsuki cleared her throat and tried to let go of Akeno when she realized the position they were in, but once again, Akeno refused to let her.
"Ara, I''m not letting you go, Natsuki-chan, you might try to leave."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "I won''t, if I do, I''d have to deal with you annoying me again."
"I would call it being kind instead of annoying." Akeno smirked.
"Of course you would." Natsuki said, and as they remained in an embrace, Natsuki then remembered her conversation with Lux. "Akeno-senpai, can I ask you something?"
"Yes?" Akeno said, fluttering her eyelashes at Natsuki flirtatiously.
Natsuki licked her lips, "When we were fighting K-"
Splash!
Suddenly, the pair were hit by a wave of water, with the water getting into their mouths and noses. And when they looked to the side, Rias and Issei were grinning at them, making it obvious who splashed them.
Akeno and Natsuki looked at each other for a moment, and simultaneously turned back to the other two Devils. Both smirked fiendishly, their expressions promising vengeance, unaware of how fitting they looked with each other.
"Buchou, I think we made a mistake here." Issei said, slowly trying to back away from the pair across from them.
Rias only laughed, "That''s what makes it fun!"
Just as the words left her lips, Rias was hit by a fast stream of water that Akeno used her magic to create, sending her to the other end of the pool. Issei''s mouth dropped open in shock, both by the force of the stream and the speed at which Akeno had fired it, the attack having moved faster than he had been able to track.
When he turned to look at Natsuki, Issei saw that she had a sphere of water in her right hand, a similar form to the black bolt she liked to create. Natsuki pulled her arm back and threw the sphere of water at him, the object blurring before his eyes.
Oh, no...
The Next Day
Issei sighed as he folded his arms behind his head as he walked to school that morning.
This was the first time in a while that he was walking to school by himself, Rias had work that she had to in the clubroom that morning and Asia had also left early, going to the apartment that Xenovia was now living in, wanting to help her get ready for her first day of school.
When he thought of Xenovia, Issei sighed, not knowing what to make of what happened yesterday in the pool equipment room. The Knight had propositioned the Pawn, wanting him to give her child as she desired to become a mother, choosing Issei as she believed that he would give her powerful children.
Xenovia had grown up in the Church, devoting her entire life to God, training, and her studies, so now that she was a Devil and had been excommunicated, she had to find a new purpose.
In that moment, Issei was shocked and ecstatic that a beautiful girl wanted to sleep with him, that he would finally lose his virginity, but now that he had a clearer head, Issei realized how scummy it would have been if he did sleep with Xenovia.
The newly reincarnated Devil was a lot like Asia; both were girls who grew up in sheltered and conservative environments, and now they were free to do what they liked, Xenovia asking him to impregnate him proved that.
Xenovia just wanted to fulfil a dream, and I was the closest guy there, it didn''t mean anything. I mean, if she wanted really strong kids, she could go to Kiba or Natsuki. Well, maybe not Natsuki, she''s more likely to run Xenovia through with a sword than have sex with her. Issei thought.
As if she could hear his thoughts, Issei saw Natsuki approaching as she crossed the street, yawning as she walked, adjusting the strap of her bag on her shoulder. "Hey, Issei."
Issei grinned, "It''s been a while since you''ve been on time for school."
Natsuki huffed, "I don''t want another lecture from Sona-Kaichou, so I willed myself to get ready. I think becoming a Devil has made me more tired, I never used to sleep in like this when I was human."
"You sure it''s not just you? I''ve been a Devil just as long as you and I''m not having any problems getting up in the morning."
"Yeah, because Rias probably rolls onto you in her sleep and suffocates you into consciousness with her chest every morning." Natsuki said drily.
"T-t-that''s not what happens!" Issei screeched, but with how red his face was becoming, Natsuki was sure that such a scenario had happened at some point.
"Hmm, sure." Natsuki said as the two were getting closer to the gates of the academy.
"Shut up! You''re just jealous that you can''t get Akeno-senpai to use you like a body pillow like Buchou does with me!"
"Why would I be jealous of-" Natsuki stopped talking, feeling an overwhelming power wash over her, coming from the school gates.
It''s, it''s him again. Natsuki thought.
Issei looked at Natsuki when she suddenly stopped talking, seeing the unnerved look on her face, "Natsuki, what''s wro-"
Issei froze, grabbing his left arm when he felt a pulse run through it, over the area that his [Boosted Gear] encompassed. The feeling was an intense burning sensation that came without warning, getting stronger the closer they moved to the school.
"What the hell is going on?" Issei asked, his attention falling on a teenage boy who was leaning on the school gates, his eyes locked on Issei and Natsuki, smirking at them.
He was a handsome young man with light silver hair, and hazel eyes. He was slightly shorter than Issei, and with his facial features it was clear that he was a foreigner, but neither Devil could tell what his age was, if he was younger or older than them. He was wearing a dark green V-neck shirt with a high-collared black leather jacket over it, burgundy jeans with a silver chain drooping down over them and black leather chaps with three bands encircling his right calf, and black shoes with black buckles.
"Who are you?" Issei asked as the other students around them were filling into the school, but most taking note of the handsome stranger as they passed by, leaving the three alone.
The stranger pushed himself off the gate, sauntering up to Issei and Natsuki, the smirk never leaving his face. "You don''t remember me? That hurts, this is the second time we''ve met."
"It is?" Issei asked, confused as he was sure that he would have remembered meeting a guy who looked like that.
"Issei," Natsuki said, glaring at the man across from them, "He''s the White Dragon Emperor."
The White Dragon Emperor grinned, "I''m Vali, but you can keep calling me the White Dragon, or even the Vanishing Dragon."
"What?!" Issei yelled, "You''re the White Dragon Emperor?!"
"And you''re the Welsh Dragon, Sekiryuutei; Hyoudou Issei." Vali then looked at Natsuki, "And you''re the Evolving Dragon, Kogane Ry¨± K¨g¨; Sukehiro Natsuki."
Open House
"Yeah, so what do you want?" Natsuki asked, still glaring at Vali.
Vali smirked, and while Natsuki could feel his magic coming closer to her, indicating that he was moving towards her, Natsuki could not move fast enough to avoid Vali''s hand wrapping around her throat.
Vali smirked, "Too-"
Vali opened his smirking mouth to speak, but quieted himself when two swords were suddenly thrust at him, both sitting less than a millimeter from his neck.
Kiba and Xenovia were standing behind the Vanishing Dragon, both using the speed their Knight pieces granted them to close the distance. The Holy Demonic Sword and Durandal were emitting an intense aura, the blades responding to the emotions of their wielders, feeding on their anger.
"I don''t know what you''re planning, but you''re taking it too far. Now let go of Natsuki." Kiba growled.
"Your rivalry with Natsuki-san and Issei-san will not be starting here and not today. We won''t let you." Xenovia added.
Vali turned his head to look at the sword wielding duo, his arrogant smirk still on his face, "Those are some tough words, and I might have been able to take them seriously if your hands weren''t shaking."
Like Vali said, Kiba and Xenovia''s hands were indeed shaking, causing their swords to tremble, their expressions tightening with rage. As Devils, they all had instincts not unlike the ones animals possessed, and their instincts were telling them to run, to get as far away from the apex predator before them.
"It''s fine to boast, not knowing the difference between your opponent''s strength, but between me and you, there is a decisive difference in power. You, who couldn''t win against the likes of Kokabiel, won''t be able to win against me." Vali snickered as Kiba and Xenovia reluctantly dispelled their swords, knowing that if Vali genuinely wanted to, he could kill them with ease. He was not Kokabiel, the Fallen who not only outmatched them, but made it very clear that the only reason the Gremory Peerage lasted so long was because the Fallen was toying with them.
A growl ripped through the air as Natsuki grabbed the hand that Vali still had on her neck, forcing it off. She squeezed Vali''s wrist tightly, her eyes no longer burgundy, but a glowing gold as she glared at him venously, her voice becoming layered, something that had not happened since Riser appeared in the clubroom. "Shut your fucking mouth, you arrogant little punk. Keep on smirking and keep on talking; it''ll just make it all the sweeter when I beat you into the dirt."
Vali looked Natsuki up and down, unbothered by the hold she now had on him, and to Natsuki''s displeasure, still smirking. "You''d definitely be the more interesting combatant out of the two of you, you''re more in touch with your dragon. But tell me, Sukehiro Natsuki, how do you think you and Hyoudou Issei compare to those with power in this world?"
"What do you mean?" Issei asked.
"I''m talking about your Balance Breaker; it looks quite incomplete to me, but still a four-digit ranking." Vali said, raising four of his fingers with his other hand. "On a scale of strongest to weakest, that is. I''d say between one thousandth and fifteen hundredth or lower. Although, for such a perverted owner, I bet it''s even lower."
"Don''t talk to him like that!" Natsuki all but roared.
Vali grinned, "There are a lot of strong people in this world. Even the Crimson Satan, Sirzechs Lucifer wouldn''t fit in the top ten."
Are there really so many people stronger than Lucifer-sama? I honestly can''t imagine it. Issei thought.
The Vanishing Dragon then raised a finger, "However, first place has long been decided; it''s a fixed existence."
"Are you saying you''re the first?"
He shrugs his shoulders in response to Issei''s question, causing Issei to glare at Vali, "That''s great and all, but what''s your point?"
Vali looked between the two Pawns, "My point is that you''re, you both are, valuable players. You should be taken care of and natured." Vali then looked behind Natsuki and Issei, "Don''t you agree, Rias Gremory?"
Around Rias, there was Asia, Akeno, and Koneko, in contrast, Asia looked troubled while Akeno and Koneko looked ready to fight Vali.
Rias was angered, barely containing the rage that Vali''s sudden appearance inspired within in her. "I don''t need your advice, Hakuryuukou. Now, what is the meaning of all this? If you''ve come here on behalf of the Fallen Angels, then more-"
"You are aware that the Welsh Dragon and the Vanishing Dragon are known as the Two Heavenly Dragons, yes? People related to the Red, White, and even the Golden dragons have never had the best luck, it makes me wonder, how the lives of you and your Peerage will turn out."
Rias'' expression remained the same, but her Demonic energy began flaring up, covering the outer area of Kuoh Academy.
"Calm down, I''m not here to fight." Vali said causally, "I just wanted to see the school that I visited last time, under more dire circumstances. I came to Japan while escorting Azazel, but I was bored, I won''t fight the Welsh and Evolving dragons here, not to mention, I have a lot of work to do."
After saying that, Vali rips his arm out of Natsuki''s hand and turns his heel and walking down the street, away from the school. But even after he leaves, the large cloud of nervousness and fear the Devils felt does not go away, still permeating the surrounding area.
Natsuki growls again, but her voice and eyes have returned to normal, "Damnit!"
She knew that Vali was stronger than her, him beating Kokabiel more than proved this, but being powerless in his grasp and having him laugh in response to her threats, unfazed by any of them, bruised her ego in more ways than she could count.
Akeno stepped forward, placing a hand on Natsuki''s shoulder, "Nat-"
Natsuki growled again and ripped herself away from Akeno''s touch, not looking back or saying anything as she stormed onto the school grounds.
"Hey!" Issei yelled, but Natsuki ignored him, continuing into the school building, disappearing from sight.
Issei was about to follow her, but Rias stopped him, "Leave her be, Issei."
"But-"
Rias reached forward and gently held Issei''s hand, still facing the direction Vali had left in.
Issei looked at Rias questioningly, "Buchou? Are you okay?"
Rias did not respond to the question, still staring at the last place that she had seen Vali but continued to hold Issei''s hand.
Her hands are sweaty, she must be freaking out. Issei grits his teeth, his gaze falling to the floor, now understanding Natsuki''s outburst after Vali left.
He was supposed to be the Red Dragon Emperor, the White Dragon Emperor''s rival, their equal, and yet he was so much weaker than Vali. And Issei''s anger and helplessness only worsened as he realized that Vali had only come here for him, and this had put the rest of the Peerage in danger.
The rest of the Gremory Peerage stood outside the gates of the academy until they were forced to go to class, each thinking about their second encounter with the Vanishing Dragon.
The Next Day
"Wow, on time two days in a row. Who would''ve thought?" Issei grinned as he saw Natsuki take her seat behind him.
Natsuki put her bag down before sitting and placing her head against her desk, without looking, she raised both hands, showing both of her middle fingers to Issei proudly.
Asia, who was sitting in her own seat behind Issei and to the left of Natsuki, frowned and leaned to the side, using her own hands to put Natsuki''s down, Natsuki stopped her offensive gesture when she lifted her head and saw the disappointed look on Asia''s face.
Issei snickered to himself as Matsuda and Motohama approached the duo, taking their own seats.
"Are your parents coming, Ise?" Motohama asked.
Issei sighed, "Yeah, but more like Ok¨¡san and Ot¨san are coming to see Asia."
Matsuda nodded strongly to Issei''s reply. "Ah, I understand. If Asia-chan is one''s daughter, then you would want to come see her by all means."
Asia grinned, "This sort of thing is a first for me, so I am really excited."
At least one of us is. Natsuki thought, turning her head to stare out of the window and tuned out the madness Xenovia created when she entered the room and as walked up to Issei.
The last time Kushina had come to one of her open house''s was two years ago when she was in middle school, last year, Natsuki had told her guardian that she did not want the woman making the trip to Kuoh just to watch her doing different activities and to talk to her teachers, not when the women had so many other responsibilities.
So, Natsuki was not expecting the woman to come this year, as Kushina had not mentioned the open house when they spoke over the phone a few days ago. Instead, Kushina spent most of their conversation berating Natsuki for not coming back home to visit in the last few weeks, suspicious of the excuses the girl would give her every time she asked why.
I can''t really blame Kushina-sama for not believing me. I''ve never mentioned having friends or being in any clubs and now I suddenly can''t go home because I have responsibilities in my club and club meetings with my friends keep running late? Yeah, I would call bullshit too. I really should make time to go back to Nitosh¨.
Natsuki was pulled out of her thoughts when their English teacher entered the room, pulling a cart filled with supplies with him, he then walked by each desk, putting a lump of PVC clay on each one. Once he was done, he walked to the back of the classroom and opened the door in the back, letting the student''s parents and other family members inside.
The teacher cleared his throat as he walked back to the front of the room, "On your desks, you''ll see a lump of clay. Your assignment is to create something original, it can be whatever you want, as long as it''s meaningful to you. We all see life differently, it''s the same with everyday conversations you may have."
The students got to work on their assignment, each putting in their best effort with the weight of their parents'' eyes on their backs.
Natsuki stared at her clay trying to think of what to do but drawing a blank, but she felt a bit better when she looked up and saw that Issei and Xenovia had not yet gotten started either.
"Psh! Natsuki Onee-chan!" A voice loudly whispered.
As she was sitting in the last row, Natsuki only had to run her head slightly to see the group behind her, and what she saw filled her with shock and dread.
"Izo?" Natsuki asked aloud, seeing the familiar brown haired, ten-year-old boy covered in scars standing there along with the other children of the Nitosh¨ Orphanage and Kushina.
Izo grinned, "Make something cool, Onee-chan!"
This led to the other children talking excitedly over each other, drawing the attention of most of the room.
Issei leaned his head back, "Natsuki, who are they?"
"They''re the kids from the orphanage and the matron, Kushina-sama." Natsuki said as she turned around, staring to mold her clay.
"Seriously?" Issei asked, Natsuki had never hidden the fact that she was an orphan and had lived in an orphanage in Nitosh¨ before coming to Kuoh, but she had never gone into much detail about her life. So, he was taking a longer look at the group of eight, but all his attention was soon on the matron.
Kushina was a woman in her early sixties, but her age did nothing to take away from her beauty. She was average height; her hair had become grey, and a few strands of white could be seen mixed through, she had brown eyes and smile lines around her mouth. But what drew Issei''s eye the most was her figure; the woman maintained a curvy shape that Issei could still see through her jeans and t-shirt, despite both being loose fitting.
"Woah! I didn''t know I had a thing for obaasans before, but I definitely do n-"
Issei did not get to finish his sentence before Natsuki lifted her foot and kicked the back of his chair so hard that she slammed him against the wall, knocking the breath out of him.
When he looked up, Natsuki was glaring at him with a fire that threatened to burn him alive, and Issei could have sworn that her eyes had briefly flashed gold. "I will fucking kill you if you ever some much as look at Kushina-sama again, you pathetic piece of trash."
Issei shuddered, happy that they were in a public place to ensure that Natsuki could not carry out her threat, but was still afraid of what she might do to him later. "Ah- I won''t!"
Before Natsuki could speak, a hand slapped the back of her head, diffusing the moment. When she turned, Natsuki saw Kushina staring at her.
"Have I not told you before to not put your hands on other people, Natsuki?" Kushina asked, an eyebrow raised.
"You did." Natsuki muttered.
"And yet here you are doing it. Focus on your work instead of hitting little boys, hmm."
Natsuki turned around and went back to molding her clay, but not before shooting Issei a dirty look as he straightened himself, silently blaming him for her being chastised.
"Asia-chan, keep going!"
"Asia-chan, you''re looking cute!"
Miki and Gorou said respectively, cheering Asia on as she molded her clay. They ignored Issei outright as Gorou held up a video camera, pointing it at Asia. Hearing their voices, Asia smiled and turned back to her clay, doing so happily unlike the rest of her classmates.
Issei started to think about what was important to him as he closed, getting lost in his very descriptive thoughts, unaware of the movements of his hands.
"Hyo-Hyoudou-kun¡." Noticing the hand on his shoulder, Issei opened his eyes and turned his face, saw that it was his Sensei, he had an astonished expression and his whole body was shaking.
And that was when Issei became aware that everyone was staring at him and what he had created, in front of him was a miniature figure of Rias, one that was incredibly realistic and completely naked, showing off the Devil''s jaw dropping form.
"Holy crap; it''s a gray Rias-senpai." Katase exclaimed.
"Amazing; it looks just like her." Murayama added, equally astounded.
"T-That is Rias-senpai? Shit! As I thought, Issei, you bastardl! With senpai!"
"No way! Rias Onee-sama with that beast¡!" Other students started to say, talking over each other as they could not believe that Issei of all people could have been able to see Rias naked.
The teacher leaned forward to get a better look at the piece, "You''ve been holding out on us, I didn''t know we had such a sculptor in the class."
Issei froze, trying to use his hands to cover the sculptor. "Oh, we don''t-really-I just, um... It was an accident."
Kiryuu pushed her glasses upwards, smirking at Issei devilishly, "You must be feeling her up so much that you''ve memorized her body."
Issei glared at the girl, "I don''t believe anyone was talking to you."
Matsuda scowled, "I knew he was messing with her!"
Motohama scowled too, "You asshole! What do they feel like?"
"You''re such a pervert!" Katsase screeched.
Murayama agreed, "I don''t know why Rias-senpai would want to mess around with a freak like you."
Matsuda then got in Issei''s face, "I''ll give you eight thousand yen for it."
Motohama pushed Matsuda out of the way, "Don''t listen to him; I''ll give nine thousand for it."
This led to most of the students trying to outbid the others for Issei''s sculpture, turning it all into an auction. While the other parents in the room looked confused and disgusted, both by Issei''s art and their children trying to buy it, Issei''s were pleasantly surprised.
"Look at how talent our son is." Miki said, grabbing her husband''s arm.
Gorou grinned, agreeing with his wife, "And to think, I always thought of him as a total loser whose only skill was coming up with unique and creative ways to describe women''s breast!"
Kushina tilted her head to the side as she looked at the Hyoudous before leaning close to Natsuki, "They''re proud?"
Natsuki sighed, shaking her head, "They are, to be fair, they have never had much faith in Issei so they usually take what they can get from him."
Kushina''s eyes widened a bit at Natsuki knowing Issei''s parents, "Is this Issei your friend?"
"He is. I guess he has been since first year." Natsuki said plainly.
"And you have never mentioned him before and thought to introduce him to me?" Kushina asked, looking at the girl dryly.
Natsuki shrugged, "Issei''s a lot."
Kushina huffed, a smile appearing on her lips, "He seems like it."
"Why did you and the kids come?" Natsuki eventually asked.
Kushina''s smile grew, "You remember your benefactor?"
"How could I forget."
"Well, I received a letter from them in mail a few days ago along with train tickets."
Natsuki blinked. Train tickets, why?
"They wrote that they wished to meet us both in person, to further discuss your scholarship after the open house."
Discuss my scholarship? Are they thinking of rescinding it? They have never asked to meet before; all our communication has been through letters. I mean, they wouldn''t have had Kushina-sama come all the way to Kuoh just to do that, and even if they did, Rias would help me stay school, so it won''t bother me much.
"Oh, and who are you two, darlings?" Kushin asked, seeing the two girls sitting on either side of Natsuki looking at her questioningly.
Asia jumped slightly, her cheeks turning pink, "S-sorry for staring, I am Asia Argento."
"And I am Xenovia Quarta, ma''am." Xenovia said, "Are you Natsuki-san''s mother?"
Kushina stared at Xenovia for a few seconds, before her eyes flickered towards Natsuki, seeing the girl''s body tense in response to Xenovia''s question. Before Kushina could respond, Issei jumped from his seat, holding the statue he made. "Guys, seriously just give me some space!"
Natsuki took this opportunity to go back to her clay now that the two girls and her caretaker were distracted, molding it harder than she was before.
She had thought of it in her head, but Natsuki had never referred to Kushina as her mother aloud. In a lot of ways, Kushina was a mother to her; the woman had raised her since infancy, but Kushina was the matron of an orphanage, she has raised countless children.
I''m not special; Kushina has dealt with who knows how many children in her career, so it would be stupid to think I''m different from any of them. Natsuki thought as she sculpted her clay to look like the Nitosh¨ Orphanage.
A Few Hours Later
"It''s very well made." Rias said, smiling brightly as she held the statue that Issei had made of her. Issei could not find it within himself to sell it to any of his classmates, unable to give any something he made in his King''s image.
It was currently lunchtime, and Natsuki, Issei, and Asia had gone out to the vending machines overlooking the school field, coincidentally running into Rias and Akeno.
"Ara ara, as expected of Ise-kun who looks and touches Buchou''s body every day." Akeno said, but equally surprised by the quality of the statue.
Issei scratched the back of his head, "It''s not every day. So, I have been forced to crave that image deep into my head."
"In that case I would love it if you''d make one of me too." Akeno said, fighting back the smirk she wanted to make when the heads of the other three girls snapped in her direction.
Issei''s eyes grew wide, "What? Like, naked too? Without clothes and with my hands?"
He practically drooled when Akeno''s smile grew, "Well when do we-"
The sound of a soda can being crushed ripped through the air, and everyone looked at Natsuki. The girl''s hand was holding the crushed can and had soda dripping from it as she glared at Issei. "You won''t be sculpting her or anyone else. Understood?"
Issei laughed nervously, "Yeah, of course."
Akeno grinned as she leaned closer to Natsuki, "Does that mean you will, Natsuki-chan?"
"Not in your wildest dreams, you sadist." Natsuki replied, standing up to throw away the soda can.
Issei turned to Rias, "By the way, Buchou. Did Sirzechs-sama come?"
At his question, Rias puts a hand on her forehead and let out her breath. "Yeah, he came along with my father."
It was then that Kiba appeared, "Ah, Buchou. Moreover, everyone came as well."
"What do you mean by everyone, Yuuto?" Rias asked.
Kiba pointed to the corridor leading into the school, "I heard a witch was doing a photography shoot, so I thought I''d come see it."
As Kiba said this a group of boys ran past them, heading in the direction that Kiba was pointing.
"A magical girl photo shoot?"
"C''mon we have to get pictures!"
Natsuki then looked at Rias, "Do you know a witch who also headlines as a magical girl?"
Rias started to laugh as she realized the only person it could be, "You could say that."
The group went inside, walking to the gymnasium where they saw a large crowd present, all taking pictures, cheering, and trying to talk to the person at the front.
At the front was a beautiful girl; looking in her late teens with black hair, tied into twin tails and blue eyes. She also has a child-like body, albeit with large breasts and was wearing a costume of an anime character from Magical Girl Milky Spiral Seven.
"Rias-Buchou, why do you know a Magical Girl Milky Spiral Seven cosplayer?" Natsuki asked.
Asia looked at the taller girl, "Natsuki-san, why do you know that costume?"
"Issei kept hounding me for months to watch the anime until I finally gave in." Natsuki replied, "I can admit it was a good show, even if I could have done with a little less fan service."
Issei grinned, "I said you''d like it. We''ve got to have a marathon one of these days."
Before Natsuki could say anything, she noticed two redheads from the corner of her eye. Sirzechs-sama and Gremory-sama?
Zeoticus was watching the magically girl, but Sirzechs met her gaze after a few seconds, smiling at her as he raised a finger to his lips, making the quieting motion. While Natsuki knew that Sirzechs was being playfully, she was taken back to that night in Issei''s bedroom, and quickly turned away from the man, trying and failing to ignore his presence.
Luckily for Natsuki, the voice of Saji Genshirou cut through the air a moment later, "Knock it off! We are still on school property; today''s the day for displaying classes to the public! You''ve seen enough."
Saji was standing in front of woman, blocking her partially from view as ordered the people in the gym to leave. The crowd of male students complained and cursed Saji, but did as they were told, reluctantly leaving the gym and the magically girl behind.
Saji then turned to the cosplayer, "Okay, are you related to a student here?"
The girl nodded her head, smiling at Saji.
"Well, they should have told you that this sort of outfit is unacceptable here."
The Mil Kiss cosplayer started make cute poses, defending herself by quoting lines from the anime. "Sparkle, shine, your command is mine! "
Saji ignored this and pressed his warning, "You have to stop doing that."
"Eh, but this is my uniform~"
Saji ground his teeth but as soon as he noticed Rias from the corner of his eye, he lowered his head. "Oh, it''s Rias-senpai. You came at the right time. I was just guiding Maou-sama and senpai''s Otou-san."
As Saji looked behind him, the crimson haired males approached, revealing themselves to the rest of the group.
The doors of the gym soon swung open, revealing the strict Student Council President. "What''s this? Saji, I always tell you to settle things concisely-" Sona immediately stopped talking as she looked at the cosplayer, her face turning pale and her eyes widened.
"I finally found you Sona-chan! I''m so happy to see you!" Mil Kiss exclaimed, running past Saji and happily hugging Sona.
Wait, that Mil Kiss girl has magic, and it feels similar to Sona''s. They also look like, are they related somehow? Natsuki thought.
Issei, Asia, and even Saji were just as confused as Natsuki, and they too noticed the physical resemblance between the two.
"Have you finished having your fun, Serafall?" Sirzechs asked aloud.
"Serafall?" Issei asked aloud.
Rias smiled, "She is one of our four Maous; Serafall Leviathan-sama. And she is also Sona''s Onee-sama."
"Eeeeeehhhhh!"
Rias then walked towards the two sisters, "It has been some time, Serafall-sama."
Serafall grinned as she faced Rias, "Ara, Rias-chan. A long time no see~ How have you''ve been doing? How exited are you to see me?"
Even Rias seemed to be taken aback slightly by the Maou''s cut tone, "V-very, thank you for asking. Did you come here to visit Sona for the Open House?"
"Yeah!" Serafall exclaimed, her lips forming a pout, "But I had to find it on my own! Sona-chan is a meanie and didn''t tell me. I was so mad when I found out the truth. I almost attack Heaven out of frustration."
"Is she serious?" Issei asked aloud.
"I think she is." Natsuki said, once again surprised by the strangeness of a Maou.
Rias then turned to them, "Ise, Natsuki, there''s someone I want you two to meet."
Issei lowered his head when he and Natsuki stepped forward, "N-Nice to meet you, I am Hyoudou Issei. I am Rias Gremory-sama''s servant and Pawn! I''ll be under your care!"
Natsuki then lowered her own head, "I am honored to me you, Leviathan-sama. I am Sukehiro Natsuki, also Rias Gremory-sama''s Pawn."
Serafall smiled while turning sideways and making a peace sign. "Nice to meet you. I am the Maou Serafall Leviathan. Call me Levi-tan "
"Uh, cool?"
"I would rather not." Issei and Natsuki said, respectively.
Serafall then looked at the red-haired male Devils, "Hey, Sirzechs-kun. Are these two the rumored Dragon-kun and Dragon-chan?"The story has been illicitly taken; should you find it on Amazon, report the infringement.
"Yes, they are the people that the Welsh and Evolving Dragons reside in, Hyoudou Issei-kun and Sukehiro Natsuki-chan." Sirzechs answered.
"Ara ara, hi, Uncle Gremory." Serafall said to the man next to Sirzechs.
Zeoticus smiled, "Hello, Serafall-dono. Is what you''re wearing another manga uniform? I like it, but I think that as a Maou, its quite strange."
Serafall stuck her tongue out of the side of her mouth as she posed again. "Ara, uncle, don''t you know? This is the fashion in this country, you know?"
Zeoticus chuckled, "Heh, is that so? It seems this was my ignorance showing then."
"Hahaha, tou-ue, you don''t believe it."
Issei turned to Rias with a sorry look on his face, "Bu-Buchou, this light of a mood is far surpassing my imagination but, Serafall-sama is..."
Rias sighed, "I forgot to say it, well, it''s more like I didn''t want to say it, but for the four current Maou-samas, every one of them is like this. During private times, they are amenable, to a severe extent."
Serafall pouted as she looked back at her sister, seeing Sona''s expression and her skewed glasses. "What''s the matter? You look sad and your face is all red. Aren''t you excited to finally see your Onee-chan again? I''m going to require a lot more happiness from you! C''mon! You should be running into my arms and telling me how much you missed me! And then I''ll say; ''Oh, Sona-chan, I''ve missed you too!'' And then I''ll give you a big kiss and then you''ll kiss me back and we will be all Yuri together. Wouldn''t that be hot?"
"So, all Maous are obsessed with and want to fuck their siblings?" Natsuki asked aloud, causing most to look at her in shock.
Rias glared at Natsuki, "You know, Natsuki, sometimes it''s best to keep your smartass comments to yourself."
Natsuki shrugged uncaringly "You shouldn''t have revived me and made me into your Devil servant then. Didn''t you know about my delinquent reputation?"
"I thought you hated when people said those things about you?" Issei asked.
"I hate them cause they''re all wrong, but the rumors of me being an asshole are correct."
"You almost sound proud of that." Kiba added, staring at Natsuki sardonically.
Sona finally broke out of her silent stupor, staring at sister intently, "Listen to me, Onee-sama. This is my school, and I am entrusted with the job of the student council president here. No matter our relation, both your behavior and attire are entirely inappropriate, so I must ask you to calm yourself down and change your outfit."
Serafall shook her head, "No way, Sona-chan! If I am told that by Sona-chan, your Onee-chan will be sad! Sona-chan doesn''t know that her Onee-chan is admired as the Magical girl! If you keep saying that I''ll have no choice but to use my sparkling staff and erase all the Angels and Fallen Angels."
Sona glared, "Do you have any respect at all? If you start sparkling, you could annihilate a small country in minutes."
"I just had a thought." Issei said as he spoke to Saji, "When Kokabiel was attacking, why didn''t Kaichou call her Onee-san? Is it because they don''t get along?"
"It''s the actually the opposite; Serafall Leviathan-sama dotes on her little sister so much, is obsessed with even. If she had been called, and if she found out that her little sister was possibly injured by the Fallen Angel, we didn''t know how she would have reacted, but it would have probably started a war. So, it was the correct decision to not call Serafall-sama, and rather call Lucifer-sama. However, I am meeting her for the first time as well, but this is..." Saji trailed off, showing that he too was bewildered by the scene before them.
The usually calm and composed Sona eventually lost it as her eyes became wet with tears and she ran away. "Ugh! I can''t take it anymore!"
"Wait! Sona-chan! Don''t leave your Onee-chan behind!" Serafall yelled, immediately following her sister.
"Stay away from me!"
"Noooooo! Don''t abandon your Onee-chaaaaaaan! So-taaaaaan!"
"I have asked you so many times not to add ''tan''!"
Saji sighed, "It looks like Sona-Kaichou is going to need my help. I''ll talk to you later."
"I hear you, see you later." Issei said as Saji took off running after his King and her sister.
Sirzechs moved to stand next to his sister, "The Sitri household is peaceful. Don''t you think so, Ria-tan?"
Rias looked at her brother with a deadpanned stare, "Onii-sama, don''t add a ''tan'' to my pet name and call me that please."
Sirzechs looked at Rias with dramatic shock, "No way, Ria-tan. How can you say that, even though you used to follow me all the time while saying ''Onii-sama Onii-sama''? This must be a rebellious phase, huh?"
"Geez! Onii-sama! Why do you remind me of my childhood-"
Flash!
Everyone looked and saw that Zeoticus had taken a picture of Rias'' angry face. "That''s a nice face, Rias. It''s good that I raise you so splendidly. Your mother couldn''t be here today, so I promised to take lots of pictures of your big day for her."
Rias'' face turned red, "Otou-sama! Geez!"
It''s good to know that there isn''t much difference between human and Devil families. Well, besides the fact that fights could lead to countries being destroyed. Issei thought.
"So, does this means I was right about the Maous and their obsessions, Ria-tan?" Natsuki asked, smirking at Rias.
"Akeno." Rias said coldly and without turning around.
"Got it, Buchou." Akeno said as she moved behind Natsuki before the girl could react, coating her hand in her Demonic energy and slapping Natsuki'' rear end as hard as she could.
"Aggh!" Natsuki cried, falling to her knees, her face resting against the cold floor of the gym as she clutched her bottom, feeling nothing but excruciating pain.
Both Kiba and Issei winced in sympathy, knowing just how painful those hits could be, especially from one so sadistic as Akeno.
"Mao, was that truly necessary, Ria-tan? Natsuki-chan was just making a joke." Sirzechs said.
"It was extremely necessary; she should have known better than to say her terrible joke out loud." Rias replied, her cold expression remaining present.
The group soon left the gymnasium, Rias'' face was still red as her brother and father continued to speak about her to the others, mainly Issei.
"Ugh... Th-this is abuse, Rias." Natsuki groaned, walking in step with the older girl and still holding her backside.
Rias smirked, "It''s not abuse, its correcting ill behavior."
"You''re evil." Natsuki said with a shudder.
"Thank you, Natsuki. You''re so sweet."
"And why is this correcting directed only at me?"
Rias looked at from the corner of her eye, her eyebrow raised, "Do you really need me to answer that?"
"Yes." Natsuki frowned, "What about Koneko? She''s always making mean comments. Or Issei? He''s practically a walking Chikan PSA."
"Hey!" Issei exclaimed, both because of the comment itself and because Natsuki said it in front of Sirzechs and Zeoticus, but the two men only looked at him amused.
"What''s a chikan?" Asia asked, much to Issei''s horror.
Asia''s question was ignored as Rias answered Natsuki, "Because Koneko and Issei are cute enough to get away with it. You''re not."
"Whatever." Natsuki rolled her eyes, not bothering to refute the statement.
The group soon entered the lobby of the school, walking past the many students and families that were milling around and talking.
Near the stairs, Kushina was speaking to Issei''s parents while the children played behind them, using the stairs as a playground.
Gorou was the first to notice them, raising his hand up in a small wave. "Oh, Ise."
"Hi, Otou-san." Issei said.
Zeoticus leaned forward as he looked between Issei, Gorou, and Miki. "Hyoudou Issei-kun, are these people your parents?"
"Y-Yes. They''re my parents." Issei said.
"I see." Zeoticus said before standing in front of Miki and Gorou, smiling at the pair. "Nice to meet you, I am Rias'' father, Zeoticus Gremory."
Miki and Gorou''s faces changed, from joyful to a dark color of nervousness.
"T-T-TTTTTTTTTTTThis is, thank you! Ah, um, I am Hyoudou Issei''s father! We''re being taken care of by Rias-san, um, that is..." Gorou trailed off as he shook Zeoticus'' hand.
Zeoticus shook his head, "No, same here. Thank you for taking care of Rias. I thought of coming to greet you before now, but Sirzechs and I were busy with work, so it wasn''t easy to able to get the opportunity. It seems this occasion was blessed by good luck, it''s an honor to meet you today."
"No-No way! I too also said to greet you once to Issei''s father-No no, I talked to my husband about it." Miki stammered, taken aback by the handsome man before her.
Seriously, why are you guys being so weird?! Issei thought, blushing with embarrassment.
Zeoticus then looked at Kushina, "And you must be Sukehiro-san''s mother?"
Once again, Natsuki flinched at the notion of someone calling Kushina her mother. "She is the matron of the orphanage I come from, Aozora Kushina."
If Kushina was bothered by this correction, she did not show it as she shook Zeoticus'' hand. "I am her guardian, however. But I am sorry who is Rias?"
"I am Rias, Aozora-san." Rias said, smiling at the older woman, "I am the president of the Occult Research Club."
Kushina smiled, "And you are all friend''s with Natsu-chan?"
Issei snickered, "Natsu-chan?"
Natsuki rolled her eyes, she disliked nicknames, and only tolerated Kushina doing so, and she was now sure that she would have to go through the others doing the same.
"We are, Natsuki is a trusted and friend and dear member of our club." Rias replied.
"I''m glad, Natsu-chan has always struggled making friends, I worry about her being alone, it''s not good for her."
"You act like I''m some shut-in who can''t take care of herself." Natsuki said dryly.
"Aren''t you?" Kushina shot back, "I''m going to have to spend the rest of my life worried about you dying alone."
"If anything, I learned it from you. I don''t see you drowning in friends either."
Akeno giggled when Kushina pinched Natsuki''s ear in response, Natsuki did not give much of reaction besides glaring at the woman.
I see where Natsuki gets her sarcasm and wit from. Akeno thought.
"Wow." Everyone looked down at a brown-haired girl with green eyes, pigtails, and a gap between her teeth. "Onee-chan has friends?"
"Last I checked, you don''t have many friends either, Enri." Natsuki said.
Enri crossed her arms, raising her head back as she glowered, "I''m six and way you''re older than me, so it was sad that you didn''t have friends, not even one."
Izo who was standing next to Enri, pointed at Natsuki, and laughed. "Ha! Burn!"
The other children stopped what they were doing to laugh at Natsuki as well. The teenager did not take any of it to heart, only huffing when she saw that the others were now looking at her in amusement.
Asia smiled as she crouched down, "And who are all of these sweethearts?"
Natsuki pointed to the seven children, naming each of them, "The girl with pigtails and a big mouth is Enri, the boy with all the scars is Izo, the blonde pair of identical twins are Kenji and Renji, the tall girl with bandages on her arm is Rina, the short girl with glasses is Nariko, and the youngest boy with a shaved head is Daisuke."
Nariko pouted, "Is that all you see us as?"
Natsuki shrugged, "It''s the quickest way to introduce all pf you. What, you want me to give everyone detailed descriptions on you guys?"
"It would be better than being called, ''short girl with glasses,'' Onee-chan."
"I''ll remember that for next time."
Sirzechs stepped forward, taking the time to shake Kushina''s hand, "It is an honor to finally meet you Aozora-san."
"Finally?" Kushina asked.
Sirzechs smiled, "I have been wanting to speak to both you and Natsuki-chan for a while now, but I couldn''t find the time until today''s open house, it''s why I sent you those train tickets for you and the children."
Natsuki and Kushina both froze at this piece of information, staring at Sirzechs in shock.
Kushina broke out of her stupor first, "You are Natsuki''s benefactor?"
Sirzechs chuckled, "Guilty."
Everyone besides Zeoticus, looked at the trio in confusion, Rias then spoke, "Benefactor?"
"You see, I-"
"It was you? You were the one who fucking paid for me to come to Kuoh?" Natsuki spat, glaring at Sirzechs.
"Natsuki!" Kushina shouted.
Sirzechs turned towards Natsuki, "Natsuki-chan, now I know that this may sound... predatory. But this was done for your benefit."
Natsuki scoffed, still glaring at the man, stepping closer to him. "My benefit?! What a fucking joke! Do you really expect me to believe that shit?!"
Rias moved between her brother and Natsuki, using her arm to push Natsuki back. "That is enough, Natsuki! Now what is going on?"
Natsuki slapped Rias'' hand away, "Like you don''t know!"
Rias''s eyes widened, surprised as she had never been on the other side of Natsuki''s anger, unconsciously taking a step back when Natsuki''s eyes flashed gold for the briefest of moments.
Issei glared at Natsuki, "Back off, Natsuki, before I make you."
Calm down, Natsuki. You are still in the presence of mortals, and I doubt that Sirzechs will allow you to speak to his sister in such a manner in front of him. Lux said in the girl''s mind.
Natsuki let out a scornful huff, "I can''t believe I didn''t see it before; someone like you just so happened to get Issei and I into your Peerage and becoming Devils, seemingly out of the blue. I can''t believe I was stupid enough to not see through it."
"Natsuki, what are you talking about?" Rias asked.
"Me being brought to this school by a mysterious benefactor, Issei never being expelled despite harassing every female student he comes across? What better way to get rid of an annoying egoistical fire bird than to ensure their little sister has the odds staked in her fucking favor when she has to fight him?"
A stillness overtook the group, Kushina, Issei''s parents, and the children looked at Natsuki confused, not understanding what she was talking about. But the Peerage were equal parts shocked and horrified as they looked at Natsuki and Sirzechs.
"Onii-chan," Rias whispered, "Tell me she''s wrong, tell me that this is just a misunderstanding."
For the first time that day, Sirzechs no longer had his usual easy-going smile on his face, staring at his sister seriously and without remorse. "I can''t do that, if I did, I would be lying."
Rias looked devastated, her voice becoming rough with anger and betrayal, "How could you?"
Sirzechs'' expression fell slightly at his sister''s pain, "I did it to save you, Rias. I couldn''t act openly and stop your marriage to Riser due to my position, so underhanded methods were necessary."
Natsuki scoffed, "So my life was just a piece on the board for you?"
Sirzechs sighed, "It was for your-"
"Don''t lie and say any of this was for my benefit!" Natsuki yelled, "I was... I was just a damn puppet for you."
Natsuki then turned on her heel and left, ignoring the calls of the others as she moved as quickly as she could out of the school.
The moment Natsuki left, all hell broke loose among the group as everyone turned their attention to Sirzechs Lucifer.
Kushina was the most incensed, not knowing what was going on, but knowing that Sirzechs had done something to cause such a reaction in Natsuki, and began to yell at him, demanding answers.
It had gotten to the point where Sirzechs had to use his magic to alter the memories of the humans with them, something that angered Issei as he watched his parents slump over, staring ahead blankly as if a fog had overtaken their minds. This reaction could also be seen in Kushina, the children, and the students and families who were in the lobby and had seen the incident.
It was only Asia grabbing him by the arm, that prevented Issei from moving closer to the Maou and demanding that he stop using his magic on Miki and Gorou.
"Perhaps we should go to Hyoudou-kun''s house so that Sirzechs can explain himself?" Zeoticus said, his face was calm, but his voice left no room for argument as he spoke.
Rias glared at her brother, barely keeping her Power of Destruction from leaking out and using it to strike Sirzechs down. "Akeno, call Koneko and Xenovia and tell them to meet us at Issei''s house."
"Of course, Buchou." Akeno said, doing as she was told despite the desire to chase after Natsuki.
It did not take them long to reach Hyoudou house, the ORC had gone into Issei''s bedroom for privacy while Zeoticus kept the Hyoudou''s, Kushina, and the children distracted in the living room. He did not mind watching the video tapes of Issei and Asia during the open house as he already had his suspicions about his son''s actions and secrecy.
"How long? How long have you been manipulating my life? My Peerage?" Rias asked, glaring at her brother from her place on Issei''s bed.
"Not every person in your Peerage is here because of my direct involvement." Sirzechs answered, "As you already know it''s because of me that you were able to take Akeno and Koneko-chan with no repercussions when you decided to have them in your family, but when it comes to Ise-kun and Natsuki-chan, I ensured that they would be here, at Kuoh Academy for you to notice them."
"And you gave me that Mutation Piece because you knew that the Pawns I did have would not be enough to revive both Natsuki and Issei?" Rias asked, already knowing the answer.
"I did not know that Issei would take up all eight of your Pawns, but it would have been impossible for you to revive two Longinus wielders with the Evil Pieces you had at the time."
"So, Natsuki was right? You played us so that Rias-Buchou could use us to beat Riser?" Issei asked the Maou.
Sirzechs turned to Issei, "You must understand, Ise-kun, I would do anything for my family, and what I did might seem callous of me, I won''t deny you that, but I won''t apologize for it. Riser Phenex was not a good man, especially not for my sister, and I would do it all again to keep Rias from having to marry him."
Issei clenched his fists as he looked at the floor, "I get wanting to protect your family, but it was still my life. You took away my choices, for all you know I could have decided to become a Devil on my own instead of being purposely put so close to the supernatural."
Sirzechs smile became somber, "You could have, but I could not take that chance. If you had refused my sister''s offer, Rias is not the type of Devil that would have forced you into turning, even at great detriment to herself."
"Were-were you the reason Issei and Natsuki were killed by Raynare?" Rias quickly asked.
Sirzechs shook his head, "I will admit that I was going to create an accident that would kill the two of them; you were taking too long to approach them, and the date of the wedding was drawing closer. But Raynare appearing was not my doing, simply a coincidence that worked in my favor."
How can you even say that? Rias thought, she knew that her brother had sides to himself that he did not show her, it was a given with his status of Maou, but hearing him speak so causally about killing her friends, left Rias blindsided.
"I don''t think that will be a good enough answer for Natsuki, Sirzechs-sama." Kiba spoke, relating to the feelings of deception and betrayal Natsuki was undoubtedly having.
Issei sighed, "Kiba''s right; Natsuki will probably still be pissed, but I think she''ll come back."
"Really, you think she will?" Asia asked, afraid that Natsuki might become a Stray Devil because of the betrayal she felt.
Issei shook his head, "Natsuki''s anger is aimed at Sirzechs-sama, not Buchou. And Natsuki isn''t an idiot, no matter how she feels, she not going to risk becoming a Stray Devil, even if she never forgives Sirzechs-sama."
"I was aware of this being a possibility, and I am more than happy bare any anger or distrust Natsuki-chan may have against me."
"Were you always aware of Natsuki''s existence, Sirzechs-sama?" Akeno quietly asked.
"No, I was not." Sirzechs answered, "It was only until Natsuki-chan was around seven years old, that I sensed her magical energy and the Dragon within her soul."
So, this all started around ten years ago? That would have been around the time that Cleria Belial had died suddenly. Rias thought.
Cleria Belial had been a member of the branch family of the Belial Clan and was the overseer of Kuoh Town before Rias and Sona. Rias remembered how the Great King Faction, led by their mother''s family, the Bael Clan, had sought to gain control over Kuoh and how much Sirzechs and the other Maous fought against this.
For the next few years, until Rias and Sona enrolled in the junior high school of Kuoh Academy, Sirzechs and Serafall temporarily ruled over the region, and Rias could remember her brother making periodic trips to Kuoh.
"After the Ratings Game, at the celebration party thrown for us, Natsuki asked you and Grayfia if you two knew her and you said no. Were you lying then?" Rias asked.
"I was not entirely truthful to Natsuki-chan." Sirzechs said.
Rias looked away from her brother, "You were the one who told me that a Peerage is supposed to be a family, a group of people that you can trust and rely on."
"And it is; a Peerage is those things and more."
"But you manipulated everything! You used Issei and Natsuki for selfish reasons!" Rias yelled, "How am I supposed to trust anything now, knowing how easily and heartlessly you could just ruin people''s lives just for me?"
"Rias, when you''re a leader, you realize that you cannot look at every situation through the lens of good and evil." Sirzechs started, "That you must act morally gray or even cruel to do what is necessary. You would not have beaten Riser without Issei or Natsuki, and even with them on your side, you almost forfeited the match because seeing your servants hurt, left you too demoralized to even keep trying. If I had not acted, your softness would have kept you from being the leader that the rest of your servants needed you to be."
Rias was devastated by her brother''s words, she already knew that she had failed her servants during the Rating Game, but hearing Sirzechs lay out plainly how much she failed them, wounded her deeply.
Issei stood up, "Buchou is a great leader! And even if you hadn''t sought to push us around like chess pieces, I bet she would have been able to succeed on her own!"
"Ise..." Rias said softly, looking at him surprised and longingly.
"And I am not saying that she is not, only that I needed to be sure that she would not be stuck in a loveless marriage to a cruel man, and that she would not allow such a fate to befall her just for the comfort of others." Sirzechs said and everyone could tell that he was becoming agitated with how the conversation was going around in circles.
Rias shook her head, "But that''s just the thing Onii-chan, you didn''t believe in me, your actions more than prove this."
Sirzechs frowned, "I just wanted-"
Rias interrupted her brother, "I know what you wanted, I know you were just trying to be a good brother and protect me, and I recognize that, but that doesn''t justify using people in the name of doing that. I want any person that is a part of my Peerage to be here willingly, to choose to have their lives irrevocably altered by becoming a Devil. Natsuki and Issei did not get that choice, and I can acknowledge my own part in all of this; I could have allowed them to die, to a least be allowed to stay human in their final moments, but I... I also saw the opportunity. They were dying, and the thought of Riser filled my mind as I watched them bleed out, so I convinced myself that I was helping them, but I was just as selfish."
"Buchou, that isn''t true! You''re the most selfless person there is." Kiba interjected.
"Yuuto-senpai is right. The rest of us wouldn''t be here without you." Koneko said softly, her voice filling with slight emotion.
Rias let the tears she was holding back fall, "Even so, I... I''ve always been there during all your worst moments; I capitalized on all of it."
"You did." Akeno said, drawing everyone''s attention, "But that doesn''t change the fact that you saved us, you benefiting from us being your servants afterwards, doesn''t change that."
Asia nodded her head, "Akeno-senpai is right, I have felt happier and freer since you made me your Bishop than I ever was as a human."
"I feel the same as well." Xenovia said, "I have not been a part of the Peerage for very long, but I too feel less burdened. After the battle, when I was excommunicated and felt nothing but despair over the knowledge we learned, you took me into your household, even after how I acted towards you. Yes, me being the wielder of Durandal of course was a part of your decision-making process, but you didn''t force me to become your servant, you allowed me the choice."
"If you were only using us to beat Riser then, why did you make the offer to Xenovia? Why did you try so hard to save me from myself? If you just wanted all of us for what we could do for you, then getting new servants would have been easier, but you didn''t, only someone who genuinely loves others would do so much for them." Kiba argued, staring at the redhead resolutely.
"You guys," Rias said, still crying, "I don''t know what to say."
Issei pumped his fist, "Just stop saying that you''re a bad leader, Buchou. You''ve helped all of us one way or another, so you shouldn''t say anything about us helping you in return."
Rias smiled as she wiped her cheeks, "Issei, everyone, thank you, for believing in me for becoming my family." Rias then looked back at Sirzechs, "I don''t know if I can forgive you right now, Onii-chan, or if I will be able to trust you again."
Sirzechs expected this, Rias was a young girl of certain morals and principles, ones that sometimes clashed with the upheld ideals of demons. It was something he admired about his sister and wanted her to maintain for as long as possible, but also something that made him worry about her as she grew older.
"I know, Rias, and I will step back for as long as you need me to, until you are comfortable again." Sirzechs said.
Rias nodded her head, staring at her brother fully, "And you owe Natsuki an apology."
"If she is willing to hear me out, then I will give her one." Sirzechs then turned to Issei, "I know that cannot give you a fully genuine apology, but I am sorry Ise-kun, for the pain that what I have done has caused you."
"Uh, thanks, Sirzechs-sama." Issei said awkwardly before turning to the man''s sister. "Buchou, are we sure that''s a good idea? Natsuki would probably prefer that Sirzechs-sama doesn''t apologize at all if he''s not going to truly mean it."
Issei knew Natsuki better than most, and he knew that Natsuki was the type of person who preferred blunt honesty to pretty lies.
Rias sighed, "I know, but she deserves an apology."
Natsuki has to know that what she feels is valid and deserves some type of effort is being made by Sirzechs to right his wrongs. Rias thought.
A Few Hours Later
"Natsuki, how long are we going to stay here?" Lux asked, breaking the silence.
Natsuki sighed, "Until I''m no longer angry."
Lux hummed, "That could take several lifetimes. I have not known you long, but I know that you can certainly hold a grudge."
Natsuki laughed, but the sound was hollow, "Yeah, I can."
The Pawn was sitting on top of the abandoned mansion on the edge of Kuoh, staring at the skyline of the town and watching the sun set. She had been ignoring her cell phone, watching as it would light up with calls and text messages from her friends and Kushina with a blank expression. And to make sure that she could not be found, masked her Demonic energy, preventing anyone from teleporting to her location.
"I don''t think I''ll be able to be in the same room as that man without punching him in the face."
"I have felt similarly for some time, that Maou is a blight."
Natsuki clenched her fist, "Who knows how long Sirzechs has been manipulating my life from behind the scenes? All of this; coming to Kuoh, becoming a Devil, the Rating Game, it was all just Sirzechs trying to get Rias out of her engagement to Riser."
"It was, and despite my own anger, I must admit it was clever of him."
Natsuki scoffed, indignation rising within her, "Clever?"
"Yes, clever." Lux replied, "As he told his sister, as a Maou, Sirzechs is not allowed to show favoritism towards his family once he took the name Lucifer, he is supposed to remain neutral. By acting as he did, he ensured that Rias had enough time to build a strong Peerage, pushed back the wedding for as long as possible, and he did all of this while making Rias think that that this was due to her own merit and luck and without revealing his plotting to the other High-Class Devils. That Maou is far more devious and intelligent than I gave him credit for."
"Good for him." Natsuki muttered.
Lux sighed, "You know that you must go back at some point, lest they think you have gone rouge."
"I know." Natsuki threw her head back and groaned, kicking her legs out as they dangled over the roof. "I know that I do, and I will, I just don''t know how."
"I do not believe that Rias nor the other members of her Peerage knew about Sirzechs'' scheming. I could feel the shock and betrayal coming from the Gremory heir in waves when her brother admitted the truth."
"I know too, but I was just so angry that I accused Rias of having something to do with it. I have to apologize when I see her."
"You do, but Rias-senpai won''t hold it against you." Natsuki turned her head and saw Koneko standing behind her.
Was I so distracted that I didn''t pick up on her magical energy? Natsuki thought, "How''d you find me, Koneko."
Koneko walked across the roof, sitting down next to her senpai. "A person can block their magical signature, but you can''t block your scent so easily."
Natsuki huffed, a small smile appearing on her face, "I''ll take note of that for next time."
Koneko looked at the setting sun, "Sirzechs-sama told us what he did."
Natsuki glowered, "And I''m guessing he was pretty unapologetic about it all?"
"He was." Koneko said plainly.
Natsuki snorted, unsurprised that Sirzechs was so shameless about everything, and she hated how she could understand Sirzechs'' reasoning. If she was in Sirzechs'' position, Natsuki knows that she would have made the same if not similar choices, if it meant protecting someone she cared about.
"Did Rias send you?"
"No, Sirzechs wanted to speak to you and Aozora-san about something. Rias wanted to come, but I told her that would go instead."
Koneko did not mention how Akeno stared at her when Rias agreed and said that only Koneko should go out and search for Natsuki, not wanting to overwhelm the Pawn. The Queen was smiling, but Koneko could feel the hairs on her neck stand up as she felt the anger that was rolling off Akeno, and at the dangerous gleam in her eyes.
Natsuki looked at Koneko bewildered, "Why did you want to come instead?"
Koneko looked down at the ground below as she started to scratch her nails against the old roof tiles they were sitting on. "Hav-have I told you about how I became a Devil, Natsuki-senpai?"
"No, I don''t believe so." Natsuki said, knowing that she knew nothing about Koneko''s past.
Koneko hesitated for a moment before finding her courage, "I wasn''t a human when I was turned."
Koneko wasn''t human? Natsuki thought, her eyes widening slightly.
"I came from another race of supernaturals, and I was related to someone who committed a terrible crime against a Devil." Koneko said, gritting her teeth as a dark looked passed through her eyes, "That Devil was an important person and my relative had runaway and escaped, but the Higher ups wanted to punish someone, so I was brought to trial, and was going to be executed."
"What?! How is that fair?" Natsuki exclaimed.
Koneko shrugged, "It wasn''t, but people in power don''t care about what is and isn''t fair, they wanted an example to made. And when I was about to be executed, Rias stood up for me, she said that I shouldn''t be killed for the crimes of another, and that if I was allowed to live that she would make sure that I would never fall down the same path."
"So, Sirzechs convinced everyone that Rias should become your master and that she would be able to keep you in line." Natsuki said, seeing where the story was going.
Koneko nodded her head, "Th-the race that I come from gain powerful abilities once they mature. And while I am indebted to Rias for everything, I was under no illusion that if I had no potential or if anyone besides Rias had stood up for me, that Sirzechs-sama would have advocated for my life."
So even then, Sirzechs was moving things in Rias'' favor. "I''m sorry that happened to you, Koneko. I know it was hard for you to tell me this."
Koneko took a deep breath, "I... I wanted to tell you this, not because I wanted you to pity me, but because I know how it feels to have people only care because of what you can do for them."
I''ve learned to move past those feelings towards Sirzechs-sama, it wasn''t hard when I had more important things to think about back then. Koneko thought.
"Did you ever tell Rias how you felt or about why Sirzechs help you?" Natsuki asked.
Koneko shook her head, she could not tell Rias, not with how much the older girl looked up to and admired her older brother. She did not want to cause any strive between the siblings, she did not feel comfortable being so vulnerable with Rias, and because Koneko feared what Sirzechs'' reaction would. And after some time, it stopped mattering to Koneko as becoming Rias'' Rook was the best fate that could have befallen her.
"You can talk to me about your feelings if you ever feel like doing so." Natsuki said softly.
"This wasn''t how this was supposed to go." Koneko said as she looked away.
"Eh? What do you mean? You were trying to make me feel better, right? Well, you did, you were right; I do feel better knowing that someone else can relate and I want to be there for you if it ever becomes too much. So, thanks for being such a sweet kouhai, Koneko." Natsuki said before lifting her hand and patting Koneko''s head.
Koneko blushed, leaning into the touch, Natsuki was always warm and inviting to her despite her abrasive outside. It reminded Konkeo of sitting next to a roaring fire in winter. "You''re the worst, senpai."
Natsuki chuckled, continuing to pet Koneko, and she could have sworn she heard the younger girl purring like a cat, but knew better than to say that out loud. The two sat together in silence, watching as the sun continued to set and eventually disappearing and bringing the night sky and the moon into view.
Natsuki sighed as she stood up and stretched her arms, "Well, that''s enough sulking for me."
"You''re ready to go back?" Koneko asked.
Natsuki held her hand out towards the Rook and pull the girl to her feet, "I can''t avoid one of the four Maous forever, no matter how much I''d like to."
Koneko nodded her head as she met Natsuki''s gaze, "If you say so."
"Stay close, I''ll teleport us to Issei''s house."
"Are you sure you''re okay?" Koneko asked.
Natsuki looked at the moon as she spoke, "I''ve been better, but yeah, I''m fine."
Koneko nodded, placing her hand on Natsuki''s arm as a magic circle appeared below them, teleporting them to the Hyoudou resistance.
"So, what did you want to talk to us about?" Natsuki said tersely, opening glaring at Sirzechs.
Kushina pinched Natsuki''s arm, "Don''t be rude, Natsuki. Sirzechs-san has been kind enough to give you this opportunity, don''t act like a brat for no reason."
Natsuki furiously bit her lip, fighting and struggling to keep down the anger that wanted to explode from her. She hated that Kushina was under the effects of Sirzechs memory altering spell, but she knew it was necessary to keep Kushina from asking questions.
Natsuki and Kushina were sitting inside the kitchen of Natsuki''s apartment. After Natsuki had returned with Koneko, Sirzechs asked that they go to her apartment so that he could speak to her and her guardian privately. The children were in the living room, thoroughly distracted by the tv, having never used one this new.
Sirzechs continued to smile, ignoring Natsuki''s snarls. "I wanted to make an offer for Aozora-san and the orphanage."
"An offer?" Kushina asked.
"Yes, an offer." Sirzechs affirmed, "I wanted to propose that the Nitosh¨ Orphanage become the Kuoh Town Orphanage."
"What?" Natsuki and Kushina asked aloud, looking at the redhead across from them in shock and confusion.
"You have had issues getting assistance from the Catholic Church for years now, have you not? The organization does not want to waste money on such a poor and unimpressive town like Nitosh¨. Not to mention children running away and becoming homeless before the age of eighteen, and the police doing nothing to bring them back."
How does he know all of that? Kushina thought but could not deny Sirzechs'' words.
Nitosh¨ was known as a town of broken dreams, where people fade from society, it was a place where everyone had been beaten down and disillusioned before long. Kushina remembered being an orphan in the Nitosh¨ Orphanage and how people had mocked and belittled her when she grew up and took over the orphanage when the old matron died, but Kushina wanted to help the abandoned children of Nitosh¨ the same way she had been helped all those years ago.
But even with her optimism, Kushina realized that she just did not have the resources to truly make a difference. She had watched countless children leave her care only to fall into the darkness that seemed to permeate from the town, unable to make much of themselves due to being born without a silver spoon in their mouths.
It was why she pushed Natsuki to accept the offer that came from Sirzechs to become a student at Kuoh Academy, and Natsuki was not helping herself with her desire to help Kushina and the orphanage. The teenager had kept her promise of wanting to provide for her guardian and for the last few months had been sending money back.
The large amount startled Kushina, and when she asked, Natsuki had assured her that she was not doing anything illegal to obtain the money and taken an after-school job.
Natsuki had the drive and the intelligence, but the stain of being raised in Nitosh¨ would have followed her, would have crushed her once she had gotten out into the real world, but being a graduate of a Kuoh Academy, one of the top ten most prestigious schools in Asia, would open doors for her.
He really has been watching me for a long time. Natsuki thought angrily.
Kushina cleared her throat, "You are right, but how would that even be possible?"
"My family own some properties here in Kuoh, you could say." Sirzechs answered, his smile growing when he heard Natsuki snort. "And I know some people from the Vatican. They are willing to allow, due to Nitosh¨ and Kuoh''s close proximity to each other, the orphanage authority over both. You would operate here, taking over for the matron who works here, your yearly budget would increase, and would be able to bring children from Nitosh¨ to live and go to school here."
"The children would be acceptance to the academy?" Natsuki asked.
"Not just acceptance but full scholarships, similar to what you have, Natsuki-chan."
"I¡ I would have to be a fool not to accept your offer, but¡" Kushina looked over at Natsuki.
"Take the deal." Natsuki said.
"You won''t-"
"You''ve always wanted to help as many children as you can, and now you have the opportunity to make your dream a reality. I''ve never liked having things decided for me, and the Catholic Church even less, but what is happening is a good thing." Natsuki explained, looking at Kushina softly.
Kushina reached over and cupped the side of Natsuki''s face, "Thank you, sweetheart."
Natsuki blushed, looking away from Kushina, "I didn''t do anything."
Kushina made an amused noise, "Don''t be stubborn, Natsu-chan." Kushina then stood up, "I''m going to tell the children to good news."
"We can discuss the finer details later." Sirzechs said, watching as Kushina left the kitchen and kneeled in front of the children, facing them as she spoke.
"Why are you doing this?" Natsuki whispered once she was sure that the others could not hear them.
"Doing what?" Sirzechs asked knowingly.
Natsuki did not hide her glare, openly baring her teeth at the Maou.
Sirzechs held up his hand defensively, but was still smiling brightly at Natsuki. "Okay, okay. But to be serious, I was not the one who decided to do all of this, it was just easier to tell Aozora-san that it was me."
"Then who did?"
"It was Michael."
Natsuki''s eyebrows raised, "Michael? Like the Seraphim Angel, Michael?"
And the true leader of the Angels and all of Heaven.
Sirzechs chuckled at Natsuki''s expression, "The very same."
"Why would he do that? I don''t even know him and I''m a damn Devil, why would he want to do anything for someone related to me?"
"I can''t say for certain what Michael''s motivations are, but I assume it has to do with the recent revelation during your battle with Kokabiel along with Asia-chan and Xenovia-chan''s situations."
Natsuki clenched her jaw, "So, you think he''s trying to buy my silence? Or that he feels bad that Asia and Xenovia had to be excommunicated?"
Sirzechs shook his head, "Michael is not the malicious and devious type."
"Valper told us how Michael was the one who authorized the Holy Sword Project. Even if he was not aware of what Valper was truly doing, that doesn''t change the fact that he holds some culpability in it."
It did not matter that Michael was supposed to be the leader of the side of good, that did not mean that he could not be capable of evil things in pursuit of goodness.
Maybe I''m being biased, but still, I can''t trust some guy I don''t know. You don''t get things in life for free or because someone just wants to be nice. Natsuki thought.
"That is true, and you can bring up your grievances with Michael when he arrives."
Natsuki looked at Sirzechs confused, "Speak to Michael?"
"During the conference."
"I suppose." Natsuki said quietly but doubted that such an opportunity would arise.
Sirzechs'' smile then dropped as he became serious, Natsuki-chan, I wanted to apl-"
"Sirzechs-sama, I don''t want your apology, especially because I know you don''t mean it."
It seems Issei-kun was entirely correct. Sirzechs thought, "But you were quite upset earlier."
"I was." Natsuki agreed, "But I would rather not be lied to my face, I''m sure you realize already but it''s not something I enjoy. I''m still angry, you used me like a puppet for your own ends, you played with my life, I''m still angry but I understand why you did it."
"Thank you." Sirzechs said.
"I still don''t like you." Natsuki admitted without shame or fear, "You made me become a Devil and you''re still hiding things from me for some reason."
"I am, and I maintain that I am doing so for your own good. But I will try to stay out of your life from now on."
"But will interfere if you believe that it''s necessary?" Natsuki asked knowingly.
"I will." Sirzechs said truthfully.
Natsuki leaned her head against her chair, smirking at Sirzechs devilishly. "So, how mad was your precious Ria-tan with you?"
Sirzechs'' face immediately fell, and tears started pouring from his eyes, "She wants space from me! Can you believe that?!"
Natsuki met Kushina''s gaze from over Sirzechs'' shoulder, seeing the woman staring at them both, confused and slightly disturbed by Sirzechs'' extreme reaction.
Natsuki shrugged her shoulder, pretending not to know why he was suddenly acting this way.
It''s a miracle that Devil kind has lasted this long with such weird leaders.
A New Kouhai
A Week Later
Natsuki was not sure how to feel as she watched the movers carry furniture into what was now the new Kuoh Town Orphanage.
Her reluctance had nothing to do with the move itself, but the location that was chosen; the abandoned church in the center of town, the one that Raynare had used as her base of operation and had killed Asia inside of.
Even though this place has lost a lot of its Holiness, it still makes me feel uncomfortable. Now I know why Sirzechs told me it would be better for me to keep living in my apartment rather than moving in with everyone. Natsuki thought.
"Hey, Natsuki." Natsuki turned around when she heard Issei calling her name, seeing him and the rest of the ORC with him.
"What are you guys doing here?" Natsuki asked.
"We wanted to see if Aozora-san and the children needed any help with the move." Rias answered, "And I wanted you to come with us afterwards to the clubroom, I have something very serious to show you and the other new members of the Peerage."
"That doesn''t sound ominous at all." Natsuki drawled.
Rias smirked, which did nothing to change Natsuki''s opinion that Rias was being purposefully vague to mess with them.
You really did end up with a cruel mistress. Lux said inside her mind, causing Natsuki to snort.
"Natsuki, there you are, you didn''t tell me your friends were coming today, I would have made something for them if I had known." Kushina said as she exited the church and saw Natsuki standing in front of the rest of the ORC.
"I didn''t know they were coming." Natsuki replied.
"There is no need to make anything for us, Aozora-san. We only came to see if you and the children needed help." Rias voiced.
"Oh, well Sirzechs-san has hired very good thorough movers, so I don''t think that is necessary." Kushina stated, "And you all can call me Kushina. Come, come inside."
Kushina led the group inside the newly renovated orphanage, telling them to sit as she disappeared up the stairs. The ground floor now looked bigger than it had before and had been cleared of the pews, now having a sprawling living room and three walls that separated it from the dining room and kitchen.
Kushina had told the group to sit down in the living room as she went to the kitchen to get them all something to drink.
"Wow, this place looks way different than it did before." Issei said as he looked around the new orphanage in awe.
Kiba chuckled, "That''s because it was abandoned and falling apart before."
It also doesn''t hurt that there are no Fallen Angels and rouge exorcists around trying to kill us. Kiba thought.
"But is it still supposed to feel so uncomfortable?" Issei asked, shuddering as it felt like a stone was sitting on his shoulders and like some of his energy had been taken from him the further, they walked into the building.
"The orphanage is being sponsored by the Church; it also doesn''t help that this building used to be a baptized church." Akeno explained as they all began to sit down on the couches and chairs.
Holy energy, much like Demonic energy, tended to linger in places, objects, and in people for prolonged periods of time, only slowly losing its strength and permeance.
Xenovia sighed as she heard this, "I keep forgetting that as a Devil now, that building like this feels so oppressive and cold."
She had once found warmth and comfort in holy places, even ones that were abandoned and desolate, but now her new body rejected such things. And this feeling grew worse as Xenovia was reminded of how she became a Devil in the first place.
"I went through the same thing when I became a Devil. It''s almost impossible pray to God or read the Bible now without hurting myself." Asia said, smiled at her reassuringly, ignoring the sting the flashed through her skull at the mention of ''God.''
"I too miss praying." Xenovia said, her shoulders falling as she remembered that even if she could pray, her prayers would not be going to God but instead Michael.
"You pray?" Kushina asked, hearing Xenovia''s words as she reentered the living room, a tray with glasses of water in her hands.
"Uh, yes, Az-Kushina-san." Xenovia answered, not expecting the woman to have heard her, "I- is something wrong with that?"
Kushina glanced at Natsuki, who had to fight the urge to roll her eyes and scoff, before putting the tray down on the coffee table. "No, there is nothing wrong with prayer, I, myself am a Christian and some of the children are religious too. I just, I just didn''t expect Natsuki to befriend someone with those kinds of beliefs."
Natsuki crossed her arms, "I''m not some discriminating asshole, Kushina-sama."
"Natsuki, you''re an asshole ninety-five percent of the time." Issei muttered, causing the others to laugh while Natsuki glared at him.
Xenovia turned to Natsuki, "You were quite discriminating when we first met, Natsuki-san."
Natsuki glared at Xenovia from the corner of her eye, "Because you were being a bitch to everyone in the group, or did you forget how much you looked down on us that day? Must be nice to have such a short memory."
Xenovia looked down at the floor, she could not say that Natsuki was wrong, she did not like any of them when they first met simply because they were Devils, as everything she thought she knew Devils, painted them as cruel and evil.
Kushina smacked the back of Natsuki''s head, "Stop acting so rude, Natsu. If you''re friends with her now, then she must have apologized to you and the others. I know you; you wouldn''t be sitting here right now if you didn''t accept it, so leave the girl alone."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, but did not argue with Kushina, leaning back into the couch, "Yes, Kushina-sama."
Wow, there''s someone who can tell Natsuki what to do. Issei thought he wanted to make a joke about this, but he knew that Natsuki would get him back for it later.
Before long, one of the children ran into the room, their skin flushed and sweaty from exertion, smiling brightly as he spotted Natsuki. "Natsuki Onee-chan! There you are! I need to you to help us get our ball down from a tree."
Kushina put her hands on her hips as she stared Izo down, "Izo, what do you say when you see that we have guests?"
Izo quickly bowed to Natsuki''s friends, "Sorry! It is nice to see you again, welcome to our home."
Rias chuckled, "Thank you for having us, Izo-kun."
Natsuki rolled her eyes when she saw Izo blush at Rias'' smile, "This is the third time today."
Izo shrugged, feeling no sympathy for the older girl. "You''re the only one tall enough to reach the ball when it flies so high. You should have been shorter if you didn''t want this to be your job."
Natsuki smacked the back of Izo''s head, ignoring his shout of indignation as they left the others and went to the backyard. When she came back less than three minutes later, Natsuki saw that Kushina had gotten old photo albums and was now showing them to the Peerage.
Issei grinned widely at Natsuki when she returned, "We''re looking at some very cute pictures of you, Natsu-chan."
He showed her the photo album in his hands, showing her a picture of herself from when she was six riding an old bicycle, her eyes were visibly wide as she leaning to the side instead of balancing properly.
Natsuki raised an eyebrow, "Okay? I''m I supposed to care?"
"Damn it! Yes! You were making fun of me when my okasan showed my baby pictures!" Issei growled.
"Because you were naked in almost all of them, unlike you, I knew how to keep my clothes on." Natsuki said as she sat back down.
Koneko looked up from a picture of Natsuki as a toddler walking around with a toy shovel, "You used to be cute, senpai. What happened?"
Natsuki stared at Koneko blankly, "I went through puberty. Don''t worry, little one, I''m sure it will happen to you any day now."
Akeno giggled when Koneko glared at Natsuki and pinched her thigh, causing Natsuki to yelp. "Don''t worry, Natsuki-chan, I still think you''re cute."
"Why are you saying that while looking a picture of me taking a bath?" Natsuki asked, looking at Akeno suspiciously as she pointed to the picture of her as a baby that was in her hands.
"Well, I was wondering if you still have that adorable birth mark on your butt?" Akeno asked, her smile widening.
Natsuki did not respond to Akeno''s question, ignoring the sound of her giggling as she looked away.
Rias drew Natsuki''s attention away from the other girl when she spoke, "Natsuki, when did you meet missionaries?"
Rias was looking at a picture of Kushina and Natsuki with a bunch of other children that she did not recognize, but what drew her eye was the two adults standing behind the children and next to Kushina.
The two were dressed in formal clothes, but what clued Rias into their profession was the gold cross necklaces around their necks, and the beaded bracelets around their hands. As part of her education as the heir of a noble house, she was taught to recognize the signs that could denote a person''s race or affiliation.
The beaded bracelets were protection charms that are given to lower ranking members of the church, who had no magical abilities or aptitude for combat when they would travel to various parts of the world.
Natsuki clenched her fists when she saw the picture in Rias'' hand, "I did."
Rias raised an eyebrow, waiting for Natsuki to continue, but when she realized that she would not further elaborate, Rias turned to Kushina.
Kushina cleared her throat, glancing at Natsuki again. "As you know, our orphanage is sponsored by the Catholic Church, and every so often members of the Church come to talk to the kids. They pray with them, play games, read them Bible stories, teach them about God."
"If the Church comes to visit, why did they not feel the need to fix the orphanage before, if they knew it was worn down?" Issei asked.
Before Kushina could answer, Izo ran back into the room, "Natsuki Onee-chan! The ball''s on the roof now."
Natsuki took a moment to speak, "How the hell did you guys throw the ball onto the roof?"
Natsuki did not look at anyone as she left the room, and Kushina looked at Natsuki''s back worryingly as she did.
"Uh, Kushina-san? Why does Natsuki not like the Church?" Issei awkwardly asked.
Kushina looked away from the group as she started to pick up their empty glasses, "When that picture was taken, it was the first time that Natsuki was there for those meetings. Natsuki used to be religious, you know?"
"She was?" Issei asked, trying to imagine the Natsuki he knew ever being a believer in God.
Kushina laughed but it was hollow, "She was. I mean, I raised almost all of the children who come through my doors to believe, but for Natsuki, God was a comfort for her."
Kushina remembered how Natsuki would pray with her in the morning when she was younger, of the rosary she used to own, and how Natsuki had thrown it away, destroying it in a fit of rage.
"What led to her no longer believing?" Asia asked.
Kushina sighed, "The missionaries said some truly cruel things to Natsuki, and it just... it just broke her. That''s why she can be so hostile towards religion."
Each of the Devils was wondering just what the missionaries could have said to Natsuki that could have permanently destroyed her faith.
But no one could gather the strength to voice this question by the time Natsuki returned to the living room and the topic was soon forgotten by everyone, except for of a certain Queen, blond Bishop, and blue haired swordswoman.
A Few Hours Later
The Peerage were now on the ground floor of the old school building, standing in front of a door that had a sign which was labeled, ''Sealed classroom.'' This room was so securely closed that no one could see inside and was also covered in with tape that was plastered onto it with magic seals that had been carved into the wood.
"So, they''re here?" Issei asked.
"Your other Bishop is in here?" Asia asked.
Rias sighed, "Yes. Last night, my older brother insisted that I release the seal and let my Bishop out. I''m not sure why, but my Bishop refused the offer."
"You still haven''t explained why your other Bishop is being kept in here, Buchou?" Natsuki asked.
Rias had explained to the newer members of the Peerage that due to various circumstances; the Bishop could not participate in the Rating Game between the Phoenix household and the battle against Kokabiel. That they had a dangerous ability, that not even Rias could control, so she was ordered by the Maous and other nobles to seal her Bishop.
Rias sighed again, "The reason they refused my brother''s offer and why you four have not met them yet is twofold; first, is that their powers are difficult to control as I said before, and secondly, because of their powers and life experiences, they choice spend all of their time indoors, refusing to come outside due to fear."
"So, they''re a shut-in?" Issei asked surprised.
Akeno smiled, "Such a shame really. Especially as this child is the largest earner we have."
"No way! You can''t be serious!"
"Through a computer, the kid would take special contracts from humans," Kiba added, "Theses contracts are usually from people who don''t want to meet us."
"That makes sense; not everyone would want to be in the presence of a Devil, even one they''re making a deal with. And the internet makes it possible communicate with anyone you want." Natsuki said aloud.
Honestly, making deals through my phone would be better than having to talk to some people who want to make a contract with me. Natsuki thought.
Rias took a breath, lifting her hand and breaking the seal on the door, "Alright, let''s see how this goes."
Rias used her hand to push the door open and the second she did, a high-pitched scream emitted from inside.
"Noooooooooooooooooooooooo!"
Rias was not surprised, but sighed as she opened the door wider, allowing herself and the rest of the group to enter. "Hello. I am glad to see you are looking well.
The room was decorated in a cute manner; with stuffed dolls lining the shelves, ruffled blinds that were covering the windows completely, a pink and purple circular rug in the middle of the room. There was no bed, but instead a singular coffin that sat in the corner of the room.
And sitting down on the floor was the room''s occupant; a bishoujo wearing the Kuoh Academy girls uniform with noble looks, platinum blond hair that was styled in a short bob cut with several small strands of fringe covering their forehead, pointed ears, and pinkish-violet eyes who looked like a doll.
Their back was facing the rest of the Peerage, tears falling from their eyes as their body shook from fear.
"I don''t understand what''s going on." The Bishop cried out.
"Ara, ara, the seal was removed, you know? So, you''re able to go outside now." Akeno said.
More tears fell from their face, "I don''t want to leave, it''s too scary outside!"
"What? She''s just a little girl!" Issei exclaimed, "And look! She looks a lot like Asia! Does that mean that all Bishops have to be pretty blondes or something?"
Kiba chuckled at Issei''s words and the way he was now looking the newly revealed Bishop.
Issei frowned as he turned to Kiba, "What''s so funny?"
Rias turned her head sideways as she spoke, "This child is a boy."
Issei froze, slowly turning around to face Rias, "Eh? Uh, wait. What did you just say?"
"Appearance-wise, this kid looks like a girl, but I can assure you that they''re a little boy."
Issei''s mouth dropped open, "No, no, no matter how you look at it. It''s a girl, Buchou! Eh? Seriously?"
Issei then looked at Natsuki, pointing at her, "Is it a Natsuki situation? Does he have, like, more parts down there?"
Natsuki glared at the other Pawn, snarling as she looked like she was going to beat Issei to death.
Akeno chuckled, inadvertently saving Issei''s life, "No, it''s nothing like that, he just likes to dress up like a girl. It''s a hobby of his."
Akeno-san said that calmly. Hobby of dressing in female clothes? T-Then this kid was not wearing that uniform because he''s a girl but-because of a hobby? Issei thought.
"Eeeeeeeeeeeeeeeh!?" Issei shrieked due to his shock.
The young boy in front of the group jumped back at Issei''s shouting, "Eeek! I''m sorry, I''m sorry!"
Seriously! Is he a boy even like this!? No, no matter how you look at it, that part of him was more like a bishoujo than even some girls! I seriously didn''t get it! Even the voice was like a girl! He''s even so small too!
Issei fell to his knees, holding his head in his hands, "Is it all right to have such a cruel story? He perfectly looks like a bishojo, for him to be a man... for him to have a penis on him. What a waste."
Koneko slapped the back of Issei''s head, knocking him to the floor, "...No vulgar words around Gasper."
But Issei was undeterred, "It''s an even more painful story that he has a hobby of wearing girl''s clothes! The shock is too huge! Even though he''s a shut-in, he has a hobby of wearing girl''s clothes!"
"B-B-B-But girl''s clothes are super cute." The younger boy argued, stammering as he struggled to make eye contact with Issei.
Natsuki rolled her eyes, trying to move the conversation past Issei''s horror, "Koneko called you Gasper, is that your name?"
Gasper to one look at Natsuki, shrieking as he threw himself into Rias'' arms, burying his face in neck.
"Wow, your face scared him, Natsuki-senpai." Koneko said.
"Natsuki-san does make very menacing expressions I have noticed." Xenovia added, "But you were not glaring at him or anything just now, so his reaction seems surprising."
"Why does this keep happening? I look like a normal person." Natsuki mumbled to herself.
This was not the first time that Natsuki''s appearance had scared or unnerved other people. Her sharp facial features, tall stature, dark red eyes, her obviously mixed race and foreign appearance, and her aloof and closed off demeanor, intimidated most.
And while she was used to people calling her a delinquent, being accusing of being a Yakzua, or even her classmates calling her a Dark Princess and black hearted, Natsuki still hated the comparisons.
Asia placed a hand on Natsuki''s arm reassuringly, "It''s okay, Natsuki-san. Even if everyone else thinks you''re scary, we don''t. They just don''t know how nice you are and are too focused on your face."
That doesn''t make me feel better, Asia. Natsuki thought, her shoulder slumping as she felt the smaller girl''s words hit her like a physical blow.
Rias shook her head as she turned back to Gasper, "Now Gasper-kun, I wanted to introduce you to my new servants who joined us while you were in here. My Pawns, Hyoudou Issei and Sukehiro Natsuki; my second Knight, Xenovia Quarta; and like you, my second Bishop, Asia Argento."
Before they could greet him properly, Gasper shrieked, "Eeeeek, the members increased by a lot!"
"It did." Rias chuckled, "Now you four, I want to introduce you to Gasper Vladi. He is my Bishop and for the time being, he is a Kuoh Academy first year student. And before I had the honor of turning him into a Devil, this little guy was half human, half vampire."
"He''s a real vampire?" Asia asked in shock.
"Like a bloodsucker? Serious?" Issei exclaimed.
I guess it shouldn''t be surprising that in a world where Devils, Angels, Fallen Angels, demon dogs, and dragons exist, vampires would too. Natsuki thought, looking at her new kouhai differently than before.
"Gasper-kun, will you please come outside with us?" Rias asked sweetly.
Gasper shook his head vigorously, "No! I don''t want to go; please don''t make me!"
Issei frowned at this, bending down next to Rias as he slowly reached out to hold Gasper''s arm, wanting to pull the younger boy out of the room. "C''mon, you heard the lady; let''s go."
Gasper flinched at Issei''s touch, yelping as a flash of purple light emanated from his body and covered the room. Once this happened, Gasper shook off Issei hand and ran to the corner of the room, shacking as tears fell from his eyes.
"What the hell?" Natsuki exclaimed, looking around and seeing that everyone but was frozen in place, and that her [Ethereal Domination] activated subconsciously.
"This must be because of his Sacred Gear." Lux spoke aloud.
"He has a Scared-" Natsuki cut herself off when she saw that Gasper''s eyes had changed in appearance, his pinkish-violet eyes now covered with black lines that intersected at Gasper''s pupils.
"Eekk! Y-you c¡ªca-can mo-move?!" Gasper shouted, shaking even more than before.
Natsuki walked towards Gasper wanting to calm him down, but stopped when she saw that his shaking had grown worse, starting to hyperventilate with each step she took.
"Sorry, Gasper. I''ll stay here, see everything is good." Natsuki said, putting her hands up in a gesture of compliance.
Gasper''s eyes returned to normal, and he was no longer breathing heavily, but he still looked at Natsuki wearily.
"I think your King may have been understating this boy''s antisocial behavior." Lux said and Natsuki could not help but agree with her.
"What the? Natsuki, how did you get over there? And how did he get over there too?" Issei asked, for him and everyone else, no time had passed, and it was as if Natsuki and Gasper had just instantly moved.
Kiba sighed, "It looks like he did it again."
"Did what?" Xenovia asked.
"Used his Scared Gear." Natsuki answered.
Issei looked at Natsuki confused, "Sacred Gear?"
"[Forbidden Balor View]." Akeno voiced, "Also known as the Evil Eye that Stops the World. It''s Gasper-kun''s Scared Gear, and when he gets too excited, he can stop of the time of everything in his field of vision for fixed intervals of time."
"What kind of broken ass power is that?" Natsuki asked aloud, surprised that such a shy and timid boy could have such a power Sacred Gear.
Akeno raised an eyebrow as she smirked at Natsuki, "This coming from the girl who can absorb magic, which is probably why you were the only one of us who was able to move?"
"She makes a good point." Lux said in Natsuki''s mind as the girl pursed her lips, acquiescing to Akeno.
"Because Gasper-kun can''t control his Sacred Gear, by the order of Maou Sirzechs-sama, he was sealed away here as a precautionary measure."
Rias sighed, "On top of that, his ability seems to grow stronger unconsciously, so there''s a distinct possibility it could become a Balance Breaker."
"Isn''t that a good thing?" Issei asked before realizing Gasper disappeared again.
"He''s inside that box by the windows." Natsuki voiced when she saw Issei looking around, once again being the only person unaffected by Gasper''s Sacred Gear.
"I don''t like it when talk about me like I''m not here. Why can''t you just ignore that I''m alive like normal?!" Gasper yelled from inside a cardboard box.
"How did he even get in there?" Asia asked.
Rias looked at the box with a deadpanned stare, "Gasper-kun''s potential would be a good thing if he could control his powers. Like Akeno said, he only uses his powers unconsciously, when his emotions flare up, so it seen as nothing but a huge problem by everyone else. But I was recently evaluated by the higher ups and judged that I should be able to control Gasper now, because you, Natsuki, and Yuuto have achieved Balance Breaker."
Although, I feel they are giving me too much credit for that. Rias thought sourly.
As if she could hear Rias'' thoughts, Natsuki spoke, "But only Kiba unlocked his Balance Break and can use it willingly. Issei and I only did so during the Ratings Game because of different requirements; they''re incomplete."
"That doesn''t matter to the higher ups, all they care about is that you and Issei were both able to achieve Balance Breaker while under my authority. The semantics of it all is irrelevant, they expect Gasper to achieve it too."
"It also doesn''t help that in Gasper''s case he was revived with a Mutation Piece." Kiba added.
"A Mutation Piece? I thought they were rare and that you used the one given to you by Sirzechs-sama on Natsuki?" Issei asked, remembering the conversation they had about Evil Pieces when he and Natsuki first became Devils.
"For High Class Devils, one in ten Devils possesses a single Mutation Piece. It''s an irregularity born when the Evil Piece system was created, it''s kind of like a bug, but was kept for fun and because of the strength it gives. Gasper-kun is the one who I used that piece on. The Mutation Piece that I used on Natsuki was a gift from Sirzechs that he had gotten from Ajuka Beelzebub-sama, one of the four Maous and the creator of the Evil Piece system. Although, I now know why my brother gave me the piece so flippantly." Rias said, both her and Natsuki frowning when she mentioned Sirzechs and his involvement in the latter''s life.
Rias then sighed, "As his Mutation Piece dictates, Gasper-kun is strong, judging by ability, he could be ranked as coming second only to Akeno in the Peerage in terms of magical output. And even though Gasper-kun is a half vampire, he is from a pureblooded vampire family with a good lineage and has a powerful Sacred Gear because of his human half. He is well-endowed with the abilities of vampires, and he excels in human magic wielded as well. So, you can see why he would not have been made a Bishop with just one or two Evil Pieces."
Okay, this kid really is fucking broken. Natsuki thought, "Since he is half vampire, can he walk in the sunlight?"
Rias nodded her head, "He is a Daywalker, so he has no problem with the sun. However, he does dislike it."
"No! I hate the daylight! It would be better if the sun disappeared!" Gasper shouted strongly, proving Rias'' point.
"You don''t attend class either, right? If you don''t control your power and open yourself up, then can you really say you''re living?" Issei asked, stepping closer to Gasper''s box.
The box Gasper was in shook, "No! I''m fine in this cardboard box! Everything outside of it, is my personal enemy! Why can''t you just let me live in this box forever?!"
"Does he need blood?" Natsuki asked, feeling her exasperation rising.
"He doesn''t crave it as often as full-blooded vampires, but he does need it. I supply him blood every ten days, but like with sunlight, Gasper-kun doesn''t like blood." Rias answered.
"I hate blood!" Gasper shouted.
"... He''s a good for nothing vampire." Koneko said plainly.
"Uwaaaaaaah! Koneko-chan is a meanieeee!"
"Damm, Koneko-chan, no first-year camaraderie? You''re so merciless." Issei asked jokingly.
Koneko crossed her arms, "He doesn''t deserve my kindness with how much trouble he causes."
Akeno looked at her phone and when she saw the time, she turned to Rias, "Buchou, I think it''s time for us to go."
"Yes, you''re right." Rias said before speaking to the rest of the Peerage, "For the time being, till I come back, Ise, Natsuki, Asia, Koneko, Xenovia, I''ll leave Gasper''s training to you. Akeno and I will be going to the meeting place for the leaders'' summit. And Yuuto, it seems Onii-sama wants to hear in detail about your Balance Breaker so you should accompany us."
"Yes, Buchou." The Devils said in unison.
"Good." Rias said as Akeno formed a transportation circle behind them and Kiba moved next to her.
Unauthorized usage: this tale is on Amazon without the author''s consent. Report any sightings.
Akeno turned her head and looked at the cardboard box in the corner with a small smile, "Gasper-kun, you should start getting used to the outside, you know?"
"Akeno Onee-samaaaaaaa! Please don''t say stuff like thaaaaaaaat!" Gasper shrieked.
"Ara ara, that''s troubling. Natsuki-chan, I''ll leave it to you."
Natsuki raised an eyebrow, "What the fuck am I supposed to do?"
"Don''t pretend that you''re not good with kids, we''ve all seen you with your client''s children and with the children in the orphanage." Akeno grinned.
Natsuki looked at Gasper''s box from the corner of her eye, wearily, knowing that dealing with the young boy would not be as easy as the other children she had taken care of.
Not to mention, those kids are all younger than Gasper. Natsuki thought.
Soon the trio of Devils disappeared from the room, leaving a nervous Gasper to his fate.
Xenovia stepped forward, opening the top of Gasper''s box, "I''ve always wanted to fight a vampire, you guys should leave his training to me."
"Eeeeeeeeek! N-N-N-N-No way, I don''t want to fight against the user of the Holy Sword Durrandaaaaal! I-I''ll be destroyed!" Gasper cried out.
"Don''t scream, Gaspar. If you like, shall I prepare a cross and holy water, and attack you with garlic instead, if you don''t want me to use my Holy Sword?" Xenovia said, trying to give him a reassuring smile, but this along with her words only served to terrify the vampire even more.
"Eeeeeeeeeek! Garlic, noooooooooo!"
It may have been bad luck for him to have met Xenovia. Issei thought, remembering how Xenovia used to be an agent of the Church with experience in exorcising Devils.
A Few Hours Later
"Hey, start running. If you are a Daywalker then you should be able to run in the day." Xenovia said as she chased Gasper.
"Eeeeeeek! Don''t chase me while swinging the Durandaaaaaaal!" Gasper yelled, trying desperately to stay as far away from the swordswoman.
The sun had started to set as Xenovia chased Gasper with Durandal, the Holy Sword emanating a holy aura that sent chills down the spines of all the Devils within its vicinity.
"It just looks like she''s gone vampire hunting." Natsuki said dryly.
Gasper soon tripped over his on foot, falling face first into the ground. When he turned his head to look up at Xenovia, tears could be seen in the corners of his eyes, "Why do you have to be so mean to me?!"
Xenovia sighed as she implanted Durandal into the ground, "A healthy mind lives in a healthy body. Trust me, you won''t think I''m so mean when you''re stronger."
"At least she looks like she''s enjoying herself." Issei said, smiling awkwardly.
"That''s true, it seems like she really enjoys yelling at people." Asia added.
"I can''t do this anymore!" Gasper yelled, starting to openly cry, "What you say doesn''t matter if my legs don''t work!"
"...Gya-kun, if you eat this, you''ll feel better." Koneko said as she walked up to Gasper, holding three knobs of garlic out to him.
"No way! Are you trying to kill me!" Gasper jumped.
Now it became Koneko chasing Gasper, telling him not to be so fussy as she tried to feed the garlic to him.
"C''mon, Gya-kun, you can wash it down with holy water."
"Koneko-san seems to be having fun too." Asia said.
"Not in a good way." Natsuki said as they watched Koneko bully the younger boy.
"Who knew Koneko-chan would ever care enough to tease someone?" Issei said, surprised by the scene in front of them. "And why is she calling him Gya-kun?"
"Okay that''s enough." Natsuki sighed, standing between Gasper and Koneko, allowing Gasper to hide behind her. "You and Xenovia have had your fun, but none of this is helping Gasper."
Xenovia frowned, "What do you mean? Rias said we have to train Gasper, that is what we''re doing."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "What''s the point of Gasper getting physically stronger if he''s too afraid to go outside, and uses his powers with no control?"
"I suppose that''s a good point." Xenovia relented.
"It looks like you guys are having fun." The group turned and saw Saji walking towards them.
Issei smiled, "What''s up, Saji."
"I heard that Rias had finally released her dangerous Bishop, so I wanted to see them for myself." Saji said before catching sight of Gasper behind Natsuki, "Another pretty blonde?"
Natsuki rolled her eyes, "Don''t get your hopes up, Saji, the Bishop behind me is a crossdressing boy."
Saji fell to his knees, completely heartbroken, "A boy? Why have I been forsaken?"
Issei nodded his head, "Trust me, I know exactly how you feel."
Natsuki ignored the conversation between Saji and Issei as she turned her head to look at the boy behind her. "Hey, Gasper."
Gasper flinched at the sound of Natsuki''s voice, trembling as he met her steely gaze. "Y-y-yes?"
"You like video games, right?" Natsuki asked.
"I-I do."
"How about I make you a deal."
"A deal?"
Natsuki nodded her head, "I will buy you whatever video game you want, if I can come to your room and meditate with you."
"Really?" Gasper asked, looking at the Pawn with surprise and suspicion.
"Yeah, throwing you into the deep end is not working for you, I''m sure Rias and the other have already tried that."
Gasper looked down, "They have."
For years, the Devils of the Gremory Peerage have been trying to help Gasper overcome his fear of people and the outside world, only for none of their efforts to be successful.
"Then we will take baby steps and move at your pace. You''re already doing a surprisingly decent job, so don''t feel bad about that."
"I-I am?"
"You are." Natsuki said, "I mean, you''ve been outside for hours, allowing Xenovia to run you ragged when you could have used your Sacred Gear to escape. That''s proof that you''re trying, even if it doesn''t feel like it to you."
Gasper blushed at Natsuki''s subtle praise, realizing both that he had been outside and around people longer than he has in a long time and that he judged Natsuki prematurely.
Was she human before she died? The magic coming from her doesn''t feel like that of a reincarnated Devil, maybe it''s her Sacred Gear? Gasper thought quizzically.
Natsuki''s head immediately shot up as she looked to the right, towards the trees at the edge of the ORC clubhouse as she felt a magic presence suddenly appear. "Who''s there?"
A chuckle was heard as a person stepped out of the shadows, revealing the form of a familiar Fallen Angel. "It seems the servants of the Maou''s family are out here playing. That''s just so sweet."
"Azazel!" Issei exclaimed, glaring at the Fallen Angel.
"Hey, Sekiryuutei, you''re looking good." Azazel said with a smirk.
Everyone was dubiously staring at the Fallen, and with a single word from Issei, the atmosphere completely changed.
Xenovia pulled her sword out of the ground and pointed it in Azazel''s direction. Asia hid behind Issei while he summoned his [Boosted Gear] to protect her.
Why is the Governor of the Fallen Angels in a place like this!? Issei thought.
Despite his shock, Saji was also able to summon his Sacred Gear, "Hy-Hyoudou, by Azazel you mean-!"
Issei nodded his head, "I am serious, Saji. I have met this guy plenty of times."
"Calm down, guys. He''s not here to fight." Natsuki called out.
Unlike everyone else, Natsuki was the only one not posed to fight or hide behind anyone, she simply stared at Azazel with a blank expression.
"Natsuki! He''s a Fallen Angel!" Issei exclaimed.
"And he''s the leader of the Fallen." Natsuki added, "He''s here for the leaders'' summit, remember? And even then, fighting back won''t matter; he''s Vali''s boss."
The memory of the White Dragon Emperor flashed through their minds. No one could deny that Vali was powerful, so it only made sense to think that whoever Vali took orders from would be stronger than him.
Azazel chuckled, "Natsuki''s right; I''m not here to fight. And no matter what you did you wouldn''t win against me, but you don''t have anything to fear, I''m not the type of person who likes to bully the lower classes. Anyway, where is that Holy Demonic Sword user? I came by to pay him a visit."
Issei growled, "You''re not getting Kiba! I won''t let you, bastard!"
Azazel ignored Issei as he looked around, "Aw, the Holy Demonic Sword user isn''t here? How boring."
He then looked at the vampire who was hiding behind Natsuki, "You are the possessor of the [Forbidden Balor View, right? You know, this type of Sacred Gear can wind up becoming extremely dangerous if the user''s capacity is too low. As a support type Sacred Gear, if you can supplement the deficient aspects, it should be fine but now that I mention it, the research of Sacred Gears by Devils hasn''t progressed much."
Azazel then took a few steps closer, peering into both of Gasper''s eyes and causing Gasper to tremble in fear despite the lack of killing intent coming from the Fallen.
"Back off, Azazel." Natsuki growled, blocking Gasper fully with her body.
Azazel grinned, "I didn''t take you for a mother hen, Natsuki."
Natsuki''s eyes narrowed, "You''re scaring the kid, so like I said; back off."
Azazel continued to smile, doing as Natsuki said and not moving another inch in her and Gasper''s direction, instead moving his attention to Saji. "And you''ve got the Black Dragon Pulse, [Absorption Line], right? During this little training session, you should connect with the vampire so you can drain the excess of his Sacred Gear. It will run less wild that way."
Saji had a complicated look on his face as he looked from Azazel to his [Absorption Line, "M-My Sacred Gear, it can suck the power of other''s Sacred Gears as well? I thought it simply absorbs the opponent''s power and weakens them."
"Don''t tell me you didn''t know that! Have we gotten to a point where recent Sacred Gear holders don''t know the power of their own Sacred Gears well enough?" Azazel said with a laugh, an amused expression appearing on his face. "Your Scared Gear holds the power of one of the legendary Five Dragon Kings, the Prison Dragon, Vritra. It scatters the power of whatever comes into contact with it, of course, attaching itself to something else for a brief period of time is another benefit.
"This thing is more badass than I thought." Saji whispered before looking at Azazel, "Does this mean the line on my side, for example, I can connect it to Hyoudou or some other person? And then the power will flow into Hyoudou?"
"Yeah, if you grow, the number of lines you can make will also increase. And if you do that, the output of your absorption will increase many times as well."
Saji became quiet after this, more than astonished by what Azazel had just revealed to him about his Sacred Gear.
Azazel then smirked, "Although, a faster and more simply way to go about training would be to have the vampire drink Sekiryuutei or Kogane Ry¨± K¨g¨''s blood."
Issei sneered, "Hope you don''t mean me, because I don''t do vampire bites."
"Don''t get mad at me; he''s the vampire."
Gasper''s eyes widened at Azazel''s words, his breathing became heavier and Natsuki could feel him shaking against her back.
Natsuki scoffed, drawing attention away from Gasper, "Did you just come here to discuss Sacred Gears? I guess Kokabiel was right about your obsession with them."
"No, I didn''t but I had to take the opportunity, you know?" Azazel answered, "I came to apologize for what Vali did the other day. I''m sure you all must have been surprised by him suddenly seeking you out on his own, but Vali has always been an unusual guy. But don''t worry, I''m sure you know that Vali isn''t thinking of settling the rivalry just yet."
"Because he thinks Issei and I are too weak." Natsuki spat.
"You are too weak." Azazel said plainly, smiling when Natsuki''s glare intensified, "Oh, come now, you know that, isn''t that why you called me ''Vali''s Boss,'' earlier?"
Natsuki said nothing, it was the truth, but once again it was a truth that infuriated her to no end.
"But you should take it as a good thing. You have time to grow stronger without the worry of a powerful foe coming to kill you." With that, Azazel turned to leave, walking towards the tree line that he had first appeared through, no longer seeing the point of sticking around.
"Hold on a second!" Issei called out, stopping Azazel in his tracks, "I want to know why you hid your real identity from me and Natsuki when you first contacted us. You may have apologized for Vali, but you haven''t done so for your actions!"
Azazel turned his head slightly, looking at Issei from the corner of his eye, "Oh, well. That''s just my thing; I won''t apologize for that."
After saying this, Azazel disappeared through the trees before teleporting away, leaving the Devils thoroughly confused.
After Azazel left, the Devils exchanged glances, troubled on how to continue before Saji stepped forward and made a suggestion. "For the time being, I''ll use my Sacred Gear on the new face-kun over there. In that state, let''s try using his Sacred Gear and practice. In exchange for that, next time, I will have you help me out with a flower bed Kaichou wants me to take care of."
Saji connected the tongue of the [Absorption Line] to Gasper, following Azazel''s suggestion as the group went to the school''s gymnasium.
Issei came up with the idea to throw volleyballs at Gasper and have him stop them in midair using his [Forbidden Balor View].
"Alright, have at it." Issei said as he threw the volleyball in his hands directly at Gasper''s face.
"EEk!" Gasper exclaimed as his eyes flashed purple, and when the light disappeared Gasper was no longer standing on the court.
"Whoa, he just disappeared." Saji said, looking at the stop where Gasper once stood.
Koneko sighed as she followed the direction that Saji''s line was heading, knowing that Gasper was still on the other end of it.
Issei scratched the back of his head, "That is not how this was supposed to work. His goal was to stop the ball, but he stopped us too."
"I found him." Koneko said as she dragged Gasper back onto the court by the scruff of his collar, causing his shirt to drag up over his stomach.
"I''m sorry, I didn''t mean to!" Gasper cried.
"This training would be fairly hard for anyone." Xenovia said as they watched Gasper once again fail to use his Sacred Gear properly.
Asia frowned, "And it doesn''t help that he has so much power."
"It''s too strong for his own good. Poor guy." Issei sighed before looking at Saji, "Saji, do you think you could take away a bit more from him?"
"Totally." Saji said, using his [Absorption Line] to take away more of Gasper''s magical power from him.
Gasper shivered as he felt the magic being drained from his body, finding the experience to be uncomfortable and strange.
"Awesome, thanks for helping us out."
Saji smiled, "It''s no problem. I mean, I''m the one who''s got to learn how to use a new power, right?"
Natsuki crossed her arms, "I still think we should be working on his Anthropophobia before doing any physical training."
"Anthropophobia?" Xenovia asked, having never heard of the word.
"It''s an intense and irrational fear of people." Natsuki answered, "I think Gasper has an extreme version of it. And I think we should deal with that first before working on his powers."
Issei scowled, "Well, we don''t have time. You saw the way Azazel was looking at Gasper, we have to get Gasper strong enough to defend himself, or Azazel might take him."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, ignoring how Gasper yelped at Issei''s claim, "Unless Azazel is an idiot, he''s not going to take Gasper, at least not forcefully. And even so, I don''t think Azazel has much interest in Gasper beside clinically."
"I guess you''re right, but even if he is obsessed with Sacred Gears, why would he help us by giving those suggestions?" Issei asked, "And what was with that whole blood thing? Ugh, everything about this just freaks me out."
"Me too! I hate blood." Gasper said.
"You know, you and Buchou didn''t explain how that works. I mean, how can you hate the taste of blood; you''re a vampire?"
Gasper started to shake, "I just can''t help it! The smell of blood makes me want to vomit; I hate that stuff!"
Koneko sighed, "You really are the worst vampire ever."
Gasper crouched down and started to bawl, "Why are you so mean to me, Koneko-chan?!"
Xenovia rubbed one of her ears, "Wow, that whine is starting to hurt my brain."
By the time night had fallen, Gasper had escaped Koneko''s attempts to stop him and retreated into his room, refusing to let anyone inside. Eventually the others soon left, leaving only Natsuki, Issei, and now Rias, standing in front of the once sealed door.
"Gasper-kun, please come out." Rias pleaded.
Issei looked at the floor as he scratched the back of his head, "Sorry about this, Buchou. The last thing I wanted to do was bug you in the middle of your big meeting."
Rias glanced at Issei, "No, don''t worry. It means a lot that you''re all working so hard and want the best for him."
"I can''t leave! It''s too scary outside!" Gasper shouted from inside the room.
Issei frowned, "I feel like we''re just making things worse though."
"Well to be honest, knowing Gasper''s background there''s only so much we can do."
Natsuki raised an eyebrow, "His background?"
Rias continued to stare at the door as she spoke, "Gasper''s father was a vampire from the pureblood vampire family that I had mentioned before and his mother, a mere human, vampires are even more concerned with pedigree than Devils. As a result, Gasper was discriminated against by everyone, including his own family. And sadly, when it came to the human world, he was treated like a monster."
"And with his power to literally stop time, a power he couldn''t control, he wasn''t just feared, he was loathed, wasn''t he?" Natsuki asked knowingly, seeing where Rias was going with her story.
"You hit the nail right on the head, Natsuki." Rias said dejectedly, "A person can''t know what happens to them when they have been frozen. Naturally, no one wants to be near with that kind of power."
Issei clenched his fists, "I get it now. Sounds like Gasper and Asia have a lot in common, don''t they?"
"Yes, they do. And like her, we know that he would never use his powers to do anything that bad." Rias said before looking down at the floor, "What kind of King am I to him?"
Issei quickly turned to Rias, "Don''t say that! Listen Buchou, I-we can take care of this. You can count on us."
Rias smiled softly, "Thank you, Ise."
"This is huge, finally, there''s someone around who''s a boy and younger than me in the Peerage and I''m going to keep it that way!" Issei said resolutely.
Issei thought about how he now had someone in the Peerage who would have to look up to him, and because Issei was older, he viewed it as his responsibility to help his kouhai.
"That sounds pretty selfish of you. It just sounds like you want a cute kouhai who hangs on your every word." Natsuki said dryly.
Issei immediately grabbed Natsuki by the collar and started to shake her angerly, "Shut up, you bastard! You don''t know what you''re talking about! And you haven''t even been helping, so you don''t have any room to talk!"
"I made a suggestion; you guys just didn''t want to hear it out." Natsuki said, unbothered by Issei shaking her.
"Bribing him with video games is not a suggestion!"
Rias covered her mouth with her hand, laughing at the sight of her two Pawns, feeling better for the first time since she arrived.
Once Issei was done, Rias summoned a teleportation circle under her feet, "I''ll leave Gasper-kun in your hands, Ise, Natsuki."
Issei gave her a thumbs up, "When you see Gasper again, he''ll be a brand-new Devil."
Rias smiled again, but it soon fell as she looked back at Gasper''s door before she teleported away, leaving Natsuki and Issei alone again.
Issei leaned against the wall, "Okay Gasper, we''re not leaving until you come out."
Natsuki sighed as she stood next to Issei before slowly sliding down the wall, sitting on the floor, and pulling out her phone. "This is going to take a while."
"Oh, yes, I understand. Of course, of course. I''ll be fine, I promise, Koneko-san and Xenovia-san are with me. Alright then, I wish you and Natsuki-san luck, bye." Asia said as she ended the call and put her cell phone in her pocket. "That was Ise, he said he won''t be able to come home tonight."
"So, it''s an endurance test between them and Gasper until he comes out, huh? I''m surprised that Natsuki-san would stick around for that, she seemed the least involved out of all of us during training." Xenovia said.
"That''s because Natsuki-senpai knows that Akeno-senpai would never let her hear the end of it if she didn''t try. To her, it''s less annoying to deal with Gya-kun." Koneko stated.
Asia looked down, "I still feel bad leaving them to deal with Gasper-san by themselves."
"Really? Because I don''t." Koneko said dryly.
Xenovia tried to assuage Asia''s guilt, "Well, our options are limited, what could we possibly do to help him? Natsuki-san wasn''t wrong when she said that Gasper''s problem isn''t his power, but his fear of, well, everything."
Eventually, the trio of girls reached the Hyoudou residence, Asia letting them inside and she and Koneko agreeing to Xenovia''s suggestion to bathe together.
"I didn''t realize how much I sweated chasing after Gasper today." Xenovia said as she scrubbed her skin, "I''m glad we have a chance to take a bath."
"I have to say, Xenovia-san, I was impressed with how hard you worked today." Asia smiled.
Xenovia shook her head, "It was nothing compared to Issei''s enthusiasm. What is really impressive to me is that he is still working hard to take care of Gasper."
Koneko pursed her lips, "I guess you can''t say that Issei-senpai never cares about his friends. When you look past how much of a pervert he is, it''s his best trait."
"I''m beginning to understand that, especially because the only reason I''m able to be with you guys in the first place is because of Issei-san wanting to save Kiba-san."
"Um..." Asia muttered.
"Is something wrong, Asia-senpai?" Koneko asked, seeing the hesitation on her face.
Asia blushed and she knew that she could not blame it on the hot water in the tub. "Xen-Xenovia-san, do you like Ise?"
Xenovia looked at Asia as she climbed into the bathtub, "I find him a suitable mate, as the Red Dragon Emperor, he will be able to give me powerful children. And that will help me make up for all the time I lost as woman while in the Church."
You''re seventeen. Koneko thought when Xenovia called herself a woman.
Asia blushed when Xenovia mentioned Issei giving her children, but pushed past her embarrassment, "W-what about Natsuki-san? S-she strong, she could, could give you..."
Xenovia placed a finger under her chin as she thought about the dark-haired Pawn, "Natsuki-san is powerful, and at the moment she is stronger than Issei, but her personality is all wrong."
"Wrong?"
Xenovia leaned her head against the tiled wall, "If I asked Natsuki-san to have my children, she would most likely punch me in the face."
Koneko snorted at that, agreeing with Xenovia''s statement, and imagining how Natsuki would react to anyone propositioning her for sex as bluntly as Xenovia has done to Issei.
"And Issei-san, from what I have seen is less complicated and far kinder than Natsuki-san. I wouldn''t want to deal with someone who is so purposely distant."
Asia had mixed feelings about what Xenovia said; on the one hand, she was glad to know that Xenovia''s feelings for Issei were not serious and were purely physical. It was hard enough competing with someone like Rias for Issei''s heart, Asia does not know how difficult things would become if Xenovia ever fell in love with Issei.
But she was also upset because Xenovia wanted to sleep with Issei, a boy whose dream was to become the Harem King. What if Xenovia managed to convince Issei to sleep with her? And if that happened, what if that led to them falling for each other?
But this in turn, made Asia feel like a terrible person for wanting to dictate both Xenovia and Issei''s feelings for her own desires.
Asia sighed as she slid down the wall and partially submerged her head under the water, no longer feeling relaxed by the warm bath.
An Hour Later
"C''mon Gasper, don''t you want to be outside instead of in that cramped room?" Issei pleaded, realizing that he underestimated Gasper''s fortitude.
Natsuki leaned her head to the side, "I don''t think asking for the hundredth time is going to change his mind."
"Well, I don''t see you doing anything to help!" Issei shouted glaring at his fellow Pawn.
"Stop screaming, you''re just scaring Gasper even more." Natsuki said plainly, her supernova hearing pocking up on Gasper''s surprised yelp when Issei raised his voice.
Issei''s glare turned venomous, and he wanted to scream at Natsuki again, but did not want to scare their kouhai.
Natsuki crossed her arms as she looked away from Issei, "Just speak plainly to him, don''t beg or try to force him."
"What do you mean?"
"Earlier, after Xenovia and Koneko finished chasing him around, Gasper seemed receptive when I told him he was doing good just by being outside, talking with us."
"Yeah, I remember Gasper being calm with you before Azazel showed up."
"And now he''s probably thinking about all the things Azazel told him about his Sacred Gear. And with what Rias told us¡"
Issei''s gaze became contemplative as he pressed his head against the door. Issei sighed as he decided to follow Natsuki''s advice. "Hey, Gasper, I know you''re scared of your Sacred Gear, and of us for that matter. I also possess a Sacred Gear, but with one of the strongest dragons around inside of it. I''ve got a dragon in me, I¡ to be honest, am scared. I feel scared to use that power because it often feels like a part of my body is changing into something else. I don''t know much about Devils right now either, or about what a dragon is. It''s terrifying, but I refuse to let that fear stop me."
To his and Natsuki''s surprise, Gasper responded through the door. "But aren''t you afraid? A-afraid that you may lose the things you care about most because of your power? Why do you, senpai... how can you live life without any doubts like that?"
Issei found the questions troubling, but pushed forward, "Well, I''m an idiot, so I might not get the whole picture, it''s just¡"
"Just what?" Gasper asked.
"I''ve seen Rias cry, and I never want to see that again." Issei said, clenching his fist as he looked at the floor. "During the Rating Game, my friends had been defeated one by one, and in the end, when I tried to face off against Riser, I couldn''t beat him, I was too weak to win. I don''t remember all of it, but I was in such bad shape that Rias almost forfeited the match. Rias'' tears, they have been burned into my heart forever, it was the hardest thing I ever had to watch and all I could do was lay there pathetically before I was retired."
"I heard about that fight, I''m sorry." Gasper said as he opened the door slightly, looking through the crack and holding back tears. "I was sealed in here when it happened."
"You don''t have to apologize; besides we won." Issei said, trying to reassure Gasper.
Gasper looked at Natsuki, remembering that she was the one who had defeated Riser with her Balance Breaker.
Natsuki noticed the stare, causing Gasper to flinch, but instead of glaring at him like he expected, Natsuki sighed. "I won''t say I understand completely how you feel Gasper, but I know what it''s like to ostracized."
Gasper looked surprised, "You do?"
"All my life people have hated me for being a hermaphrodite and looking so much different from everyone in a country with so much racism, didn''t help either. And after a while, I stopped trying to be accepted, and like you, I closed myself off to others, I¡ I made a shield around my heart, so to speak, so I could never be hurt again. Even when I first met Issei, I kept an emotional distance, because I figured he would grow bored and stop wanting to be my friend. But after becoming a Devil and joining this Peerage, even with all the crazy shit we''ve experienced, it''s the happiest I''ve ever been in a long. And¡ for the first time in my life, I''ve had people that I can call my friends¡ f-family."
Both Gasper and Issei looked at Natsuki in shock, not expecting the girl to be so open and forthcoming and seeing her struggle to express herself properly.
Natsuki closed her eyes before continuing, "And, even though I beat Riser, I was only able to do so because I let the dragon inside me to take over, it wasn''t my strength that own the battle. And when Kokabiel showed up, I was helpless, he didn''t see me as an equal, but as a toy he could spend a few minutes playing with. Issei was the one who¡"
Issei furrowed his brow, "Me? I wasn''t able to do anything, I was just as weak."
"But you got stronger!" Natsuki exclaimed, causing the two boys with her to jump. "You got stronger, because you fucking thought of Rias'' tits, as stupid as that was. You rallied everyone to keep fighting when I was¡ when I was standing there frozen, scared out of my mind, like a fucking coward. I couldn''t keep anyone safe."
Natsuki was scared? Issei thought to himself.
In all the time he had known her, Natsuki has always been the strong, confident protector, the person you could rely on to get the job done, and to never falter, she was not supposed to get anxious, nervous, or scared, that was his job. And she was the one who was supposed to reassure him and make sure that he kept going.
She''s still a person, just like you, partner. Ddraig said inside Issei''s head, through their link.
I know that. I just¡ it''s surprising, you know. I mean, Natsuki isn''t supposed to be envious of me, doesn''t she know how hard I''ve been trying to catch up to her, to stop looking at her back? Issei thought.
I doubt it. Ddraig said. Sometimes it can be hard to see the insecurities of others when looking at your own.
"Well, then we all have something to work towards!" Issei shouted, unintentionally saying this out loud.
Natsuki frowned, "What?"
Issei grinned as he jumped to his feet, "Even if the three of us aren''t as strong as we''d like, that doesn''t matter. We can bring our strengths together so we can protect Rias and the rest of the Peerage. I mean, with the power to stop time and two legendary dragons, there''s nothing we can''t do!"
Gasper gripped the stuffed bunny in his hands tighter as he looked away, troubled by Issei''s declaration. "I don''t know¡"
Issei was undeterred, "What about drinking my blood? If what that bastard Azazel said is true, then if you drink my blood then you may be able to control your Sacred Gear."
"No, it''s too scary!" Gasper said as he shook his head, "I don''t like drinking from living creatures, and it takes everything I got just to do so from transfusions occasionally. Blood makes me feel stronger and with my Sacred Gear¡ I''m scared I won''t be able to handle it."
"That''s weird, but I can''t deny that I''m jealous of your powers." Issei said.
"Really?" Gasper said.
"Yeah, being able to stop time would be awesome as hell!" Issei said, leaning closer to the younger boy as a lecherous expression appeared on his face. "Imagine all the girls'' skirts I''d be able to peak under! I''d even be able to play with Rias''-"
Natsuki ended Issei''s tirade by making the back of his head, sending him falling to the ground.
"Ouch!" Issei cried; his voice muffled by the floor.
Natsuki ignored this as she looked at the Bishop. "Gasper, when it comes to girls, ignore everything Issei tells you, and don''t let him trick you into doing anything perverted. It''s a bad path to fall onto, and I don''t want to see that happen to you."
"Screw you, Natsuki!" Issei yelled as rubbed the back of his head.
Gasper smiled softly, "I''ve never had anyone say they''re jealous of me. Even if it''s for perverted reasons, it makes me feel better."
Well, at least he wasn''t offended. Natsuki thought, not knowing if this was better.
Issei looked embarrassed, "Yeah, well, uh¡"
"It''s funny, hearing that you''re jealous of something I''ve hated all my life."
Natsuki slowly put her hand on Gasper''s shoulder, giving him time to move away, and happy when he did not. "You have a Sacred Gear; that''s something that is not going to change. And there''s nothing wrong with being afraid or weak, only with staying so when you have the ability to shed those traits. So, you should-"
Issei jumped on Natsuki''s back, interrupting her. "So, you should make yourself a goal that you want to accomplish with your Sacred Gear and show it that you are serious! I''ve told the dragon within my arm that I want to use my transfer ability to increase the size of Rias'' breasts! And Akeno-senpai''s too-"
Natsuki growled as she reached behind her and grabbed Issei by the back of his shirt, throwing him down the hall, sending him flying through the wall at the end.
Gasper''s eyes widened, staring at the angered Pawn with fear. "I- I t-think you killed him."
"Good." Natsuki spat.
Why did he say that he wanted to use his transfer on Akeno?! Why do I care that Issei wants to do that? Natsuki thought angrily.
Issei pulled himself out of the now broken wall, unscathed and mostly just not expecting the violent action from Natsuki.
Well, Natsuki does have a thing for Akeno-senpai, so it makes sense that she got upset. Although I wish she would just come out and say it instead of threatening me with violence all the time. Issei thought.
Gasper''s eyes widened when Issei walked back to them. "Wow Ise-senpai. While possessing a powerful Sacred Gear, and to be able to face forward with such indecency. Ise-senpai, your lusts are overflowing with courage, right? That''s why your dreams are so strong."
Ha, I feel like I am being made fun of, maybe it''s my imagination! Issei thought while smiling sheepishly. "Good, you''re a nice kid. Here, look at my right hand. I have rubbed Buchou''s breasts with this hand, you know?"
Gasper looked with astonished eyes onto Issei''s right hand upon hearing his speech while Natsuki looked at Issei with a blank stare.
"R-Really? N-No way¡ To be able to touch our master who is a High-Class Devil. Ise-senpai, you truly are capable of surprising things." Gasper said.
"Also, about the story of transferring it to boobs, it''s Maou-sama''s idea. I have thought of following Maou Sirzechs-sama for my entire life. That person is amazing! He''s drawing out my abilities!" Issei gave Natsuki a smug look before responding to Gasper as he led the young boy into his bedroom.
Well, I''ve definitely lost Gasper, why is he so impressed with Issei being a perv? I just hope he doesn''t fully take on Issei''s ways. Natsuki thought as she followed the pair.
The trio sat on the floor as the two Pawns took turns telling Gasper about their experiences as a Devil and their own goals and desires. Gasper warmed to the older Devils, feeling more comfortable with them as time passed.
"Look at you three, nice work, Ise-kun, Natsuki-chan." Kiba said as he entered the room and closed the door behind him.
"Hey! Welcome back." Issei greeted.
Kiba smiled, "It''s good to see you a bit more comfortable now, Gasper."
"This is perfect timing, because I have something I want to talk to you about, Kiba."
"What is it, Ise-kun?" Kiba asked, seeing the seriousness on Issei''s face.
"Me, you and Gasper are males."
Kiba raised an eyebrow, "We are, why is that important?"
"I have thought about how us male members of the Gremory Peerage have to come together and make an alliance."
"I''m not a male, so don''t make me a part of this foolishness." Natsuki voiced.
Issei waved her off, "You''re basically an honorary guy, Natsuki, you have a dick and everything. And this plan won''t work without you."
"Gee, thanks." Natsuki said dryly.
"Okay, I''m intrigued. What is this plan?" Kiba asked, wondering what Issei could be planning that has Natsuki so against it.
Issei grinned, "Get this; during school tomorrow, I''ll transfer my stored power to Gasper and then Gasper will use it to stop time! And after all the girls are frozen, I''ll be able to grope them as much as I want!"
Kiba stared at Issei blankly for a couple of seconds as he digested what Issei had just told him, he then smiled uncomfortably. "Okay, if that''s the case, technically you don''t need me or Natsuki-chan then, right."
"Are you serious?!" Issei exclaimed, "Of course I''ll need you two. While I''m doing my pervy stuff, I might get attacked, so I''m going to need Natsuki''s strength and your Balance Breaker to protect me. You see, this is the perfect team up!"
Natsuki then looked at Kiba deadpanned, "You see what I''ve been forced to listen to while you were gone?"
Kiba sighed, still smiling awkwardly, "Look Ise-kun, normally I would do practically anything for you, but you might want to think about how this is going to affect us in the long run. You might even make Ddraig cry with your actions."
Kiba is a good guy. Ddraig said in a teary voice, glad that there was one person in his host''s orbit who cared about how Issei''s actions affected him.
Shut up! And don''t say that like you''re upset, I''m your host not Kiba. You''re supposed to help me out with my erotic ideas! Issei shouted back at Ddraig mentally.
"You shut up! And don''t look at me like I''m a freak!" Issei shouted, grabbing onto Kiba''s shoulders as he began to cry excessively and dramatically. "It''s so easy for you, you handsome bastard! No one''s ever told you that just making eye contact with them was creepy!"
"I think that has less to do with your looks and more to do with your wondering eyes and hands." Natsuki muttered under her breath.
"And you!" Issei shouted as he turned to Gasper, giving him a fake smile, "You''re back inside the box I see. How come? What''s that about?!"
Gasper was sitting in his cardboard box, but instead of enclosing himself completely, Gasper was sitting upright with the top open.
"Oh, I''m sorry, I just feel better talking to people if I''m inside of here." Gasper apologetically, "But I didn''t close the top, that''s good, right?"
Issei sighed, "No, and that doesn''t make it less weird."
"It is better than him trying to run away every time someone gets too close." Natsuki said as she stood up.
Gasper pouted, "Ah, but this is calming. This cardboard box is like my heart''s oasis, it keeps me safe, and I don''t have to look at people and they can''t look at me when I''m in it."
This box kind of suits him in a weird way, I think it''s because I''ve gotten used to seeing him in it. And Gasper''s problem seems to be him hating to make eye contact with anyone. Wait, I''ve got an idea.
The Pawn then looked around Gasper''s room, trying to find something that could help him go outside while feeling the same comfort as his cardboard box.
"Natsuki-chan, what are you looking for?" Kiba asked as he, Issei and Gasper watched Natsuki go through Gasper''s things.
"I found it." Natsuki declared as she pulled out a large brown paper bag from inside Gasper''s closet.
"A paper bag?" Issei asked, becoming more confused as he watched Natsuki cut two holes in said bag.
Natsuki smiled as she finished before placing the bag on top of Gasper''s head, covering his head completely. Through the small eye whole you could just barely see the glow of Gasper''s pinkish-violet eyes as he looked around.
"Do you like it?" Natsuki asked.
"Maybe... I, I feel calmer." While no one could see it Gasper smiled as he touched the front of the bag, "I think I do like it ~"
"How did you get the idea to cover his face?" Kiba asked as he watched Gasper move around sluggishly.
Natsuki shrugged, "Gasper said he hated being face to face with people and that''s why he loves his box so much. It reminded me of when Asia first joined the Peerage, and she use to cover her face with her veil before she warmed up to the rest of us."
Gasper continued to move around, sluggishly walking towards Issei as if he were a zombie. "How does it look? Does it make me look cool?"
Issei shuddered as Gasper crept closer, no matter how he looked at it, Gasper looked and was moving like he was degenerate that you would come across while walking in a dark alley by yourself.
Kiba chuckled awkwardly, "It certainly has an indescribable impact, Gasper."
"Really?" Gasper asked breathily, clasping his hands together in excitement, "I wonder if I wear this, if my reputation as a vampire will increase?"
Natsuki snorted, smiling at Gasper, "I will say that no one will see this look coming, that''s for sure."
Gasper bowed his head, crying tears of joy under his new mask, "Thank you guys so much!"
After calming Gasper down, the four Devils spent the rest of the night talking. Although Natsuki rolled her eyes when Issei moved the conversation to more perverted topics.
But both Pawns were surprised by how lecherous Kiba secretly was as he answered Issei''s questions without hesitation and with total honesty.
The Next Day
Before school had started that day, Natsuki and Issei were asked by Akeno to meet her at the shrine at the edge of town when school ended. The older Devil did not tell the Pawns why, only smiling when she said that she had someone she needed to introduce them to.
This is where Akeno lives, right? Natsuki thought as she and Issei walked up the numerous stairs trying to reach the top of the mountain.
Normally, Natsuki would have just teleported her and Issei to the top and save them the trouble of walking, but Akeno had explained that the wards on the shrine would not have allowed Natsuki to enter the building without her and that if Natsuki tried to, the wards would have randomly sent her to another location, anywhere in the world. And the Pawns could not use their Devil wings to fly given that they were in a public place and would risk being seen by normal people.
Honestly, if I hadn''t seen Sirzechs dispel the holy energy of the shrine we visited with him in Tokyo, I wouldn''t be able to believe Akeno could live here. But I guess it matches the whole shrine maiden thing she has going on.
"Bah! Don''t walk so fast, Natsuki. Man, having to walk up all these steps sucks." Issei complained, walking a few steps behind Natsuki. "And why did Akeno-senpai ask us to meet her here? Aren''t shrines bad places for us Devils, like churches? I remember Buchou telling me not to go to shrines once."
"The holy energy is gone from this place. If it wasn''t, we wouldn''t have been able to walk up the first step without bursting into flames or something. Or we''d feel like how we did when we went to the orphanage." Natsuki answered.
Issei blew air out of his lips, "Still. It just seems so weird that Akeno-senpai wanted us to come here and with how secretive she was about it."
Natsuki was going to respond, but stop herself and her stride when she felt a familiar magic signature and saw a person sized shadow appear on the steps in front of her.
"Welcome, Natsuki-chan, Ise-kun." Akeno greeted the pair with her usual smile.
"Hey, Akeno-senpai." Issei said as he walked faster up the stairs while Natsuki maintained her normal pace.
Akeno was wearing her red and white shrine maiden attire as she turned around and started to walk up the steps, not waiting for the other two to catch up. "I must apologize for the sudden invitation."
"Ah, it''s no problem, but what kind of work is this? And where is Buchou?" Issei asked.
"Rias has to do a final meeting with Sirzechs-sama regarding the leaders'' summit." Akeno answered.
"Is it alright not going to the meeting along with Buchou? I was thinking that the Queen''s power may be required."
"Grayfia-sama will be following up over there, not to mention if it advances by a certain degree, then even without me, it will be all right. More than that, I have to meet the person who''s waiting upstairs."
"So, are you going to finally tell us why we''re here and who we''re meeting?" Natsuki asked, now walking beside the older girl.
Much to her annoyance, Akeno only gave her a teasing smile as they finally reached the large arch over the top of the stairs.
"Do you really live here, Akeno-senpai?" Issei asked as he looked at the main building of the shrine.
Akeno smiled, "I do, the priest who previously owned this place died and the God who gave its blessing to it left, so Rias was able to secure it for me afterwards."
Natsuki froze as she felt an immense amount of holy energy above them, when she looked up all se saw was the sky, but she knew someone was there.
If I had to compare this power to someone it would be Sirzechs-wait... Sirzechs told me that Michael wanted to speak to last time I saw him.
Natsuki''s eyes were wide as she looked back at Akeno, "Akeno-senpai please tell me you have brought us here to meet an Angel."
A smooth laugh was heard by the Devils in response to Natsuki''s question. "So, this is Sekiryuutei and Kogane Ry¨± K¨g¨? Hyoudou Issei and Sukehiro Natsuki, it is nice to meet you two."
In the place that Natsuki was once looking at, a bright flash of golden light suddenly materialized and once this disappeared, a floating man was now visible to them.
This man was handsome, with long blond hair and green eyes, from his back, sprouted twelve golden wings. He was wearing a red robe with a gold cross on the front of his white Alb, golden shoulder plates with a white sash, and with a golden halo set above his head.
To Natsuki''s growing chagrin, the man introduced himself as the one man that she did not want to meet. "I am Michael, leader of the Angels."
Lead Up To The Summit
Why does the worst shit always happen to me? Natsuki thought as she, Issei, and Akeno entered the main building of the shrine with the Leader of the Angels.
Akeno stood in between the two Pawns and Micheal, smiling in her usual manner as Natsuki and Issei looked at Michael wearily.
And both Pawns flinched, feeling as if their skin was crawling as an unknown aura suddenly appeared in the room, sensing the danger coming from Michael''s direction.
What the hell is going on? Issei thought, confused as to why Akeno was not reacting the same way he and Natsuki were to the aura as she continued to smile.
It was then, as Micheal held out his hand, that a bright light overtook the room and when it disappeared, Michael was holding a Holy Sword in his grasp.
The Holy Sword was a European sword with a grey hilt, a red diamond design imprinted on it surrounded by four blue lines that curved slightly and a golden pommel in the shape of a cone-like arrow. The blade was notched three times on both sides near the bottom and the fuller, which reached slightly above the notches, had a golden color and a large pearl on its center, and the rest was colored purple.
Michael held the sword towards Issei, "This is Ascalon. This Holy Sword has also earned another name; Dragon Slayer."
"Oh, that''s a cool name." Issei replied, unsure of what to make of being so close to a Holy Sword being wielded by an Angel.
Natsuki''s head snapped in Issei''s direction, "Are you stupid? Do you have any idea who that sword once belonged to?"
"Nope." Issei said plainly.
"It belonged to Saint George!" Natsuki hissed.
Issei continued to stare at his friend blankly, not knowing anything about Saint George and why Natsuki felt it was important for him to know.
He was a famous dragon slayer, he was also one of the most venerated saints, heroes, and megalomartyrs in Christianity. Ddraig answered within Issei''s mind. You should also study a bit more; it''s embarrassing to have a partner who''s so ignorant of basic history.
Shut up! And, what''s up with that Dragon Slayer title? I can understand it being important because it''s a Holy Sword, but there''s no way that this could have killed a dragon, right? Issei thought.
Not a dragon, but many. A weapon such as this wouldn''t have got the title of Dragon Slayer if it wasn''t made specifically for slaying my kind. Many of Ascalon''s wielders were warriors who specialized in killing dragons. Ddraig explained.
Warriors specializing in killing dragons, huh. Scary. Doesn''t that mean I am also a target of people like that? I''m hating this more and more.
"Many dragons have fallen to the power contained within this blade, but fear not, Hyoudou Issei, for this weapon was sent unto you from on high." Michael explained further.
Issei''s eyes grew larger, "Seriously? Y-you want to give me a Holy Sword?"
What the hell?! Natsuki thought, just as shocked as Issei.
Michael glanced at Issei''s left arm, "I am hoping that you can assimilate Ascalon into your [Boosted Gear]."
"But why me?" Issei asked.
"I''ve heard your reputation as the weakest Welsh Dragon host in history and hope that Ascalon will give you the necessary strength in times of tribulation."
Issei felt like his pride had been thoroughly stepped on, "Weakest in history? Well, it''s not for lack of trying, and it still sucks to hear."
Natsuki let out a snort at Issei dejected expression and had to keep herself from laughing out loud when Issei glared at her, hearing the noise.
Issei then turned back to the Angel, "But, you still haven''t said why you''re giving this to me? I mean, it can''t just be because I''m weak and you feel bad."
"This upcoming meeting between the Three Great Powers is an important opportunity for us all to come together." Michael explained, "The closing of the Great War ended large scale fighting but as you know we still have small skirmishes. They are nothing more than useless battles for us to pastorate and feed our egos, but if they are allowed to continue, then all will be brought to ruin."
"Ruin?" Issei asked, "I thought the battles were small."
"He means from other forces." Natsuki voiced, "Other powers could use the conflict between Angels, Devils, and Fallen as a chance to attack."
"She is right; it is not just the forces of Heaven and Hell that exist out in the world. As you all know, we lost our creator, God, during the last war, the Devils also lost the old Maous in battle, and the leaders of the Fallen Angels are reticent. We have all been weakened for some time, which has shown us all that we would be stronger together, that is why this summit will be used to create an alliance between the three sides."
Sirzechs already told us that this was want the summit is for, but it''s still strange to hear the idea coming from someone else, but that still doesn''t mean that this will end the way that Sirzechs, Michael, and Azazel want it to. I can''t imagine that many of their subjects will be on board with aligning themselves with their sworn enemies. Natsuki thought.
Michael then lifted up Ascalon again, "This sword is a present from me to the Devil side. Of course, I also sent presents to the Fallen Angel side, and I got a few of the rumored Holy Demonic Swords from the Devil side as well, which our side is incredibly grateful for. Only once have the Three Great Powers aligned themselves for the same purpose. That was during the Great War when they defeated the Red and White Dragons."
Of course he''s proud of that. Ddraig said to himself.
Eh? What do you mean? Issei asked, but Ddraig did not reply.
Issei stood up, holding his hand out to take the sword, but flinching and hesitating when he remembered that such swords were dangerous to his kind.
Akeno spoke up when she saw this, "There were final adjustments done on the sword in this shrine by Maou-sama, Azazel-sama, and Michael-sama''s camps. Ceremonies have been performed so even a Devil and one that houses the power of a dragon, can touch it."
Fearfully, Issei took the Holy Sword that was now floating in midair, but nothing happened. He could feel the holy aura, but no damage or the aura itself flowing into him.
Partner, focus your consciousness on the [Boosted Gear], I''ll follow up after that. Try making the sword in your hand combine with the surge of power from your Sacred Gear. Ddraig told the Devil.
For the time being, Issei focused on invoking his Sacred Gear, and made the red gauntlet appear. He tried combining the surge of [Boosted Gear] with surge of the Holy Sword, now feeling the holy aura flowing into the gear. It passed through the Sacred Gear and Issei could feel the sensation of energy entering his body, slowly becoming familiar with it, and a sensation as if it is being taken in by Ddraig''s power attacks him.
A flash of red light suddenly overtook Issei''s [Boosted Gear], disappearing as quickly as it arrived, and when it did, the gauntlet now existed with a blade growing out of the front portion of the back of Issei''s left hand.
"Incredible." Issei whispered in awe; his eyes locked on his gear''s new feature.
Michael clapped his hands when it became clear that the assimilation was successful, "Good, good. Now we can move onto Natsuki-chan."
"Me?" Natsuki asked.
Michael smiled, "Yes, you. I did not only come barring a gift for Issei-kun."
"I thought the old Church building here in Kuoh would have been my gift; you seemed intent on giving it to me for some reason." Natsuki said.
"One can''t have too many gifts, can they?" Michael asked.
"Why? Why go out of your way to do that? It''s not like you people cared before, so why now? Is it just because of Kokabiel, because he told us that God is dead?"
"Natsuki, stop." Akeno said strongly, looking at the taller girl admonishingly for the way she was speaking to the Angel leader.
Michael continued to smile, unbothered by Natsuki''s glare, "If that was the case, I would be trying to bribe everyone who heard the secret."
Natsuki looked at Michael, growing more frustrated, "Sirzechs told me that you saved the orphanage because of my past. So, do you know the truth about me, like he does?"
"I do." Michael said truthfully.
"And you won''t tell me the truth."
"And I won''t tell you the truth."
Akeno and Issei looked between the two, wondering what they were alluding to and why it was making Natsuki so angry.
"In all honesty, Natsuki-chan, I felt pity over how everything went in your life. No mistakes are made when life is created, but you were treated as such, and you will continued to experience that treatment." A sad smile appeared on Michael''s face, "And you are right; nothing was done to correct this, which is why I felt the need to come and meet you, and to help the orphanage. You deserved better, and I will do better for others who come along."
"Is that supposed to make me feel good?" Natsuki asked, glaring at the Angel, "Knowing that you will preserve to do better in the future?"
"No, I don''t expect it to. I only wish to make up for certain wrongs."
Before Natsuki could ask more questions, Michael held out his hand and a bright golden light once again appeared. In Michael''s hand was a sword, but unlike Ascalon, this one radiated a type of pressure that made the air feel suffocating and was not a traditional European sword, but a khopesh.
The sickle-shaped iron blade of the khopesh was inscribed with a name that Natsuki could see was there but at the same time could not read, looking blurry to her eyes, its point exceptionally sharp and with only one edge. Its pommel and bolster were both made of brass and the bone that sat between the two was made of gold.
"This is the Sword of Methuselah." Michael stated, "A sword created by God himself and given to Methuselah, son of Enoch, and a descendant of Seth. Methuselah used this very blade to kill nine hundred thousand Demons with a single swing, and it has been passed down through his descendants throughout time."
Methuselah, the man who lived the longest life, dying at nine hundred and sixty-nine years old. A man from the book of Genesis, I guess I shouldn''t be surprised that his story is real. "Would it really be wise to give me such a powerful sword? Especially one that has one of God''s names inscribed on it?"
"So, you are aware of the tale?" Michael asked amused, "I suppose I shouldn''t be surprised due to how faithful you once were."
Natsuki bristled, her expression turning downright murderous as she glared at the Angel, but Micheal was unfazed by it once again.
"But you are right; God wrote one of his ineffable names upon this Demon Slaying sword. No ordinary man can wield it, the weapon will consume souls of the unrighteous in holy fire for daring. It is a weapon of protection, justice, and wrath, made for the purpose of destroying malevolent beings completely, and I believe that it will be the prefect weapon for you, Natsuki-chan."
"And you believe that it will accept me?" Natsuki asked.
"Of course." Michael said, "Who best meets these qualifications then you?"
Natsuki said nothing as she summoned her Sacred Gear, holding her hand out and allowing the khopesh to float into it from Michael''s.
Lux, are you ready? Natsuki asked as she prepared for the assimilation.
Whenever you are. Lux replied.
Natsuki grasped the khopesh and after a few moments, a bright golden light shined from her [Ethereal Domination]''s jewel and when it died down the khopesh was gone.
Think about the weapon and you should be able to summon it. Lux told Natsuki.
Natsuki did as the dragon told her and thought about the weapon, forcing it to appear. Unlike with Issei and Ascalon, the Sword of Methuselah did not become fused to her own Sacred Gear, instead showing in her hand.
I guess this makes sense since Issei has a gauntlet, and I have a necklace. This thing would be next to useless if the blade just appeared out of the bottom of my [Ethereal Domination] or something like that. Natsuki thought as she moved the sword around in her hand.
There was a heat that seemed to emanate from the bone of the sword, but Natsuki was not bothered by the sensation, even finding it comforting.
Michael''s smile grew, "It''s good to see that the assimilation worked, I would not know how to explain this to Sirzechs-kun if you had died today."
Natsuki looked at Michael wide eyed, "Died? What do you mean died? I thought that a ritual was done on the sword so I could use it?"
"No, that was only done for Ascalon, as a weapon that has one of the names of God name inscribed on it cannot be felled so easily with magic, not even I have the power to do so. As I said before, the Sword of Methuselah judges all those who seek to wield it, if you were found unworthy, you would have immediately burst into flames, there would not even be ashes left to bury." Michael explained, still smiling at Natsuki.
"So, you just let me grab a weapon that could have instantly killed me without telling me that?!"
"I was confident you would succeed, and I was right. No harm was done."
"No harm was done? How can Heaven have survived this long with such a lackadaisical leader is beyond fucking me." Natsuki growled.
Again, Michael was unbothered, which only fueled Natsuki''s growing anger and annoyance with the Angel. "Now that I have done what I set out to do, I will now take my leave."
"No wait, hold on!" Issei exclaimed, "Before you go, there was something I really wanted to ask you."
"My apologies, but I haven''t the time, child. I have been here far too long and have not yet finished what has been required of me, but I''ll gladly hear you when our paths next cross."
Issei''s expression became serious, "Promise me you won''t forget, okay?"
"Yes, you have my word." Michael said before looking at the other Pawn, "Is there anything else you would like to say?"
Natsuki looked at the Angel with disgust, "You know what I want to ask you, but you won''t tell me. So, I can say that I''m perfectly fine with us never talking again... Michael-sama."
Michael laughed at this before spreading out his wings, "Farewell, Natsuki-chan, Issei-kun."
After saying that, Michael''s whole body is wrapped by light, disappearing in a bright flash less than a second later.
"I fucking hate that sparkly bastard." Natsuki said once Michael was gone only for Akeno to immediately slap the back of her head in reprimand.
An Hour Later
While Michael had long since left, Natsuki and Issei were still intruding in Akeno''s home and shrine, waiting for Rias, and having been given tea by Akeno. Now Natsuki sat in a Japanese style room, holding the Sword of Methuselah, watching as the sunlight coming from the screen doors reflected off the iron of the blade.
Natsuki still could not read the name that was inscribed on it, still seeing nothing but blurred symbols.
I don''t think I''ll ever be able to read the name, even though I own this sword now. Probably because God is-was supposed to be an exceptionally powerful being. Just my fucking luck, huh, five-year-old me would have been over the moon with this. Natsuki thought to herself.
"I thought you said you were going to use the bathroom." Natsuki turned her head and saw Akeno standing in the doorway.
"I did." Natsuki replied.
Akeno walked into the room and pulled the door closed behind her, "That was twenty minutes ago."
Natsuki shrugged her shoulders before dissipating her new sword, "Guess I got lost."
Akeno kneeled and sat down next to the taller girl, "Do you want to talk about it?"
"Talk about what, senpai?" Natsuki asked, being purposefully obtuse.
Akeno sighed, "If it makes you-"
"I''m not human." Natsuki blurted out.
Akeno looked at Natsuki confused, "What?"
Natsuki closed her eyes and began to spill her feelings, "I... I wasn''t human when I died, at least not fully, I was, I am a hybrid. It''s what Sirzechs is still keeping hidden from me, why he was so interested in me and made sure to keep an eye on me, not just because of my Sacred Gear."
"And Michael-sama knows too, that''s why you were so upset with him." Akeno stated, realizing what the two had been talking about earlier.
"Yeah, and like Sirzechs, he won''t tell me the truth. According to Sirzechs, it''s not in my best interest to know my parentage. I asked Lux but she''s not sure what my other half could be, but she knows that its somewhat familiar to pervious hosts she''s had and beings she has met."
Akeno stared at Natsuki firmly, "Maybe you should listen to Sirzechs-sama."
Natsuki''s head snapped in Akeno''s direction, staring her in disbelief, "What?"
Akeno looked away from Natsuki, biting her lip anxiously, "For as long as I''ve known him, Sirzechs-sama is not the kind of person to obscure the truth without good reason. What if everything regarding your background is dangerous? What if you learn that one of your parents was some horrible, monstrous creature? Ignorance is bliss, you know? You might not like what you find out."
"I don''t care."
Akeno felt anger surge through her at what she thought to be flippancy from the other girl, she opened her mouth to speak but Natsuki cut her off.
"It''s my life, senpai." Natsuki said, staring at Akeno adamantly, "I shouldn''t have knowledge of my parents, of where I come from, and who I am kept from me. And you may be right; I might not like the truth, but that should be for me to decide, not Sirzechs, not Michael, not anyone. I want answers, and if they''re not going to give them to me, then I''ll figure out myself."
"I shouldn''t be surprised." Akeno said aloud, chuckling weakly, "You''re the most stubborn person I have ever met, Natsuki-chan."
Natsuki laughed for a moment before Akeno spoke again, "Natsuki-chan, do you remember what Kokabiel said during the fight at school?"
Is she... "About Baraqiel? Akeno-senpai you don''t have to-"
Akeno shook her head, "No, I do. I''m sure you''re curious about it, even when you blasted Kokabiel and told him that it wasn''t his place to reveal it. That''s what you were going to ask me at the pool before we were interrupted, weren''t you?"
Natsuki said nothing to that, not seeing the point in denying what they both knew to be true.
"That''s right; before becoming a Devil, I was originally the half-breed daughter of one of the leaders of the Fallen Angels, Baraqiel, and a human woman."
For a few moments, the air between them grew thicker and Natsuki watched as Akeno folded in on herself, and she fought the urge to reach over and touch her, to provide Akeno physical comfort.
If you discover this tale on Amazon, be aware that it has been stolen. Please report the violation.
Akeno''s eyes became clouded as she told her story, "My mother was a young shrine maiden, and one day, she found a wounded Fallen Angel and decided to nurse him back to health. She did her job well, the two would then fall in love, and soon enough, I came along."
Natsuki frowned as she saw how difficult this was becoming for Akeno, "Akeno-senpai, please, you-"
Akeno reached over and covered Natsuki''s mouth with the palm of her hand, startling the younger Devil. Natsuki''s eyes widened, surprised by the action and by the expression that was now on Akeno''s face.
After a few seconds, Akeno removed her hand from Natsuki''s face and stood up, she silently turned around and began to untie her white kosode, exposing her back to Natsuki. Before Natsuki could question her, Akeno expanded her wings from her back, but unlike usual, the two wings were different from each other; one was the black bat wing of a Devil, and the other was the black raven wing of a Fallen Angel.
"Woah..." Natsuki murmured, transfixed by the dichotomy between the two appendages.
"They''re dirty wings; the wing of a Devil and the wing of a Fallen Angel. Signs of my heritage that I try to hide." Akeno said, and showing her hatred for the black feathers, grabbed them with her hand. "I grew up hating my Fallen Angel side, and when I met Rias, I jumped at the opportunity to become a Devil when she made me an offer. Maybe it was my half-breed blood, but the results of my transformation were not what I wanted, and instead of becoming a full Devil, I became a garish mixture of both Devil and Fallen. These two pairs of wings, what a better way to show my impure lineage? Such mismatched plumage."
Hearing that Akeno hated herself so much, that she held so much contempt for the blood that flowed through her veins, left Natsuki floored.
She... she''s just like me. Natsuki thought. She hates herself just for existing. I never knew, Akeno, she''s always been so... so confident and self-assured. It just never seemed like it could be possible that she would, that she could ever...
Akeno turned around to face Natsuki, allowing Natsuki to see the sad and heartbroken smile formed on Akeno''s lips and she hated it, she found it just as wrong on the girl''s face as the words coming out of her mouth.
"You know, I''ve wanted to tell you this for such a long time, but you hate Fallen Angels, right? They were the cause of so much pain for you, Ise-kun, and Asia-chan. And they even killed the three of you because of your Sacred Gears, not to mention their attempt to destroy this city and the people living here. It isn''t hard to guess what you think of them."
Natsuki stood up, "I don''t hate Fallen Angels, and even if I did, I could never hate you, Akeno-senpai."
Akeno''s expression went from sadness to surprise at Natsuki''s words, having expected Natsuki to agree with her statement.
She, she doesn''t hate me? Akeno thought.
"I don''t care that you''re half Fallen Angel, and I don''t give a shit that your dad is one of their higher ups. I know you, Akeno-senpai, and you''re a good person."
Akeno huffed as a small, and deprecating smile appeared on her face, "You never know; my apparent congeniality could just be a facade."
Natsuki scoffed, "You can lie to yourself, but you can''t trick me, you are a good person, and being a Fallen Angel doesn''t make you tainted or impure."
"Natsuki-"
"Am I impure? Am I an abomination for being a half-breed? For not looking entirely Japanese? For being intersex?"
"Of course not!" Akeno quickly exclaimed, "You''d never be an abomination to me."
"Then why would you think that I would see you like that just because you''re half Fallen?"
Akeno could not find the words to refute Natsuki''s question, only looking away from Natsuki and clenching her fists.
Natsuki walked closer to Akeno, the two now standing only a few inches apart, "You know, the first time that I saw you, I thought you were the ideal Japanese woman."
"You did?" Akeno asked, it was not the first time that someone had said something like that to her, but she would not have expected Natsuki to think the same.
Natsuki nodded her head, "I remember being a first year during, I think the second day of school, seeing you and Rias walking through the yard. You had this calm and dignified aura around you, even as Rias was excitedly talking to you, it made me understand why everyone calls you both the Two Great Onee-Samas. You two definitely play your archetypes well."
Akeno let out a snort, using her hand to cover her mouth, the reaction making Natsuki happy that Akeno was no longer looking so defeated.
"Although that opinion did change after Issei and I became Devils, and I really got to know you."
"And what was your opinion of me after becoming a Devil?"
Natsuki pondered this for a moment, "In all honesty, I thought you were kind of two faced; someone who hid their sadistic and masochistic tendencies behind a smiling and elegant persona."
"And that has changed?" Akeno asked, genuinely curious.
Natsuki snorted, "Fuck no, you''re definitely still a sadistic masochistic who doesn''t show any mercy or remorse towards the enemies she slays and finding pleasure in their pain. Or did you forget what you did to me at the pool? Or when I woke up after the Rating Game?"
"I remember you enjoying my actions, both times." Akeno shrugged, smiling playfully at Natsuki.
"Anyway," Natsuki stressed, ignoring Akeno''s giggling, "I also saw how much you care about everyone else in the ORC, and I''ve seen how you would fight to keep all of us safe. And... and you''ve never judged me or treated me differently, to you I''m just Sukehiro Natsuki, not Kuoh''s Dark Princess, or the koronbo, or lady cock, or even a street rat. So, why would I ever see you as anything other than Himejima Akeno? Being a Fallen doesn''t define you, the same way being intersex doesn''t define me. You''re smart, driven, kind, loving, you''re the type of woman that inspires others, you know?"
After hearing Natsuki''s words, Akeno started crying, worrying Natsuki as she watched Akeno smiling while wiping away her tears.
"Shit, Akeno-senpai, I didn''t mean to make you cry-" Natsuki tried to explain.
"You can stop worrying, Natsuki-chan." Akeno said softly, "When you say such sweet things like that, what''s a girl to do?"
Huh?
Before Natsuki could process what, Akeno had just said, the older Devil immediately wrapped her arms around Natsuki and leaned completely on her, causing the two to fall onto the ground with Akeno now on top of Natsuki.
"Akeno-senpai, what the fuck are you doing?" Natsuki asked incredulously.
Akeno ignored her question, "Can you call me ''Akeno''?"
Natsuki''s eyes widened, "What?"
"I want you to call me by my name." Akeno explained, "Do you have any idea how much it infuriates me when you speak so casually with Issei, Kiba, Asia, Koneko, and Xenovia? You even call Rias by her name without honorifics sometimes, so why can''t you do the same with me? And I mean casually, not just those few times when you''re upset."
Natsuki pursed her lips, "I think this is the first time someone''s gotten mad at me for being respectful. Usually, it''s the other way around."
"Please, Natsuki-chan."
The tone her voice took, combined with the imploring expression, made Natsuki feel uncomfortable. "Fine, Akeno. Are you happy? Can you get off me now?"
Akeno smiled brightly, leaning down and hugging Natsuki tightly, "I''m so happy, Natsuki."
For the first time, Natsuki realized that Akeno''s voice was not its usual teasing and flirtatious, but she instead sounded like a normal teenage high school girl.
Wait, Akeno is cute?! Since when?! What the fuck is happening?! Natsuki thought, confused on how their serious conversation led to this.
As Akeno tightened her hold, Natsuki could feel Akeno''s breast pressing against her own, Akeno breathing against her neck, and Akeno''s hips lying on top of her own.
"Okay, Akeno, you really have to get off." Natsuki said, placing her hands on Akeno''s hips and gently trying to push her away, but Akeno refused to be moved, using her Queen enhanced strength to cling to and push Natsuki firmly onto the floor.
Akeno chuckled, a low, dark, and sensual sound that made Natsuki''s heart race and her for her entire body to feel like it was on fire. A blush appeared on Akeno''s cheeks as she sat up and hovered over Natsuki, she smirked as she moved her hand and dragged a finger against Natsuki''s lips. "It feels like little Natsuki has woken up and wants to play."
When Akeno said this, it felt like water was rushing over Natsuki''s head, like there was a suffocating pressure sitting on her chest, barely registering the sensation of Akeno slowly grinding her hips down on Natsuki''s growing hardness.
Akeno blinked when suddenly, Natsuki grabbed her by the shoulders and flipped them over, now laying on her back while Natsuki held her down, kneeling above her.
"Don''t fucking play with me." Natsuki hissed, her eyes flashing gold momentarily.
Akeno frowned, "I''m not messing with you, Nat-"
"Yes, you are." Natsuki spat, closing her eyes as she clenched her teeth, "I know you''re a flirty person and you like to tease people, but I don''t want you to come onto me as a joke. I''m not Issei; I don''t appreciate being propositioned just because you think it''s funny."
"I don''t do it because I think it''s funny."
Natsuki opened her eyes and raised an eyebrow, "What?"
"It''s different with you." Akeno said, "Issei is one of my cute kouhais, an interesting guy who managed to catch Rias'' attention and heart, and I find his perversion amusing, and it''s even more amusing when I flirt with him and Rias gets upset. But I flirt with you because I like you and want your attention, so you don''t have to be angry and jealous, you mean more to me than Issei."
Natsuki blushed and was no longer able to meet the older Devil''s eye, "I wasn''t angry, and I certainly wasn''t jealous over Issei of all people."
Akeno giggled, grinning as she reached up and cupped Natsuki''s face with her hands, forcing the younger Devil to look at her again. "You''re the one who brought it all up."
Natsuki rolled her eyes, although she could not deny that Akeno saying that their interactions meant more to Akeno than the ones she had with Issei, made her feel better. "Why are you so irritating?"
Akeno brushed her thumbs against the apples of Natsuki''s cheeks. "Natsuki, I don''t flirt with you because I find it amusing, well, it''s not entirely the reason."
"Then why?"
Akeno huffed, "Is it so hard to believe that I have genuine feelings for you?"
Natsuki glared at Akeno, "No one would ever want someone like me."
"Aren''t you the one who said that I see you for who you are? Or was that just a lie to make me feel better?"
"There''s a difference between accepting me and wanting to be in a relationship with me."
"Do you?"
"Do I what?"
"Want to be in a relationship with me?"
Natsuki was quiet for a few moments, unconsciously moving her face closer to Akeno''s, the two now sharing one breath. "Akeno-"
"You two seemed to be having fun." Rias teased as she opened the door and seeing the two girls in the position they were in, finding the whole thing amusing.
She had arrived at the shrine a few minutes ago and only found Issei in the main tearoom. So, she decided to go looking for her Queen and second Pawn and was not disappointed by what she found.
Natsuki moved back, causing Akeno''s hands to fall from her face as she looked at the redhead. Akeno sat up slightly, not bothering to hide the scowl she was giving Rias, much to said girl''s growing amusement.
Payback''s a bitch. Rias thought, satisfied with her revenge after the countless times Akeno teased her about her feelings or purposely interrupted moments between her and Issei.
"Hey, Buchou, did you find Natsuki and-" Issei began to ask as he walked towards Rias, his eyes widening when he looked over her shoulder. "Holy shit! Damn you, Natsuki! Going after Akeno-senpai''s glorious boobs while pretending to use the bathroom! You lucky bastard! I''m so proud of you!"
Natsuki grabbed the top of Akeno''s kosode and pulled it up, covering Akeno as she glared at Issei. "Shut up, you fucking dumbass! That''s not what''s going on here."
Issei snorted, "So you just ripped the clothes off all your friends?"
"Ripped the clothes off? I''m not you, idiot, I don''t walk around assaulting girls!"
This led to the two Pawns arguing with each other, throwing accusations left and right as Rias and Akeno watched. Finally, Akeno rolled her eyes and ended the argument by pushing Natsuki off her, knocking Natsuki to the floor before standing up.
Rias giggled, "I know from Ise that his assimilation with Ascalon was successful, but was yours with the Sword of Methuselah also?"
Natsuki pushed herself off the floor and sighed, "Yeah, although I would have liked being told that I might have exploded before I tried."
"I doubt Michael would have let you try the assimilation if there was a possibility that it would fail." Rias said.
Natsuki looked at Rias, "You knew?"
Rias smirked, "I knew."
Natsuki pursed her lips, "You really are an evil mistress. What did I do in my life to be cursed into being your slave?"
"Most likely the crime of running your mouth too much." Rias shot back, the smirk never leaving her face.
"It''s weird, I only run my mouth so much while in your presence, Buchou." Natsuki drawled.
Rias rolled her eyes, "Show me your new toy, Natsuki."
Natsuki summoned her sword, showing it to Rias who looked at the weapon appraisingly, being able to feel the weight of the sword''s power.
"Good." Rias said, "With this and Ascalon, our Peerage''s strength has grown immensely. And I trust you two to use these new weapons responsibly."
"Yes, Buchou." Issei and Natsuki said in unison.
Rias then asked her servants questions about their meeting with Michael and after a couple of minutes, Rias sent Natsuki and Issei home, and told Issei to head out without her as she would catch up with him because she wanted to speak to Akeno.
"Are you angry with me, Akeno?" Rias asked the other girl.
"Why would I be angry?" Akeno asked as the two stood outside, near the stairs of the shrine.
"For interrupting you and Natsuki, you seemed pretty angry when I did."
Akeno glanced towards the sky, "I was certainly annoyed, but I''m not angry with you. I just..."
"Just what?" Rias asked.
Akeno lifted a hand to her face, a small blush forming on her cheeks as a soft and tender expression formed on her face. "I think I have feelings for Natsuki."
Rias eyes grew wide, "Oh..."
Rias already knew that Akeno liked and lusted after Natsuki since the Rating Game against Riser, but she was surprised to hear her best friend make such a declaration. Rias knew about Akeno''s past, and about her feelings towards love, so she did not expect Akeno to ever admit to having genuine romantic feelings for another person.
"When did you realize that you love Natsuki?"
Akeno chuckled, "I don''t think I love her, Rias. But I-I think I might one day, and the thought scares me just as much as it excites me. She doesn''t see me as Baraqiel''s daughter or a half-breed or piece of meat to gawk at, she just sees me."
Rias bumped shoulders with Akeno, smiling at her playfully, "Never thought I''d see the day that Himejima Akeno was swooning over someone. The Underworld must have frozen over while we were gone."
"I could say the same of you, what happened to the girl who said she would never get married?"
"That was because I was betrothed to fucking Riser."
"And is it different now? With Issei?" Akeno asked teasingly.
Rias blushed, causing Akeno to laugh in response, "I-I-I do-don''t want to marry Issei!"
"I-I-I d-d-don''t wa-want t-to ma-mar-marry Issei!" Akeno parroted mockingly.
"Shut up." Rias growled, shoving Akeno away, her face now as red as her hair as Akeno laughed at her.
The Next Day
Natsuki yawned as she watched Gasper use his Sacred Gear, once again feeling the effects of the daytime on her body.
In the early hours of the morning, so early that the sun had yet to rise, she, Issei, and Asia had come to the school and had taken Gasper to the back of the old school building that housed the ORC clubroom for the younger Devil''s training.
Gasper''s eyes flashed purple as he used his [Forbidden Balor View] to stop the volleyball that Natsuki had weakly thrown at him, freezing it in midair before deactivating his gear and letting it fall.
"Good job, Gasper-kun. You''re now able to catch it once every twenty tries now!" Asia said encouragingly.
I guess this is a huge leap in progress from before when he wasn''t able to catch any of the volleyballs and would run from them. Natsuki thought.
Issei grinned as he took another volleyball that Asia handed him, "Alright, Gasper! Incoming! Ready or not, here we come!"
Gasper steeled him, "Okay, senpai!"
But when Issei threw the ball, Gasper was unable to activate his Sacred Gear and the volleyball hit him directly in the face, knocking him off his feet.
"You okay, Gasper?" Natsuki asked as Gasper sat up while rubbing his nose.
"Natsuki-senpai, Issei-senpai, I think I''m done for today." Gasper whimpered.
"Don''t let speak like that! We''ve got a dream to turn into reality here and I can''t do it without you! C''mon, Gasper!" Issei shouted, reaching into the metal ball cart, and throwing more volleyballs at Gasper.
Gasper curled into himself, covering his head with his hands as the volleyballs rained down on him, unable to use [Forbidden Balor View] to stop any of them.
"Okay, that''s enough." Natsuki said as she grabbed one of Issei''s arms to keep him from grabbing and throwing anymore volleyballs.
Issei wrenched his arm out of Natsuki''s hand, "Natsuki, don''t you see this kind of tough love is necessary?! This is exactly what happened to us when we trained for the Rating Game against that fire chicken, and we came out the other side stronger than ever, so I know the same will happen for Gasper. And besides, if he can''t figure out his powers, I''ll never see my dream come to fruition!"
I''ve already made a list of all the girls with the biggest boobs and figured out each of their schedules down to the minute so I can know the best time they will be alone and when to target them! The only thing stopping me from being able to feel all of them up is Gasper! Issei thought despairingly.
"You truly are a terrible person." Natsuki said with a shake of her head over why Issei was so intent on helping Gasper.
"I''m sorry for failing you Issei-senpai!" Gasper cried out, feeling like he was nothing but a failure and was not living up to everyone''s expectations.
Natsuki smacked the back of Issei''s head before walking to Gasper and taking a knee into front of his curled-up body. "You don''t have to apologize; Issei was the one being stupid. You''re still learning, so it''s expected you''ll make mistakes. I think all of us have had moments when we can''t control our powers."
Gasper wiped his eyes, looking up at Natsuki hopefully, "Really?"
"Yes, really." Natsuki stated, "So you shouldn''t let the setbacks keep you from moving forward, and while Issei''s words were wrong, he''s trying to get you to do the same thing too. But you shouldn''t push yourself too much either, you can tell us if you can''t handle something."
Gasper shook his head, "But I have to get stronger. S-Since I am incomplete both as a human who had a Sacred Gear, and as a vampire, I only cause trouble to everyone, I-I have to control my power more."
The look on Gasper''s face and the way his voice cracked reminded Natsuki painfully of Akeno when the older Devil told Natsuki about her identity.
Gasper and Akeno were both hybrids born from distinct species before becoming Devils, and both felt doubt in and hated their existences. And unlike Natsuki, who had grown up never knowing the truth of her own heritage, Gasper and Akeno suffered immensely and were ostracized because of it, and unlike Natsuki, felt burdened by it most of the time.
Natsuki''s expression softened, "You don''t cause trouble for everyone and you''re not incomplete. And you shouldn''t listen to anyone who told you that nonsense in the past."
"But-"
"But nothing. They were wrong, Gasper, and do you know what the best way to prove people wrong is?"
Gasper tilted his head, "No, what is it?"
Natsuki raised her fist and clenched it, "To beat their asses into the fucking dirt."
Natsuki felt someone slapping the back of her head before she heard Issei screech in her ear. "And you''re calling me a terrible person?! When you''re teaching him to be a violent brute?!"
Natsuki turned her head and glared at Issei, but Gasper spoke up before she could say anything to the other Pawn. "I don''t want to hurt people, but I want to be strong enough that everyone doesn''t have to keep looking out for me."
Issei pumped his fists and puffed out his chest, "Then get up and keep training! We''re all members of the same club, and Rias-Buchou''s servants and comrades! So, let''s keep getting stronger for the sake of all that! So, bring out more of your power for Team Awesome"!
Seeing that, Gasper wiped his tears and stood up. "Issei-senpai, Natsuki-senpai, I-I''ll do my best! For Team Awesome!"
"Team Awesome!" Issei declared with a roar.
"I am not part of this team, and stop saying that I am." Natsuki voiced, knowing what Issei''s ultimate goal was with Gasper, but was ignored by the two boys.
Is this where the inspiring montage comes in? Asia thought amused as she watched the scene in front of her. "Do your best! Ise-san, Natsuki-san, Gasper-kun!"
"Gasper! Since the bishoujo, Asia-senpai is cheering you on as well, cheer up!"
"Y-yesssss! Thank you very much, Asia-senpai" Gasper said while Natsuki rolled her eyes before they went back practicing.
While this was going on, Kiba, Xenovia, and Koneko arrived and began to watch Gasper''s training from a couple of feet away, standing next to the old school building.
"Hey, weren''t you supposed to be helping out with Gasper-kun''s training?" Kiba asked the other Knight.
Xenovia sighed before responding, crossing her arms as she looked on, "Every time I tried to help train him, the poor kid would break down crying. He kept saying something about how training him made him feel guilty. Eventually, Natsuki-san said it would probably be best for me to keep my distance when Gasper is training."
"Natsuki-senpai told me the same thing, but I don''t know why. I was being extremely helpful when training Gya-kun." Koneko said, sounding confused by Natsuki''s decision.
Kiba sweat dropped, "I don''t think chasing him with garlic and Holy water was very helpful, Koneko-chan."
Koneko ignored this as she continued to watch her friends, "You know, I''ve only seen Issei-senpai this happy about training once before."
"When was that?" Xenovia asked.
"When we were at the training camp." Koneko answered, "That was when he came up with his perversely perverted joke of a finishing move."
Xenovia brow furrowed, "You mean he was this excited when he came up with the Dress Break?"
They then looked at Issei who was watching Gasper with a large smile on his face, his eyes teary as he spoke and his voice full of joy and pride. "Let''s make our dreams come true at last, Gasper! Get ready for another hundred!"
Koneko and Xenovia did not look impressed as they stared at the brown-haired Pawn, knowing that he must have ulterior motives when it came to training Gasper beyond wanting to help Rias, while Kiba slapped his hand against his face, knowing exactly what Issei was planning.
Why, Issei, why? Kiba thought, feeling embarrassed for being associated with Issei.
Hours Later
The members of the Occult Research Club had gathered in their club room just as a large barrier completely enveloped the school. Outside the barrier, Angels, Fallen Angels, and Devil forces surrounded the school, both were measures that would allow no one to enter or leave until the meeting between the Three Great Powers had concluded.
The location of the meeting would be Kuoh Academy''s staff meeting room, and as that day was a holiday and it was late at night, the school was completely empty with the exception of the three groups.
"It''s time for us to go." Rias told her servants as she stood from her desk.
Rias then looked at the cardboard box in the corner of the room that held her first Bishop inside of it, speaking gently to him. "Gasper, today''s conference is important, it would stall negotiations if your Sacred Gear activated during it, so you can''t participate. I hope you understand."
"Y-yes, Buchou." Gasper said, poking his head out of the box.
Issei walked up to Gasper''s box, bending down to hand the younger boy his portable handheld console, "Cheer up, Gasper, you can borrow this while you stay here so you don''t get bored. And me and Natsuki got a bunch of snacks you can have."
Natsuki then stood on Issei''s other side holding a box filled with sweets and chips, placing it down next to Gasper before pulling out a brown paper bag from inside it. "We also got you your paper bag, so you can where it if start feeling scared or lonely."
Gasper looked at the items in awe before looking back at the two Pawns, "Thank Issei-senpai, Natsuki-senpai."
"Anything for you, buddy." Issei said while Natsuki nodded her head in agreement.
The rest of the Peerage left the clubroom and began making their way to the staff room while Issei and Natsuki walked a few feet behind the group, having their own conversation.
"Hey, Natsuki. You don''t think it was sad that a video game, a box of junk food, and a paper bag were the best we could do for Gasper?" Issei asked, feeling uneasy about everything.
"No, it''s not enough, no one should be happy with that little." Natsuki admitted, "A kid like Gasper deserves a lot more. But I guess with everything he''s been through that this would be a lot for him."
"I just-I just really want to do something to help him, but I can''t think of anything."
"I don''t really know either, but I think we should just keep doing what we''re doing, drawing him out of his shell little by little. Gasper seems to respond well to it, I mean, I get the impression from everyone else that Gasper isn''t always this open."
"Maybe you''re right." Issei said, but he still could not stop the feeling that they could be doing more for their kouhai.
After a couple of minutes, the group reached the Kuoh Academy staff room, and the closer they got the more, Natsuki shivered and folded in on herself, understanding immediately why no guards were posted there, leaving the doors unattended.
"Are you okay, Natsuki-san?" Asia asked, seeing the physical reaction Natsuki was having.
Natsuki shuddered as she straightened her posture, "I''m fine, Asia. I just... I was just not expecting to feel all that power."
Rias turned her head, looking the girl sympathetically, "Sorry about that, Natsuki. I know that my brother and the others usually mask their presence, I should have figured that it wouldn''t be enough to be blocked by you."
"I should''ve figured myself." Natsuki said, regaining her composure.
"Is it really that bad?" Issei asked.
"Almost everyone in that room is a fucking monster." Natsuki told him, "Even now when they''re hiding their magical energy, they could kill all of us with a finger."
Is it because they''re all gathered together in one place? Because I didn''t have this problem when I met Sirzechs, Grayfia, Azazel, and Michael individually. Natsuki thought.
When they reached the doors, Rias knocked on one of them twice, "Excuse us." Rias then opened one of the doors and walked inside, the rest of the group following her.
In the middle of the room sat a gorgeous and pompous looking table, and as if surrounding it, were the leaders from each respective faction. The air is enveloped by quietness, and everyone had a serious expression on their faces.
On the Devil side of the table, sat Sirzechs and Serafall, while Grayfia was on standby beside a cart preparing tea. And behind them, stood Sona Sitri and her Queen, Shinra Tsubaki, the rest of her Peerage notably absent.
In the middle of the table was the Angel side, headed by Michael and standing behind him, to the surprise of most, was Shidou Irina.
"Irina?" Xenovia said wide-eyed.
Irina sneered at her former friend and partner before turning away, refusing to look in Xenovia and the rest of the ORC''s direction. Xenovia frowned but did not try to call out to Irina again, seeing it as pointless.
And finally, on the Fallen Angel corner was Azazel with his twelve wings unfurled, like Sirzechs and Serafall, he was not wearing normal clothing, instead a robe elaborated with ornaments. And when he glanced at Natsuki and Issei, his lips rose up happily.
Behind Azazel, was the Vanishing Dragon, who smirked when he made eye contact with the other two dragon Sacred Gear wielders in the room. Issei flinched and then glared at Vali while Natsuki briefly met Vali''s gaze before looking away with a roll of her eyes.
This only made Vali''s smirk grow wider, finding the difference between Issei and Natsuki to be humorous.
You''ve gotten stronger since we last saw each other, Natsuki. Are you that determined to be stronger than me? Vali thought, the idea of Natsuki training intensely since their last meeting, causing a small amount of excitement to fill him. This was only tempered when he remembered that Natsuki''s recent boost in strength would not be enough for her to pose a significant threat to him, at least not yet.
The ORC walked to where Sirzechs and Serafall were sitting, standing behind them and right next to Sona and Tsubaki.
"Everyone''s here." Sirzechs said before introducing Rias and her Peerage, "This is my sister and her family. They are the ones who fought against Kokabiel during his surprise attack a few days ago."
"A rather impressive feat. I thank each one of you for your hard work." Michael said cordially.
Azazel smirked, placing his elbow on the table and resting his head against his fist as he looked at the group of young Devils. "Once again, I apologize. It seems one of my boys caused you a bit of trouble."
Rias'' mouth twitched as she fought the urge to scowl, still smiling despite the Governor General''s blase attitude towards the Holy Sword debacle.
Sirzechs cleared his throat, and he addressed the room, "Now that all participants are represented, let this summit commence."